summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
authornfenwick <nfenwick@pglaf.org>2025-01-25 11:55:27 -0800
committernfenwick <nfenwick@pglaf.org>2025-01-25 11:55:27 -0800
commitc10bf2daa9896b4be2cd271bdb0670581122dba8 (patch)
treee157b752fae1a1c1f7f8bb6b12500bf00cd7e218
parent2e40607fa4b2b44f25b138bad52165578d4a713c (diff)
NormalizeHEADmain
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes4
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt11
-rw-r--r--README.md2
-rw-r--r--old/69928-0.txt6359
-rw-r--r--old/69928-0.zipbin135419 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69928-h.zipbin1483954 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69928-h/69928-h.htm9043
-rw-r--r--old/69928-h/images/cover.jpgbin742442 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69928-h/images/illus01.jpgbin60549 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69928-h/images/illus02.jpgbin34826 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69928-h/images/illus03.jpgbin46742 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69928-h/images/illus04.jpgbin67689 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69928-h/images/illus05.jpgbin35666 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69928-h/images/illus06.jpgbin56871 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69928-h/images/illus07.jpgbin51568 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69928-h/images/illus08.jpgbin50436 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69928-h/images/illus09.jpgbin44280 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69928-h/images/illus10.jpgbin60014 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69928-h/images/illus11.jpgbin35959 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69928-h/images/illus12.jpgbin51361 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69928-h/images/talbot.jpgbin12633 -> 0 bytes
21 files changed, 17 insertions, 15402 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d7b82bc
--- /dev/null
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -0,0 +1,4 @@
+*.txt text eol=lf
+*.htm text eol=lf
+*.html text eol=lf
+*.md text eol=lf
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6312041
--- /dev/null
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,11 @@
+This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
+in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
+
+Procedures for determining public domain status are described in
+the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
+
+No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
+jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
+this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..526affd
--- /dev/null
+++ b/README.md
@@ -0,0 +1,2 @@
+Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for
+eBook #69928 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/69928)
diff --git a/old/69928-0.txt b/old/69928-0.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index e22a3ba..0000000
--- a/old/69928-0.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,6359 +0,0 @@
-The Project Gutenberg eBook of My fight for Irish freedom, by Dan
-Breen
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
-most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
-of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you
-will have to check the laws of the country where you are located before
-using this eBook.
-
-Title: My fight for Irish freedom
-
-Author: Dan Breen
-
-Contributor: Joseph McGarrity
-
-Release Date: February 1, 2023 [eBook #69928]
-
-Language: English
-
-Produced by: Tim Lindell and the Online Distributed Proofreading Team at
- https://www.pgdp.net (This book was produced from images
- made available by the HathiTrust Digital Library.)
-
-*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK MY FIGHT FOR IRISH
-FREEDOM ***
-
-
-
-
-
-
-MY FIGHT FOR IRISH FREEDOM
-
-
-
-
-[Illustration: DAN BREEN.]
-
-
-
-
- MY FIGHT FOR
- IRISH FREEDOM
-
- _By_
- DAN BREEN
-
- _With an Introduction by_
- JOSEPH McGARRITY
- (_Philadelphia_)
-
- [Illustration]
-
- DUBLIN
- THE TALBOT PRESS LIMITED
- 85 TALBOT STREET
- 1924
-
- First Published, August, 1924.
- Second Edition, September, 1924.
- Third Edition, October, 1924.
-
- Printed in Ireland at THE TALBOT PRESS, Dublin.
-
-
-
-
- TO
- SEAN TREACY
- J. J. HOGAN
- AND
- SEUMAS ROBINSON
-
-
-
-
-INTRODUCTION
-
-
-_My Fight for Irish Freedom_, by Commandant General Dan Breen, of the
-Third Tipperary Brigade, is a story written in the plain unaffected
-language of one of Ireland’s bravest and most devoted sons. Many of
-Ireland’s great champions passed from this world without leaving any
-authentic record of the battles in which they took part, save that which
-tradition handed on from generation to generation.
-
-As time passed, many of the most important phases of the stories thus
-transmitted were forgotten, and in some cases additions were made which
-gave certain of the tales a mythical rather than an historical character.
-
-An authentic historical record by Cuchulainn himself, if discovered
-to-day, would create a greater world interest than has the discovery of
-the tomb of the Pharaohs.
-
-The author and principal actor in this dramatic story was born and reared
-in Tipperary. He had no military knowledge whatever until he joined
-the Irish Volunteers. Gallant young Irishmen of the type of Dan Breen
-had been, for generations, drifting away from their native land. Their
-natural military genius and daring found outlet in the armies of France
-and Spain, where
-
- “On far foreign fields, from Dunkirk to Belgrade
- Lie the soldiers and chiefs of the Irish Brigade.”
-
-Washington appreciated in full the valour of his Irish emigrant soldiers,
-as he afterwards proved by conceding to them equal status with the
-native-born Americans. He placed unbounded confidence in the patriotism
-and loyalty of his Irish generals and soldiers who comprised almost
-one-half of the entire Revolutionary Army.
-
-With the outbreak of the World War in 1914 the manhood of the world
-was being rolled up into two opposing mighty war machines—preparing
-to annihilate each other. The catch-cry “to fight in defence of small
-nations” was broad-casted. Under this, and other specious pretexts,
-hundreds of Irishmen were induced to join up in England’s Imperial
-armies, and they endured the horrors of France, Flanders and the
-Dardanelles.
-
-While these newly-recruited Irish regiments were being drafted to the
-various war fronts in Europe, great minds were busy at home planning
-Ireland’s regeneration. For two years the Irish Volunteer movement,
-directed by Pearse, Connolly, Casement, Clarke and the other leaders, had
-been spreading like a prairie fire through the country! Alas! because
-they dared to put forth the claim of their own small nation to be master
-in its own house the firing squad and the scaffold extinguished the brave
-lives of sixteen noble Irish leaders.
-
-Dan Breen and his few comrades had definitely reached the conclusion that
-while a foreign flag floated over public buildings in Ireland, and while
-a foreign army was garrisoned in the land, there was one place—and one
-place only—for Irishmen to fight—and that place was Ireland.
-
-He did not wait for an army to grow up, or for some great captain to come
-from foreign lands to lead his countrymen to victory. As a matter of fact
-at one time our soldier-author was, with a few comrades, practically the
-only force in the field engaged in active hostilities against the enemy.
-
-Such a stirring drama has seldom if ever been acted on the stage of Irish
-life. It is doubtful if any other individual in Irish history received a
-like number of near-fatal wounds, fighting in defence of his country—and
-survived to tell the story of the engagements in which the wounds were
-inflicted.
-
-Fired with a burning love of country and a fixed determination to achieve
-her independence, Dan Breen with a handful of men declared war on England
-on their own account, convinced that their countrymen would follow their
-example. In this he was not disappointed.
-
-The engagements described follow each other in such quick succession, and
-are of such a thrilling character, that from the opening of the first
-chapter to the close of the last, the reader is in momentary expectation
-of the story ending with the dramatic death of the author.
-
-The author’s graphic descriptions of localities, his giving of accurate
-distances between one location and another, his recording of place-names
-and family names gives the story a distinct and particular historical
-value.
-
-Great as was the physical suffering he endured, having been literally
-riddled by bullets, it was as nothing compared to the mental torture he
-must have endured later on seeing his former comrades turn their arms
-against each other after the signing of the “Treaty” in 1921.
-
-In giving to his countrymen this authentic written record of the
-engagements in which he took part, Dan Breen has rendered a service to
-Ireland second only to the services rendered to her in the engagements he
-describes.
-
-Let us hope that some competent Celtic scholar will translate the story
-into the language of Ireland’s ancient champions whom she had gathered
-to her bosom centuries before this gallant son of Tipperary was ready to
-render to his beloved country the splendid services he has so willingly
-given.
-
- JOSEPH MCGARRITY.
-
-PHILADELPHIA.
-
-
-
-
-CONTENTS
-
-
- CHAPTER PAGE
-
- Introduction vii.
-
- I.—A Volunteer’s Training 1
-
- II.—Preparing for the Fray 11
-
- III.—Our First Munition Factory 17
-
- IV.—Our Factory Blown Up 23
-
- V.—The Political Landslide 29
-
- VI.—Soloheadbeg 34
-
- VII.—Our Escape 41
-
- VIII.—Helped by the British 50
-
- IX.—Our Return to Soloheadbeg 64
-
- X.—Sean Hogan Captured 72
-
- XI.—The Rescue at Knocklong 83
-
- XII.—Our Escape from Knocklong 93
-
- XIII.—Many Close Shaves 106
-
- XIV.—On the Trail of Lord French 115
-
- XV.—The Battle of Ashtown 126
-
- XVI.—Our Escape from Ashtown 138
-
- XVII.—From Tara to Tipperary 150
-
- XVIII.—The Barrack Attacks 162
-
- XIX.—Capture and Escape of General Lucas 173
-
- XX.—Adventures with the Murder Gang 181
-
- XXI.—The Drumcondra Fight 197
-
- XXII.—Missed by Inches 209
-
- XXIII.—Executions and Reprisals 219
-
- XXIV.—My Return to Tipperary 228
-
- XXV.—Married in the Battle Line 234
-
- XXVI.—The Truce 239
-
- XXVII.—Efforts to Avert Civil War 249
-
- XXVIII.—How I was Captured 255
-
-
-
-
-MY FIGHT FOR IRISH FREEDOM
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER I.
-
-A VOLUNTEER’S TRAINING
-
- “A soldier’s life is the life for me,
- A soldier’s death, so Ireland’s free.”
-
- —_Davis._
-
-
-It was in 1914 that I first joined the Irish Volunteers in the village of
-Donohill, some four miles from Tipperary town. At that time I was about
-twenty years of age. I soon became known to the local police as the “Sinn
-Feiner,” then a very rare sort of animal. At a later stage in my career
-the same people, I believe, conferred upon me the still higher title of
-“Prince of the Assassins”! But I must beg the reader’s patience while I
-briefly outline the position in Ireland the year the Great War began.
-
-The British Parliament had passed its Home Rule Bill for Ireland. The
-Orange minority in the North of Ireland declared it would resist any
-attempt to enforce that Bill or to set up a Parliament in Dublin.
-Supported financially and morally by the wealthiest section of the
-English Tory Party, the Orangemen openly organised, drilled and armed a
-Volunteer Army to defy the British Parliament.
-
-At this time Sinn Fein as a political policy was little known outside of
-Dublin City. The spokesmen of the great majority of the Irish people were
-the Parliamentarians led by John Redmond. But a few of the intellectual
-leaders, such as Pearse and MacNeill, whose political influence then
-counted for little, saw in the action of the Orange Volunteers an
-excellent example to the rest of Ireland. They called on the Nationalists
-to form a Volunteer Army. The tradition of the Fenians still lived.
-Many who cared little for the Home Rule Bill saw that we now had got
-the opportunity for which they wished. Ireland answered the call, and
-when the Great War broke out there were in Ireland three armies, though
-very different in equipment and in outlook. One was the British Army of
-Occupation; the other was the Orange Volunteer Army in the North; and the
-third was the Irish Volunteer Force. Consequently, when the Great War
-broke out Redmond and his followers threw in their lot with the British,
-and appealed for recruits for the British Army. The Orange Volunteers,
-too, were in whole-hearted sympathy with the British cause. The Irish
-Volunteers for a time were split and disorganised; thousands joined the
-British Army; but a small number remained doggedly neutral and loyal to
-Ireland alone. That small number was not deceived by England’s cant of
-“fighting for small nations,” and “for the sanctity of treaties.” They
-were those who believed in an Independent Ireland; and as their best
-speakers were supporters of the political programme of Sinn Fein, they
-all gradually became known as “Sinn Fein Volunteers.”
-
-Our little band at Donohill was part of this small minority. We did
-not give much heed to John Redmond’s call to join the British Army. We
-continued to drill and train openly, in the hope that the time would
-come when we might get our chance to strike a blow at the only enemy we
-recognised—England.
-
-As the war developed we were closely watched by the police. We were
-known as “pro-Germans.” The majority of the people, carried away by the
-campaign of lies and calumny in the Press, were in favour of England as
-against Germany in the war. The aristocracy and the wealthiest merchants
-and farmers generally supported the movements that were started to
-provide comforts for the British soldiers in the trenches. But we of the
-Irish Volunteers—henceforth in using that term I must be understood to
-mean those who declined to take England’s side in the war—stood aloof.
-It was then that I came into disfavour with the police for my refusal
-to support their funds for providing comforts for soldiers. I was an
-employee of the Great Southern and Western Railway, and I have no doubt
-that they acquainted my superiors with what they regarded as my disloyal
-tendencies.
-
-It is necessary to explain the nature of this police force. The Royal
-Irish Constabulary—a body that has now passed into history—was not
-a police force in the sense understood in other countries. It was a
-semi-military force, trained to the use of arms, and provided with
-carbines and rifles. As crime in the ordinary sense was practically
-unknown in Ireland, the main duty of these men was to spy upon Volunteers
-and others working for an Independent Ireland. They were known to report
-even sermons delivered by Irish priests. In all there were then about ten
-thousand of these police in the country, scattered in small garrisons of
-two to ten or twenty men, according to the size of the village or town
-in which they were located. Sprung as they were for the most part from
-Irish Nationalist families, they were the brain of England’s garrison in
-Ireland; for they knew the people and they got the information without
-which England’s 40,000 troops—ignorant alike of the country, its people
-and its history—would have been of little use.
-
-I now resume my narrative. From the outbreak of the Great War I still
-continued my daily work, and took no more active part than any ordinary
-private in the local company of the Irish Volunteers. We met and drilled
-a few times a week, and tried to pick up a rifle or a revolver now and
-again; for the Volunteers generally had very few arms at that time.
-
-Thus we continued our routine through 1915, and up to April, 1916. With
-the Insurrection of 1916 I do not propose to deal here, except to say
-that owing to the confusion of orders and counter-orders the men of
-Tipperary got no chance of having their mettle tested. I must, however,
-remark upon a coincidence in connection with our plans. Part of the
-duty of the Volunteers of my district was to have been the destroying
-of an important line of railway communications. For that purpose we
-were to have seized a quantity of gelignite, then stored by the County
-Council for blasting purposes in a neighbouring quarry. That quarry was
-Soloheadbeg, where three years later my comrades and I received our
-baptism of fire.
-
-The Rising of 1916 changed our whole outlook. The people who had scoffed
-and sneered at the Sinn Feiners before now swung round to our side. But
-our military organisation had collapsed. Thousands of our men all over
-the country were seized and deported to England. The British forces, both
-police and military, seized what arms they could lay hands upon. We could
-no longer drill and parade in public; our organisation had been solemnly
-proclaimed by the British to be an illegal body. For a time we were in
-confusion and despair. It was only for a very short time, however, for
-within a few months those who had escaped the meshes of the English
-military net after the Rising had actually held two secret Conventions in
-Dublin to re-organise the Volunteers.
-
-After a few months we set to work again. My neighbour and comrade, Sean
-Treacy, and I decided to make a fresh start, and to put our Volunteer
-company at work once more. This time, of course, we could not do it
-openly; we had to work on a secret basis. As it was now considered
-dangerous to have anything to do with the Irish Volunteers, our numbers
-were small; but we had better and more determined men. For a while,
-indeed, there were only three of us.
-
-We met in a little wood after our work twice every week. So we struggled
-on until May, 1917, when our company had grown to be thirteen strong.
-Not a man of us possessed any military knowledge, and those in the
-neighbourhood who could instruct us had either joined the British Army,
-or could not be trusted to take the risks. Still we got on very well at
-physical drill, scouting, signalling, revolver practice, close-order
-drill, and such work. We had to rely mainly on book-work; and by a
-strange irony the books we found most handy were the official texts
-supplied to the British troops, the men we were preparing to meet.
-
-Of course, we made mistakes now and again, but our earnestness surmounted
-many difficulties. Besides, we were often innocent spectators of British
-drill manœuvres in the locality, and I can assure you we kept our eyes
-and ears open for tips. If the chance of picking up an odd revolver came
-our way, we managed to find the money somehow, and added to our little
-supply of munitions.
-
-The best tribute to our success in the art of military education was
-paid by the officials of the British Government, who, at a later
-stage, described our little band as the “crack shots of the I.R.A.” In
-passing it is well to observe that we ourselves learned that anything
-in the nature of official statements issued from the British military
-headquarters at Parkgate Street, Dublin, or from the civil authorities at
-Dublin Castle, should always be digested with a considerable quantity of
-salt.
-
-It was in August, 1917, that our little handful of men made its first
-public parade. By that time the men who had been deported after the
-Easter Week Insurrection had been released, and all over the country were
-beginning to do what we had been doing on our own account for nearly a
-year. In the political arena two bye-elections which had occurred in
-Roscommon and Longford, resulted in a triumph for candidates standing
-for the Republican cause. A few months later still Eamon de Valera, on
-his release from Lewes Jail, had been invited to contest a Parliamentary
-vacancy in East Clare. Standing for a Republic, and for declining to
-attend England’s Parliament, he was elected by a huge majority. Shortly
-after his election he addressed an enormous meeting in Tipperary town,
-and we, in the dark green uniforms of the Irish Volunteers, acted as a
-bodyguard of the man who was shortly afterwards elected President of the
-Irish Republic. Tipperary was then occupied by a garrison of over one
-thousand British soldiers, and as our meeting was held almost under the
-shadow of their barracks we did not carry rifles. Instead we carried
-hurleys. Now, we were thus, to the amazement of all peaceful people,
-committing a treble act of defiance against England. In the first place,
-it was a crime to march in military formation; secondly, it was an even
-more serious offence to wear uniform; and thirdly, it was violating a
-special proclamation just issued against the carrying of hurleys.
-
-That proclamation came about in this way. A meeting was being held
-in Beresford Place, Dublin, one Sunday afternoon to protest against
-the treatment of Irish prisoners detained by England. The meeting was
-being addressed by Count Plunkett and Cathal Brugha, when Inspector
-Mills, of the Dublin Metropolitan Police, with some of his men
-attempted to prevent the holding of this peaceful meeting of citizens.
-The meeting included many young men going to or returning from a game
-of hurling—Ireland’s national pastime. In the melee, which followed
-the attempt to break up the meeting and to arrest the speakers, the
-Inspector was struck with a hurley, and received injuries from which
-he died. Thereupon, Sir Bryan Mahon, then Commander-in-Chief of the
-British troops in Ireland, issued a proclamation making it illegal to
-carry hurleys in public. To realise the absurdity of this proclamation
-one has only to imagine a civilised Government declaring it illegal to
-carry a walking-stick. The result was what anybody knowing Ireland might
-expect—hurleys for a time were carried in places where their use was
-scarcely known, and the British Government became a laughing-stock.
-
-This first military display of ours in Tipperary was not a bigger
-shock to the enemy than it was to the local Sinn Feiners; for you must
-understand that by this time public opinion had swung round almost
-completely in favour of Sinn Fein, and we were burdened with thousands
-of recruits, who were not in their hearts in favour of any stronger
-weapons than resolutions. On this occasion many of the local Sinn Feiners
-were shocked by our audacity in taking the step we did without a solemn
-discussion, a formal proposition to the meeting, and a long-winded
-resolution. Such poor souls often hampered us later on, but we didn’t
-mind. The purely political wing of Sinn Fein criticised us severely, I
-believe, but we kept silent, just listened to all, and judged our men.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER II.
-
-PREPARING FOR THE FRAY.
-
-
-The local police duly informed their headquarters of this open defiance
-of British law in Tipperary. They were ordered to arrest the culprits.
-But, as we had no desire to enjoy the hospitality of His Britannic
-Majesty’s jails, Sean Treacy and I went “on the run,” that is to say,
-in order to evade our pursuers we had to leave our homes, and keep
-moving from the house of one trusty friend to another. But on the Friday
-following our public parade, Sean was arrested by the “Peelers.” Members
-of the R.I.C. were better known in Ireland for generations as “Peelers,”
-a term of contempt coined from the name of Sir Robert Peel, who, in the
-early part of the nineteenth century first organised the force.
-
-Sean was taken to Cork Jail where he first met the brothers Brennan, of
-Meelick, County Clare, who were also unwilling guests of the British
-jailers. The three brothers Brennan—Austin, Paddy and Michael—afterwards
-became famous officers in the Southern Command of the Irish Republican
-Army, and at present hold high ranks in the Free State Army. In passing
-I should say that in throwing men into prison at that time England
-was really giving them an excellent opportunity of exchanging views,
-discussing plans for the future and generally turning the prison into a
-“University for Rebels.” Many indeed learned more about drill, and the
-methods of making explosives, while they were in prison than they had
-ever before known.
-
-Sean was eventually tried by court-martial, and sentenced to two years
-imprisonment, but sixteen months of the term were remitted. These trials
-were, of course, a mere formality, for our men never put up any legal
-defence, but declined to recognise the right of any British tribunal to
-try them. Very often in the early stages our men turned the proceedings
-into a farce by reading a newspaper or singing while the evidence was
-being taken.
-
-With a number of his comrades Sean went on hunger-strike as a protest
-against their treatment. It was the first time that Irish political
-prisoners used this weapon, which later became so common. They were
-removed to Mountjoy Prison, Dublin, where they continued their
-hunger-strike until one of their number, Commandant Tom Ashe, who had
-taken a leading part in one of the most successful exploits in the 1916
-Insurrection—died as a result of the attempts made by the prison doctor
-and officials to feed him forcibly. The tragedy raised the whole Irish
-nation to fury, and the British Government realised for the first time
-that our men were in earnest, and ready to die for their principles. An
-agreement was entered into whereby they were to be treated as prisoners
-of war, or as political prisoners, and forcible feeding was never again
-tried.
-
-Meantime I had been busy during my comrade’s imprisonment. I organised
-sections of Volunteers in all the surrounding parishes, and as similar
-efforts were being made all over the country our military organisation
-soon became even more perfect than it had been in 1916. The British
-Government, true to its traditions, broke the agreement made with the
-prisoners, and Sean and his fellow Volunteers, who had now been removed
-to Dundalk Jail, went on hunger-strike again, and secured their release.
-
-All this time the organisation and drilling of the Volunteers had been
-done secretly. Now and again the British surprised bodies of men here and
-there, and captured them. But when Sean came home he brought back the
-word that we were to come out in the open to drill, even if the British
-Government attempted to arrest every man of us. It was felt that if
-England carried out the policy of wholesale arrests she would soon have
-tens of thousands of Irishmen in jail, and would again make herself a
-laughing-stock to the nations.
-
-This was in the early part of 1918. By this time we had been getting
-a fair supply of arms and ammunition by channels which may not yet be
-disclosed. It must be remembered that for several years before this no
-firearms were allowed into the country, no shops could sell any they had
-on hands, and even sporting cartridges could only be bought by special
-permission of the British military authorities. The enemy scented another
-Insurrection.
-
-They became more alert, and once more Sean Treacy was arrested. From the
-moment of his capture he again went on hunger-strike, and was joined by
-Michael Brennan, of Meelick, and by Seumas O’Neill, a teacher in Rockwell
-College, both of whom had been arrested three days after Sean.
-
-During Sean’s first term of imprisonment I had been elected company
-captain; and now during his second term I was further promoted to be
-Commandant of the Battalion, and later still I became Brigade Commandant.
-At that period each company elected its own captain, each man having a
-vote, and each man being eligible. The various company officers in a
-battalion area then met, and in their turn elected the officers for the
-battalion, and so with the brigade. Truly, it was a democratic army.
-
-This was the time when things were going badly with England in the war.
-In March, 1918, began the great German offensive, when the British lines
-were broken through. In their despair the English cried, “Conscript
-the Irish.” Within a few weeks the necessary Act was passed in the
-British Parliament, and all preparations made to force Irishmen to fight
-England’s battle. Sir John French, later Lord French, himself an Irishman
-by birth, was British Viceroy in Dublin.
-
-The Irish people were roused to action. Never before was there such a
-fierce determination to resist the British plans. Bishops, priests and
-political leaders of all shades of opinion met together to face the
-threat. In the moment of common danger all turned instinctively to the
-Irish Volunteers. If resistance was to come it would only come from their
-ranks; for England and Ireland well knew that the Irish Volunteers would
-be wiped out to the last man before they would allow a single Irishman to
-be forced into the British Army.
-
-Our trouble was the shortage of arms; of men we now had too many. At that
-time I was Brigade Commandant, and we decided to make raids for arms. We
-knew there were plenty of shot-guns, revolvers, bayonets, swords, and
-an occasional rifle here and there in private houses, especially in the
-houses of the element loyal to England.
-
-We had very little trouble in collecting the arms. Our men in every
-district had compiled exact information regarding every house in which
-there was a weapon. We generally went at night and asked for the arms.
-Those who would have liked to refuse knew they dare not. Many others gave
-them willingly, and some even sent us word to call for them. In no case
-had we to fire a shot during the few weeks we were on this job. We had to
-do the thing as quickly as possible, for as soon as the British got wind
-of it they immediately issued an order that all arms should be handed to
-them for safe keeping. We generally got there first, and more than once
-our visit to a house was only a few minutes before that of the peelers.
-
-[Illustration: SEAN TREACY.]
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER III.
-
-OUR FIRST MUNITION FACTORY.
-
-
-During the summer of 1918 the threat of Conscription hung over the land,
-and young and old flocked to the ranks of the Volunteers. It is safe
-to estimate that at that time nine-tenths of all able-bodied Irishmen
-between the ages of sixteen and fifty were Volunteers of a kind; while
-the women had their association—Cumann na mBan—and the boys had theirs,
-the Fianna or Boy Scouts, all preparing to be our auxiliaries. As most
-of our officers were in jail on one charge or another, we who were out
-were kept working day and night. All the time I felt enthusiastic, for I
-saw in Conscription a glorious chance of uniting our own people. Though
-poorly armed we were determined to fight; and I believed that if the
-fight came the survivors would be united in their purpose, and to me a
-united Ireland of two million people would be preferable to an Ireland of
-four and a half million divided into three or four different factions.
-
-Meantime, though the Conscription Act had become law, England, realising
-our determination, postponed its enforcement for a few months, in order
-to give us an opportunity of enlisting voluntarily. We went on with our
-preparations, and became all the more daring. Sometimes it was both
-bewildering and amusing to the public to witness our manœuvres.
-
-More than once, for example, in sham battles we attacked or defended
-Tipperary town, and actually proclaimed certain roads or streets as
-“military areas,” where British soldiers or police, as well as civilians
-were forbidden to enter during the “operations.” These operations were
-carried out by a few hundred Volunteers, while the town was occupied by
-a garrison of over a thousand British soldiers. On such occasions we had
-no display of arms, though a few of our number might for special reasons
-have their revolvers in their pockets.
-
-It soon became evident that England was wiser than to try conscripting
-us. The threat gradually faded away, and so too did our great army! But
-the small number that remained was of more use. They meant to fight for
-Independence. The others had been only thinking of saving themselves from
-the trenches of France, and believed with the old political leaders that
-Ireland’s freedom was not worth the shedding of a drop of blood. As my
-subsequent actions showed, I held a different view.
-
-At this time, as I have already explained, Sean Treacy was enjoying the
-luxury of a hunger-strike in Dundalk Jail. He had been thirteen days
-without food, and we feared they intended to let him die. We who were
-outside felt that we should do something without delay. I got a brain
-wave. Why not capture a Peeler, bring him off to a safe hiding-place,
-and put him on forcible hunger-strike, and keep him as a hostage for
-Sean’s safety? I discussed the plan with some of the others: they were
-favourably disposed; and as we knew that a few policemen regularly
-patrolled the railway line near the Limerick Junction every evening, we
-decided they should be our hostages. All preparations were made, and our
-hiding-place up in the mountainous district on the Limerick-Tipperary
-border was selected. Forty men were mobilised to carry out the job; but
-for once the policemen failed to patrol the line. Later I found out that
-the scheme had been turned down by the Irish Republican Brotherhood, a
-secret organisation which included the most reliable of the Volunteers,
-and which practically controlled the Volunteer Army. After that I severed
-my connection with the I.R.B.
-
-Sean Treacy was released in July, 1918. When he came home he was full
-of plans for organising. I had had an overdose of it in the months that
-he was away, and from my experience I was more in favour of starting a
-fight at once than of trifling further with organising. Sean would have
-his way, and we agreed to differ. I at once started a “munition factory”
-in partnership with my friend Patrick Keogh. Many a lively dispute we had
-on various points, some important, some otherwise, but as soon as Sean
-appeared he always poured oil on the troubled waters.
-
-I must give you a description of our factory, lest the reader be
-picturing an Irish replica of the Krupp works at Essen. The building
-itself was a small rural cottage owned by Tom O’Dwyer, of the Boghole.
-Three rooms were let to Denis O’Dwyer, of Dervice. Both he and the
-owner were well-known characters in Tipperary. Our equipment was of the
-crudest kind, for we had no machinery. But it was a simple matter to make
-ordinary black gunpowder. We also turned out crude hand grenades, which,
-by the way, had to be ignited by a match before being thrown, so you can
-imagine the risks if these had to be brought into action on a windy or a
-rainy night. At this time, too, we collected every available cartridge,
-including sporting cartridges for shot guns, and these were refilled with
-buckshot. Keogh and I always quarrelled as to whether it was better to
-put four or eight grains of lead to the cartridge. The reader can easily
-imagine the effect on a poor devil who might get the full charge of one
-of these refilled sporting cartridges.
-
-Though most of our raids for arms had been carried out by this time, we
-still found occasion for an expedition of the kind from time to time. My
-first encounter with the enemy was one night while I was returning from a
-raid.
-
-A small number of us, including Sean Treacy, were cycling home from
-Tipperary, when my bicycle went flat, and I had to dismount to pump it
-up. I ordered the others to go ahead, saying I would overtake them. On
-their way they passed the police barrack on the outskirts of the town.
-It would seem that the police heard them passing the barrack, and came
-out to have a look round; or else they were actually on the road when the
-men passed, and, with their usual courage, were afraid to confront the
-six Volunteers. Anyhow, I neither heard nor saw anybody when I had pumped
-up my bicycle, until I was suddenly pulled off by a burly Peeler. In my
-left hand I carried a small iron bar for forcing locks, so I tried its
-effect on his head. The bar got the better of the argument. I then drew
-my revolver, and covered the group of peelers. “Surrender, or I shoot,”
-shouted their officer. “Put up your hands, or I’ll shoot the lot of you,”
-I replied. They complied with my order.
-
-I then stepped backwards, rolling my bicycle, and still keeping my gun
-levelled at the peelers, until I reached a laneway. I dashed up the
-lane, mounted my bicycle, and escaped from the town not a moment too
-soon. The alarm was quickly raised, and the whole town was surrounded,
-and every street and lane searched. But I was safe in my factory with my
-comrades.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IV.
-
-OUR FACTORY BLOWN UP.
-
-
-My most exciting experience was to see our munition factory blown into
-the sky. I had a narrow escape, for I was within fifty yards of the door;
-but my partner, Paddy Keogh, had an even more wonderful escape, for he
-was actually on the premises when the explosion occurred.
-
-We never knew what brought about the havoc. I had gone out to a well
-to fetch a can of water, for necessity compelled us to do all our own
-cooking and cleaning. As I was returning to the cottage, I saw the roof
-leaving it, and simultaneously came the roar of the bursting grenades. In
-a moment the house was in flames. It was a desperate situation. My one
-thought was to save my comrade, if indeed he was not already beyond human
-aid.
-
-I dropped the can of water and rushed to the house. I dashed up the
-stairs and found Paddy lying in the room either dead or unconscious. I
-raised him in my arms and carried him with a heavy heart through the rain
-of shrapnel down the stairs and out of the house, and away to the banks
-of the Multeen, a little stream not far away from the house. My heart was
-wrung with anguish as I laid him by the stream and rushed for my can to
-throw some of the fresh clean water over his pale countenance. Before I
-had time to try the effects of a second supply, Paddy was on his feet and
-rushing for me—very much alive!
-
-“You damn fool, do you want to drown me?” he shouted. And then he added a
-lot more that I prefer not to repeat.
-
-The destruction of our house was a heavy blow, and for a while we mourned
-the loss of our little factory and its contents.
-
-My little capital was gone now, and the O’Dwyers had to be compensated
-for the loss of their home. I thought out my plans, and gathered together
-all the tradesmen in our little army, and put them to work. In a few days
-the cottage was repaired, and looked none the worse.
-
-By the way, the Black and Tans, at a later stage wreaked vengeance on it
-more effectively than the explosion of the grenades.
-
-O’Dwyer’s house was now out of bounds for my work, but in a very
-short time I got another house from a good typical Tipperary man,
-Jer. O’Connell. Here I was more successful, because I took greater
-precautions with my work. I guarded against another explosion; but other
-circumstances compelled us to evacuate it within a few months.
-
-During our stay in this house our condition was far from happy. Of
-bodily comforts we had none. We had neither bed nor bed coverings, and
-worse still, we had no money wherewith to buy them. We got a loan of a
-couple of blankets from neighbours, and we commandeered some straw from
-the nearest farmer. First we spread out the straw on the ground and
-covered it over with one blanket. We then spread over us a lot of old
-newspapers (which we carefully collected every day), and over these we
-placed our second blanket. The paper was excellent for keeping us warm,
-and by not turning out of one position we usually got about three hours’
-sleep. As soon as we moved, the paper tore and the cold quickly worked
-its way through. Still greater discomfort than our bed was caused by the
-presence of mice! The little beggars were very numerous and very daring.
-Many a night we were wakened by their nibbling at our hair. Whenever I
-protested, in action as well as in words, Sean Treacy would plead—“Ah,
-the poor little creatures! They might as well be happy when we can’t.
-Don’t be vexed with them, Dan, even if they take a little of your black
-hair.” I argued that it was enough to have the peelers after us, and that
-if the mice had any decency they ought to leave us alone.
-
-For some time things went on smoothly, and our work progressed
-pleasantly. Then my partner, Keogh, left me, and I was joined by Sean
-Hogan—whose life for the next five years was to be very closely linked up
-with mine.
-
-The two Seans and myself seemed to have but one mind—I have never had any
-difference with Hogan up to the present day, and never had an angry word
-with my dear old comrade—Sean Treacy—up to the day of his death.
-
-It was during our sojourn in O’Connell’s house that we were joined by
-Seumas Robinson, later elected Deputy for East Tipperary and Waterford.
-Robinson, who had lived a good part of his life in Glasgow, at once
-became a fast friend. The four of us—Treacy, Hogan, Robinson and I—seemed
-perfectly balanced in temperament, age, outlook and hopes. Many an
-ambitious plan we made, and many a dream we dreamed of the Free Ireland
-for which alone we now lived and worked.
-
-After a few months Jer. O’Connell gave us notice to quit. We had no
-tenant’s rights, no protecting Act of Parliament, and no alternative but
-to depart. Being “on the run” we dare not go looking for lodgings in the
-ordinary way, even if we had money to pay. The peelers knew every hole
-and corner in their district, and were ever on the prowl for Irishmen
-known to have little love for English rule.
-
-But good luck came to our rescue.
-
-Some cousins of Sean Hogan’s had a little dairy or outhouse, which they
-generally placed at our disposal. Here we enjoyed the luxury of bed,
-clothing and other little comforts, but our meals were few and far
-between. I myself lived for two weeks in the “Dairy” on rice boiled in
-water, without either sugar or milk. This abstemious life was not new to
-me. For months while I was organising I used to fast from breakfast to
-breakfast, and many a night I walked twenty miles for a bed, or even a
-shake-down.
-
-The “Dairy” did not escape the attention of the enemy, who subsequently
-gave it the name of “The Tin House.”
-
-We were terribly handicapped for want of money; not indeed for personal
-comforts, which seldom troubled us, but to get round.
-
-On one occasion Sean Treacy and I cycled to Dublin to get some arms.
-We had no money for train fares, and it was essential that we should
-reach Dublin by 6 o’clock on a particular Monday evening. There was a
-Brigade Council meeting fixed for Sunday night—at which we were bound to
-attend. That meant that we could not leave Tipperary till about 8 o’clock
-on Monday morning. We covered the 110 miles, and we reached Dublin in
-good time. Of course we were very hungry, but once we reached the house
-of our good friend Phil Shanahan—himself a Tipperary man, and later a
-Republican Deputy for Dublin—all our troubles disappeared. Then and
-after we never wanted for anything while Phil was about.
-
-We had to remain in Dublin until the following Saturday before we could
-conclude our business. Here another difficulty arose. We were due back
-in Tipperary at an officers’ meeting the same Saturday at 6 p.m. We left
-Phil Shanahan’s house at 8.30 in the morning. We carried six revolvers,
-five hundred rounds of .303 (rifle) ammunition, and half a dozen
-grenades, and we were the only two who were punctual at the meeting.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER V.
-
-THE POLITICAL LANDSLIDE.
-
-
-In December, 1918, came the event which gave the Irish Volunteers the
-moral sanction for their subsequent activities—the General Election.
-
-It is important to bear in mind the position at that time. No General
-Election had been held in Ireland for seven years. In that interval the
-vast majority of the people had completely changed their views. They no
-longer had any faith in England, or in the efficacy of sending their
-hundred representatives to the British Parliament, where they were in a
-helpless minority, and where their voices were scarcely heard. England’s
-treachery on the Home Rule question and her threat of Conscription had
-cost her dearly. But the greatest force of all in the awakening was the
-Rising of 1916. That episode had put new life and heart into the people.
-The bye-elections, to which I have already referred had given the people
-their only opportunity, so far, to indicate the growing desire for
-liberty, complete and untrammelled.
-
-On November 11th, 1918, the Great War virtually ended with the Armistice.
-A week later it was announced that the long delayed General Election was
-fixed for the 14th December. Sinn Fein got its opportunity, for that
-election was to be the first ever held under the British Constitution on
-the basis of manhood suffrage, and we knew well that the young men of
-Ireland would vote overwhelmingly for our cause.
-
-But we had to educate and organise. The name and policy of Sinn Fein
-were still grossly misunderstood. The public did not clearly realise
-the difference between the political body, Sinn Fein, and the military
-organisation—the Irish Volunteers. The Insurrection of 1916 was commonly
-called the “Sinn Fein Rising,” and our Volunteers were spoken of as the
-“Sinn Fein Volunteers.” Even the Republican Tricolour—the Green, White
-and Orange of the Young Ireland Party of 1848, and of the Fenians of
-the next generation—was called the “Sinn Fein Flag.” But misnomers did
-not trouble us very much, for the Sinn Fein body had been adjusting
-its programme to suit Republican ideals. And now when Sinn Fein clubs
-were springing up in every parish, it was quite usual to find that the
-President or the Secretary of the club was also captain of the local
-Volunteer corps. The majority of the younger men in the Sinn Fein
-Political Organisation were also Volunteers; and the Volunteers were also
-members of the Sinn Fein club.
-
-During the period of the Election the people went Sinn Fein mad. We
-had most of the clergy with us, and the earnestness and enthusiasm of
-our speakers and organisers swept the country. The political wing of
-the Republican cause spread like wild-fire; but our army was gradually
-dwindling. While we lamented this decay on the military side, we saw
-the necessity of making an enormous success of the elections, hoping to
-restore our army to its proper strength when the election was over. So
-we threw ourselves heart and soul into the contest, and worked night
-and day for the Republican candidates. We didn’t leave a dead wall or
-a cross-roads in the country that we did not decorate with appeals to
-“Rally to Sinn Fein,” “Vote for the Republic,” “Stand by the men of
-1916.” Such were the rallying calls addressed to the people during those
-few critical weeks. No secret was made of our policy. Every Republican
-was pledged never to take his seat in the British Parliament, but to work
-at home in Ireland for the establishment and recognition of the Republic.
-
-We knocked plenty of fun out of the election. Alas! many of those who
-worked hardest in those days have passed under the sod since. Our
-workers in Tipperary included Dinny Lacy, killed during the Civil War
-in his native county; Sean Duffy and Paddy Maloney (whose father was our
-successful candidate), later killed in an encounter with the British not
-far from Soloheadbeg; Sean Allen, who was executed by the British in Cork
-Jail; “Sparkie” Breen, also killed in the Civil War. But these memories
-only serve to remind one of the fine fellows we have lost. Anyhow we won
-every seat in Munster, except Waterford City. Leinster and Connaught did
-equally well, and in Ulster we won several seats. The net result was that
-of the one hundred and five constituencies, seventy-three had repudiated
-British rule and plumped for an Irish Republic.
-
-A month later, on January 21st, 1919, these elected representatives of
-the vast majority of the Irish people met in public session in Dublin;
-formally proclaimed the Republic, and established a Government. The same
-day, and almost at the same hour, our little handful of Volunteers were
-striking the first blow since the formal repudiation of British authority
-by the people. But let me explain how it came about.
-
-[Illustration: SCENE OF SOLOHEADBEG AMBUSH.]
-
-After the election we had more time to review our position. The results
-had cleared the air; the people had by an overwhelming verdict given
-us moral sanction to drive the British forces out of Ireland. But the
-election work had had a serious effect on our army. Many had ceased to be
-soldiers and had become politicians. There was danger of disintegration,
-a danger which had been growing since the threat of Conscription
-disappeared a few months earlier. I was convinced that some sort of
-action was absolutely necessary. Over and over again I discussed the
-matter with Sean Treacy. I knew that if we once showed them the way,
-there were plenty of fine fellows on whom we could rely. Sooner than we
-expected the opportunity came.
-
-Let me introduce my readers to the first authentic account of the
-affair known as “The Soloheadbeg Outbreak,” or, as the hostile Press
-persistently titled it, “The Soloheadbeg Murders”; for those who read the
-newspaper versions of our struggle with England must bear in mind that
-every newspaper in Ireland was hostile to our policy, and so remained to
-the end, though a few of them lost their bitterness towards us as the
-campaign progressed. It must also be remembered that even when the “Great
-War” ended the British Press Censorship was continued in Ireland for over
-a year.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VI.
-
-SOLOHEADBEG.
-
-
-At the beginning of January, 1919, we received information to the effect
-that a quantity of explosives was to be conveyed to Soloheadbeg Quarry
-for blasting purposes. The consignment, we knew, would be guarded by
-armed policemen, as was always the rule at that time.
-
-I spoke to Sean about it. “Here is our chance,” I said, “let us start
-the war soon, or the army will lose heart.” I knew we had but a very
-small number of men with determination enough for such a job, but I knew
-too that the number would increase with time; and, in any case, it is
-quality, not quantity, that counts in guerilla warfare.
-
-We discussed the proposal for a long time. Finally we decided to disarm
-the guard and seize the explosives, for, as Sean said, there was nothing
-we needed more at that time than guns and explosives. We made a careful
-survey of the locality. We selected the spot for our first ambush. We
-knew every inch of the ground, we had been born and reared in the
-vicinity, and Sean’s own farmhouse was not a stone’s throw from the
-quarry.
-
-Soloheadbeg is a small townland about two and a half miles from Tipperary
-town, and less than a mile from the Limerick Junction. The quarry
-stands on an eminence on a little by-road. Farmhouses and cottages are
-dotted here and there in the neighbourhood, though there is no village
-nearer than Donohill, a mile and a half distant. It was in this plain,
-overshadowed by the gigantic figure of Galteemore away to the south, that
-Brian Boru and his brother Mahon fought their first great battle with
-the Danes in 968, when Brian with his gallant army of Tipperary men and
-Clare men routed the invaders, and never ceased from the pursuit till he
-reached Limerick twenty miles away and burned the town over their heads.
-The right wing of his army swept across the hills where the quarry now
-stands, as the defeated Danes fled to their stronghold.
-
-The quarry itself stands on the right, down the little by-road. There
-is a high ditch on each side of the road by which it is approached from
-Tipperary, and here and there is the further cover afforded by thick
-whitethorn bushes. I should explain that what we call a “ditch” in
-Tipperary is really a bank, or dike.
-
-Unfortunately our information regarding the date of the arrival of the
-explosives was not quite correct. We expected it on January 16th, but
-it did not come till five days later. During these five days we waited
-in readiness for the attempt. Our men had left their homes without
-giving any indication of their plans. After three days I had to send all
-home except eight. We had neither provisions to feed them nor money to
-purchase the provisions.
-
-And so the nine of us who remained were watching and waiting. The men
-who were with me were—Sean Treacy, Seumas Robinson, Sean Hogan, Tim
-Crowe, Patrick O’Dwyer, of Hollyford; Michael Ryan, of Grange (Donohill);
-Patrick McCormick, and Jack O’Meara, Tipperary.
-
-Our chief concern during these days of waiting was to avoid attracting
-attention. We did not want to be seen by any of the people in the
-locality. Those were nearly all employed at the quarry, and as the times
-were then disturbed enough any report that strangers were hanging around
-the neighbourhood might have completely upset our plans. Every morning
-before daybreak we went as noiselessly as possible to our hiding place,
-there to remain under cover, but ever on the alert, while one of our
-number acted as scout from the by-road to the main road from Tipperary,
-along which the peelers were bound to approach. There we waited in
-silence until 2 o’clock in the afternoon, and then we abandoned our
-position, knowing they would not come later, as they liked to be back in
-town before darkness set in. We spent the night at my own home, where
-my mother prepared breakfast each morning about 4 o’clock. On the fifth
-morning she declared, “If you don’t do something to-day you can get your
-own breakfast to-morrow.”
-
-At last came the fateful morning of January 21st, 1919, the day that
-was to see our country rejoice at the first meeting of the Parliament
-of Ireland, the first Dail Eireann setting up the Government of the
-Republic, and sending its message to the free nations of the earth.
-
-We had taken our place behind the ditch, and had spent many weary hours
-waiting and watching. We were quietly discussing the great event that was
-to take place in Dublin that day. Our scout was away with his eyes fixed
-on the Tipperary road. Suddenly our conversation was interrupted by our
-scout. Dashing towards us from his look-out, his eyes sparkling with the
-light of battle, and a grim smile on his countenance, he whispered the
-word of warning—“They’re coming, they’re coming!”
-
-Every man knew his post. For days we had thought of nothing but the
-position we were now in. If any of our number felt nervous or excited he
-showed little outward sign of it. Like a flash every soldier manned his
-post. Our hour of trial was at hand; we were to face the enemy, with
-life or death in the balance. And incidentally we were to open another
-phase in the long fight for the freedom of our country.
-
-Our scout was again on the alert, and again he returned to report. This
-time he gave us the actual distance, and he told us their number.
-
-Nearer and nearer they come. In the still clear air we hear the sound of
-the horses’ hoofs, and the rumbling of a heavy cart over the rough hilly
-road.
-
-That day I did not feel the same coolness that I afterwards strove to
-develop. My nerves were highly strung; I realised what we were doing, and
-I foresaw the consequences whether our plans succeeded or failed.
-
-We were facing men trained to the use of firearms, especially disciplined
-for such emergencies as this. In all probability they had but just
-completed the special course in bomb-throwing, which had lately been
-added to the accomplishments of the R.I.C. My little squad had little
-experience in the practical use of firearms. We had never been in a
-position to fire one round of ball-cartridge for the sake of practice. We
-had often chaffed one another about this want of experience, and jokingly
-referred to the probable consequences if our nerves got jumpy when
-the real time came. But we always brushed aside these idle fears, and
-maintained a calm and cheerful exterior, consoling ourselves with the
-thought, “We’re Irish anyhow, and all Irishmen are fighters by nature.”
-
-But now the hour had come. From my point of vantage I shot a hurried
-glance down the road as the party approached. The driver and the County
-Council employee who was to take over the explosives walked beside the
-horses. Two policemen in their black uniforms were also on foot carrying
-rifles in their hands. They were a little distance behind the cart.
-
-Only a moment before the blood was rushing madly through my veins; now
-when I saw them actually at hand all my nervousness disappeared, and I
-felt cool and strong again. I believed I could fight a dozen of these
-enemy forces all by myself. For the men who were now approaching had
-deserted their country, and were the spies and hirelings of her enemy.
-Nearer still they come. They talk in low tones. They are almost under the
-shadow of our revolvers.
-
-“Hands up!” The cry comes from our men as with one voice. “Hands up!” But
-no! They seize their rifles, and with the best military movement bring
-them to the ready. They were Irishmen, too, and would rather die than
-surrender.
-
-Again and again we called upon them to put up their hands. We would have
-preferred that they should surrender without bloodshed, but they were
-dogged and stubborn, and now ’twas our lives or theirs.
-
-Their fingers were on the triggers. Another appeal on our side would be
-useless—perhaps too late for ourselves.
-
-Quick and sure our volleys rang out. The aim was true. The two policemen
-were dead.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VII.
-
-OUR ESCAPE.
-
-
-Now began our career of real excitement. If we had disarmed the police
-without firing a shot the thing would not have been so serious. But the
-shots had alarmed the countryside. In a moment men and women would appear
-at every doorway. On the roadside were the two terrified civilians,
-James Godfrey, the driver of the cart, and Patrick Flynn, the County
-Council employee. Within an hour hundreds of police and military would
-be scouring the countryside for us. Henceforth I realised we were to be
-outlawed rapparees with a price on our heads.
-
-But it was a time for action. We seized the rifles and equipment of
-the police, mounted the cart, and drove away with our booty. The cart
-contained more than a hundred-weight of gelignite, but thirty electric
-detonators which Flynn had in his pocket escaped us, as we learned a week
-later.
-
-Never was a poor horse called upon to give such gallant service in a dash
-for life and liberty. Sean Hogan held the reins; Sean Treacy and I sat
-behind. The others of the party had been ordered to escape in different
-directions, and all got clear away.
-
-On we sped, urging our poor horse to greater speed, while school children
-and farmworkers watched us in amazement as we went by.
-
-We were heading for Donaskeigh. For a great part of our journey not a
-word was spoken. Treacy was the first to break the silence. He spoke in
-the same cool tones that he might have used if he were sitting round a
-fire discussing a game of cards.
-
-“Do you remember, Dan, when we were reading about explosives? The book
-says that they are dangerous if frozen, or if they get jolted?”
-
-This reminder did not add to our peace of mind, for if ever explosives
-got a jolting ours did. The road was rough and uneven; heaps of loose
-stones were scattered along the way; the cart was one of the ordinary
-farmyard type, heavily and roughly built, and without springs.
-
-But on we had to go until we reached the spot where we had decided to
-hide our booty. There we quickly deposited the gelignite, all except
-two sticks which I kept for a decoy. These I threw on the roadside at
-the spot where we eventually abandoned the horse. For months later, day
-after day, police and soldiers actually walked over our dug-out, but
-never discovered it. They had been deceived by the two loose sticks, and
-kept themselves warm by digging trenches all over the country, but their
-search was in vain.
-
-When we had hidden the booty our trouble began. The poor old horse could
-go no further. Besides we had no desire to keep him much longer, for he
-would only furnish the enemy with a clue to getting on our track later.
-We left him on the roadside and went our way. A few hours later that
-district was spotted with khaki figures, for the horse was found that
-evening at Aileen Bridge, about four miles from Tipperary town on the
-main road to Thurles.
-
-Difficulties were now looming up before our eyes. Tipperary was no longer
-safe. The weather was against us. We were tired with the excitement of
-the day, and the suspense of the days before, but we could not think
-of rest for a long while yet. The weather was intensely cold, and,
-to make things worse, it started to snow. That not only added to our
-difficulties, but there was the danger that if the snow lodged we might
-easily be traced.
-
-At Ryan’s Cross, near Aileen Bridge, we abandoned the horse. Then we
-turned to the right. Previously we had been going north, but now we
-went south-east, and gradually south towards where the Galtee mountains
-towered above us. We walked forty miles over these mountains and valleys,
-for like many before us we felt that they would give us hope and
-shelter. All through the ages since Geoffrey Keating penned his famous
-_History_ when there was a price on his head, the Galtee mountains and
-the Glen of Aherlow have been the first refuge of the Tipperary felon.
-
-We had travelled four miles after leaving the horse when we took our
-first rest at Mrs. Fitzgerald’s, of Rathclogheen, near Thomastown. There
-we had our first square meal since my mother gave us breakfast early
-that morning, and right heartily we enjoyed the ham and eggs and tea our
-hostess set before us. It was in that house that our famous countryman,
-Father Mathew, was born.
-
-But we could spare no time for lingering; we had yet to put many more
-miles between us and Soloheadbeg. We resumed our journey towards the
-mountains. At Keville’s Cross we crossed the Cahir and Tipperary Road.
-The cold was bitter, and the wind was piercing. The only other living
-things we saw out in the open were two mountain goats, spancelled
-together near the cross-roads. Several times we lost our way after that.
-We dare not call to a strange wayside farmhouse, for at that time the
-people had not learned to keep a shut mouth. At one point Sean Treacy
-fell into a drain about twenty feet deep, and we thought he was killed.
-When we got him out we found he was little the worse for his fall, and
-he assured us he would fire another shot before handing in his gun. We
-continued our journey towards the summit. Once when we had traversed the
-Glen and climbed Galteemore’s rugged slopes from the Tipperary side,
-we lost our bearings on the top. In the height of the summer you will
-find it chilly enough on Galteemore. You can imagine how we felt that
-evening in the heart of winter. It had taken us three hours to climb,
-but after all our exertions we wandered back to the two goats—back to
-our starting-point. In despair we abandoned all hope of crossing the
-mountain. As Sean Hogan said then, “’tis all very well for poets sitting
-in easy chairs at the fireside to write about the beauties of mountains,
-but if they had to climb them as we had, hungry and cold, they would be
-in no mood to appreciate the beauties of nature.”
-
-When we returned to Keville’s Cross we decided on a new plan. We crossed
-on to the railway line, and determined to face for Cahir. It was lucky we
-did so. We had not gone many miles along the line when we saw the lights
-of the military lorries that were scouring the roads in search of us. Had
-we been down on the road we could never have avoided them.
-
-A railway is a tiresome road to travel, even at ordinary times. For us
-in our condition that night it was cruel. Yet we had to keep on. Once in
-the thick darkness I saw a black figure a few paces ahead. I was walking
-in front and promptly levelled my revolver, with the order “hands up!”
-The figure remained motionless, having apparently halted at my command. I
-advanced, with my gun still levelled, and walked into a railway signpost
-with the warning, “Trespassers will be prosecuted.” Unhappy though our
-plight was, the boys laughed at my mistake, and I had to laugh myself
-with them.
-
-A little farther on Sean Hogan asked us to stop for a moment, as his
-boot was feeling loose. Sean Treacy tied the lace, but he did not travel
-much farther till he again complained that it was loose. Sean stopped to
-examine it, and found that the whole boot was practically worn away by
-the rocks and boulders. Only a bit of a sole and the laced portion of the
-upper remained.
-
-All the time Sean Treacy tried to keep our spirits from drooping.
-Several times we asked him how far more was it to Cahir, and always got
-the reply, “the next turn of the road.” He was right, of course; but
-as the road and the railway which runs parallel to it are an almost
-perfect straight line for three miles, the next turn was a long way off.
-Now and again we were so exhausted that we used to stand and rest our
-heads against the ditch by the railway side to take a sleep—or what we
-persuaded ourselves was a sleep—for five minutes.
-
-At last we reached Cahir. We were now as near to absolute collapse as
-men could be. We were becoming desperate. For the first time we had
-to assume that outward coolness, and take that risk which later became
-almost part of our daily routine. We walked right through the town of
-Cahir, a garrison town on the main road from Limerick to Clonmel and
-Waterford, and only fifteen miles from Soloheadbeg. But we had to take
-the risk. Our blood was almost congealed with cold, we were ravenously
-hungry, and there was little life left in us. But we knew one good friend
-on whom we could rely for a night’s shelter. That friend was Mrs. Tobin,
-of Tincurry House, near Cahir. I shall never forget her kindness to us
-that night and to others of the boys later. The British afterwards bombed
-and destroyed the house in daylight as an “official reprisal” for the
-shooting of District-Inspector Potter, an incident to which I shall refer
-in a later chapter.
-
-We got to bed the first time for a week. The three of us were in the
-same plight. Excitement, cold and exhaustion all combined to make sleep
-impossible for us. But we lay limp for four hours, and in this way we got
-some rest for our weary limbs.
-
-We got up full of anxiety to hear the news. Since we left Soloheadbeg
-we had spoken to nobody and had not seen a newspaper. Sure enough,
-there were the big splash headings, just as we anticipated, announcing
-this “Tipperary Outrage,” “Fearful Crime,” “Murder of Two Policemen,”
-and such like. We saw, too, an account of the inquest on the dead men,
-Constable McDonnell and O’Connell. Most of the news of the incident was
-absolutely wrong, as it often was later on. We learned, too, that two
-young men had been arrested on suspicion, but neither had anything to do
-with the affair, and they were released in a few days. Two schoolboys
-from the locality, Matthew Hogan, aged fifteen, a brother of Sean’s; and
-Timothy Connors, aged eleven, were also arrested by the British, as they
-were supposed to have seen us. The father of the boy Connors had been
-a workman employed on the farm of Sean Treacy’s mother. Both boys were
-detained for months in an effort to get them to give information, and,
-in the case of Connors, a great legal action ensued, which resulted in
-a verdict against the Commandant of the R.I.C. Headquarters for illegal
-detention.
-
-[Illustration: POLICE NOTICE.
-
-£1000 REWARD
-
-WANTED FOR MURDER IN IRELAND.
-
-DANIEL BREEN
-
-(calls himself Commandant of the Third Tipperary Brigade).
-
-Age 27, 5 feet 7 inches in height, bronzed complexion, dark hair (long in
-front), grey eyes, short cocked nose, stout build, weight about 12 stone,
-clean shaven; sulky bulldog appearance; looks rather like a blacksmith
-coming from work; wears cap pulled well down over face.
-
-The above reward will be paid by the Irish Authorities, to any person not
-in the Public Service who may give information resulting in his arrest.
-
-Information to be given at any Police Station.
-
-S.O. 14591. (G. 40). 5,000. 11.20.—A. T. & Co., Ltd.]
-
-Meantime our episode at Soloheadbeg had had its first effects. South
-Tipperary, that is half the county, had been proclaimed a “military
-area.” That, for all practical purposes, meant martial law. Fairs,
-markets and meetings were prohibited; military reinforcements were rushed
-into the district and garrisons were established at villages which had
-never before sheltered a British soldier. Night and day they patrolled
-the roads and scoured the fields. Our little band had unmasked England.
-She had now to come out in the open and let the world see that she held
-Ireland by naked force, and by force alone.
-
-We also learned that a reward of £1,000 was offered for any information
-that would lead to our capture. A few months later this offer was
-increased to £10,000. Nobody earned it nor indeed tried to earn it,
-except a few members of the R.I.C. They failed, and most of them never
-tried a second time.
-
-These are the plain, unvarnished facts concerning the first shots fired
-after the Insurrection of 1916. These shots were the first of a series
-that were to bring Ireland’s name once more before the world, and to make
-the nations look on in admiration at Ireland’s fight for freedom.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VIII.
-
-HELPED BY THE BRITISH.
-
-
-We spent two nights in Mrs. Tobin’s house. Then we went to Ned McGrath’s,
-of Tincurry, and from there we were taken by Ned to Gorman’s, of
-Burncourt Castle. We then arranged to go to Ryan’s of Tubrid, and sent
-on word that they might expect us. But after sending word we changed
-our minds and did not go to Tubrid; and lucky it was for us—or for
-somebody else. Just at the time we had expected to be there the house was
-surrounded by eight peelers, and Ryan himself was arrested.
-
-We decided to go on to Mitchelstown in County Cork, at the other end of
-the Galtees. We spent a night in O’Brien’s, of Ballagh, and while we were
-there a strange thing occurred. We were sleeping upstairs when strange
-voices aroused us. We looked out and saw several peelers just entering
-the house. We at once got ready for a fight, expecting to see them
-mounting the stairs at any moment. But they never came. In a few minutes
-they took their departure. Then we learned that the object of their
-visit was to ascertain if the owner of the house had paid the licence for
-his dogs.
-
-Finally we reached Mitchelstown where we met Christie Ryan, who welcomed
-us and gave us the shelter of his house. While we were there we saw eight
-armed policemen pass the door. They were guarding a little packet of
-blasting powder. Evidently the Soloheadbeg affair had taught them to take
-no chances, and now they had quadrupled the escort.
-
-Later we came across into East Limerick, where Ned O’Brien, of Galbally,
-put us up, and then we travelled farther to the Maloneys, of Lackelly,
-the scene of a great battle with the British two years later. At Lackelly
-we stayed about a week.
-
-But you must understand our position all this time since the affair at
-Soloheadbeg. We were still within a radius of ten miles of the scene.
-Police and military were scouring the countryside for us, searching
-houses, ditches and woods. The clergy, the public and the press had all
-condemned our action. Our only consoling thought was that so were the
-men of ’98, and the Fenians of ’67, and then the men of 1916 condemned
-in their day, and we knew that as the cause of these men had been
-vindicated, so too would our cause when the scales fell from the people’s
-eyes. At this time, however, scarce a word would be heard in our defence.
-Our point of view was not even to be listened to. The people had voted
-for a Republic, but now they seemed to have abandoned us who tried to
-bring that Republic nearer, and who had taken them at their word.
-
-Our former friends shunned us. They preferred the drawing-room as their
-battle ground, and the political resolution rather than the gun as their
-weapon. We had heard the gospel of freedom preached to us; we believed in
-it, we wanted to be free, and we were prepared to give our lives as proof
-of the faith that was in us. But those who preached the gospel were not
-prepared to practise it.
-
-Even from the Irish Volunteers or the Irish Republican Army, as it has
-now come to be called, we got no support. Ned O’Brien and James Scanlan
-of Galbally, Paddy Ryan of Doon, and Davy Burke of Emly, certainly stood
-by us; but they were the exceptions.
-
-When the news of the Soloheadbeg affair became public, a meeting was
-actually summoned in Tipperary town by a man who should have been our
-friend. His purpose was to dissociate Sinn Fein from the incident, and
-to denounce us for our action. The meeting was, however, called off
-by another prominent man. A local clergyman in a sermon, in which he
-denounced us as murderers, said that it used to be the custom to say,
-“Where Tipperary leads Ireland follows,” but he hoped this would not be
-so in the case of Soloheadbeg, the men responsible for which would, he
-said, go to their graves with the brand of Cain on their foreheads. Such
-were the things said about us, but we kept on our course.
-
-In many places we were refused shelter on a night that one would not put
-out a dog. I remember on one occasion we were sitting in a farmhouse by
-the fireside when a loud knock was made at the door. It was dark, and the
-farmer did not care to open without knowing who was outside.
-
-“Who’s there?” he demanded.
-
-“Police!” came the prompt reply.
-
-Simultaneously we drew our revolvers. The door was opened, and a young
-neighbouring farmer entered, laughing heartily at his attempted joke.
-Before we could put away our guns the owner of the house observed them.
-At once his attitude towards us changed. He informed us point blank that
-he would not permit men with guns to stay under his roof. It was bitterly
-cold, but we had to go out into one of the outhouses for the night. So
-chilled were we there that we had to drive in some of the cows to keep us
-warm.
-
-We had to keep tramping from parish to parish without a penny in our
-pockets. Our clothes and boots were almost worn out, and we had no
-changes. Many whom we thought we could trust would not let us sleep even
-in their cattle byres.
-
-When we reached the village of Dono, in County Limerick—still only seven
-miles from Soloheadbeg—we again met with Seumas Robinson, and I need
-hardly say that our joy at the reunion was unbounded. Although it was
-only a few weeks since we parted after the fight at Soloheadbeg, we all
-felt like brothers meeting after years of separation. When we met we
-continued our night’s march linked arm in arm.
-
-While we were in this neighbourhood Paddy Ryan, a well-known local
-merchant and an old worker in the cause of freedom, proved a staunch
-friend to us. With Seumas again one of our band we discussed the outlook
-and the chances of winning over the people to engage in “one good
-stand-up fight” against the old enemy. We then drafted a proclamation
-ordering all the enemy forces out of South Tipperary. We sent it on to
-Dublin, but both An Dail and General Headquarters refused their consent
-to let us go ahead. We never found out their reason for doing so. Ours
-was the only logical position.
-
-Withholding their support was a bad blow enough—but what was our horror
-when we found that someone had actually worked up a plan to ship us
-away to America! We were not consulted at all, but calmly told to be
-ready to sail in a couple of days. It was surely a sugar-coated pill! A
-deportation order in disguise, issued from the very source that should,
-if consistent, get behind us in the war. We refused to leave Ireland.
-We told them that we were not afraid to die, but would prefer to live
-for Ireland. To leave Ireland would be like an admission that we were
-criminals, or that we were cowards. Now, more than ever we declared that
-our place was in Ireland, and Ireland’s fight would have to be made
-by Irishmen on the hills and at the cross-roads in Ireland, not with
-printer’s ink in America, or in any other country. This was apparently
-regarded as a breach of discipline. We were members of an organised body
-and should obey our superior officers. They persisted in their plan
-of sending us away, and we, just as obstinately, refused to leave. At
-length we won, but only on condition that we should remain away in some
-remote part of the country. We felt that we could very soon overcome that
-difficulty too.
-
-While these little quibbles were going on between G.H.Q. and ourselves
-we were suffering intensely. The cold weather and the weary, aimless
-travelling around were very trying on us. We could not get a horse to
-carry us even a journey of a few miles. We had to trudge from field to
-field, sometimes in one direction, sometimes in another. At last human
-nature began to assert itself. Why should we be treated so? Was not the
-sky as fair in one place as in another?
-
-From Doon we went to Upperchurch, in the north of Tipperary. There
-we spent a few days with Patrick Kinnane, one of a family of famous
-Irish athletes; our next resting-place we decided would be Meagher’s
-of Annfield. We sent on word that they might expect us to arrive at
-half-past seven in the evening, when it would be quite dark. The four
-of us, accompanied by Patrick Kinnane, walked along the road, chatting
-and enjoying the cool spring air. We must have taken our time along the
-way, for Treacy looked at his watch and reminded us that we were overdue,
-as it was now nearly eight o’clock. Suddenly in the distance we saw
-something white fluttering in the darkness. We halted. It was a signal by
-a girl who was trying to attract our attention.
-
-The four of us dropped into a place of concealment behind a thick hedge.
-The girl saw us and approached along the road. As she passed the spot in
-which she had seen us hide she whispered the words:—
-
-“The peelers are inside, raiding!”
-
-She was one of the Misses Meagher who had slipped out unnoticed by the
-police to give warning, knowing the road by which we would come.
-
-From our point of vantage we waited until we saw the forces of the
-British law depart to their barracks. Then we proceeded on our way, and
-entered the house they had been raiding, where we enjoyed a pleasant tea.
-
-From Meagher’s we came south again to Leahy’s of Boherlahan, the famous
-family of Tipperary hurlers. After that we went to Donnelly’s, of
-Nodstown, in the same district, where we held a meeting of our Brigade
-Council on a Sunday evening. With our colleagues we discussed plans for
-more active operations, and produced the proclamation we had drawn up
-ordering all British armed forces to leave South Tipperary under penalty
-of death. Although Headquarters had refused their sanction we decided
-to publish it. About the end of February it was posted up in several
-parts of the county. The newspapers published it with mocking headlines.
-It seemed a tall order no doubt at the time, but subsequent events
-showed that we saw further ahead than either the newspapers or our own
-Headquarters gave us credit for.
-
-After that meeting we decided to return northwards towards Creany,
-sending word ahead as we always did. We sent a message to Patrick Kinnane
-to meet us with a car, and started our long tramp in the dismal night.
-
-At Upperchurch we were met by Kinnane, Doherty and Patrick Dwyer, and we
-headed for Murphy’s house at Creany. It was three o’clock in the morning
-when we reached our destination. Seldom did we suffer more than that
-night from cold and exposure. The weather was harsh, even for February,
-and the district was wild and mountainous.
-
-When we arrived at Murphy’s house we were ravenously hungry. Murphy was a
-great character. He was locally known as “the Stationmaster”—why, I don’t
-know, for the nearest railway station was fifteen miles from his house.
-He was preparing a great meal of smoked ham and eggs for us. So hungry
-was Hogan that instinctively, and half unconsciously, he began to eat the
-raw ham as it was being put on the frying pan. In a few minutes he was
-seriously ill, and we thought he was going to die. He soon revived, but
-for weeks afterwards he was far from well. His illness at this time was
-very unfortunate for us, because we had made up our minds, in spite of
-Headquarters’ orders, that we would try to get to Dublin, as we could no
-longer endure the misery of our existence.
-
-With that purpose we went from Creany to the Falls of Donass, that most
-glorious and picturesque spot on the Shannon just across the Limerick
-border from North Tipperary. Then we parted with Robinson and Treacy, who
-started on their perilous journey to Dublin, while I remained behind with
-Hogan until he would be himself again. They arrived in Dublin safely,
-and were welcomed by a few sympathetic friends. A full and accurate
-description of each one of us, with the reward offered for information
-that might lead to our capture, appeared every week in the _Hue and Cry_,
-the official police gazette, and so it was no easy thing for them either
-to travel to the city, or to get about when they had arrived there.
-
-Meantime Hogan and I could not stay long in the district round the Keeper
-Mountains. But Tommy McInerney came out from Limerick with a motor car,
-accompanied by Tim Ryan. McInerney was the man who drove the ill-fated
-motor car which went to meet Roger Casement on Good Friday of 1916, when
-the car ran over a cliff in Kerry, and two of the occupants were drowned,
-McInerney himself escaping.
-
-Tim Ryan knew of a friendly priest in West Limerick who would give us
-shelter, and we started on our journey to meet one of the truest friends
-we ever made—a certain sagairt whose praises I should like to sound here,
-but who does not wish his name to be made known. Sean Hogan sat in front
-with McInerney, who was driving, Ryan and I being in the back.
-
-For a time our journey was uneventful until we approached Limerick City.
-We were suddenly confronted by lorry loads of soldiers dashing along in
-the direction of Tipperary. We knew they were on some big round up. We
-did not know then, though we found out later, that they had received
-information that we were lying in a certain hiding place, and scores of
-troops with armoured cars were being rushed to the scene.
-
-Never since we left Soloheadbeg did we feel in such a tight corner. One
-flash of suspicion on the part of a single officer of the party would
-have ruined us. At that time we knew that more than one British soldier,
-even privates, had fond hopes of earning the reward for our capture, and
-many of them had been at great pains to study our descriptions. Besides,
-it was comparatively easy for them then, in the spring of 1919, for we
-were then the only “much wanted men,” as the newspapers described us.
-
-An apparently endless line of lorries approached us—every soldier armed
-to the teeth, every lorry equipped with a machine gun. The smallest
-show of concern on our part meant our death warrant: the slightest sign
-of fear or anxiety would betray us. And there was no turning back. To
-attempt such a thing would be an open challenge by three men to several
-hundred soldiers. Coolness and bluff were our only hope.
-
-We passed the first twenty lorries without turning a hair. We just looked
-at the troops with that gaze of curiosity mingled with admiration that
-one might expect from any loyal citizen watching his gallant protectors
-go by. We had passed the greater part of the convoy, and were beginning
-to feel more at our ease, when suddenly rounding a corner we were
-confronted by a sentry with rifle upraised and called on to “’alt.” Our
-driver at once put on the brakes and pulled up.
-
-We now realised why the other braves had allowed us to pass unchallenged.
-We had been led into an ambush—permitted to get right into the middle
-of the convoy, so that we had not a dog’s chance of escaping. It was a
-cunning trap, but we would show them how Irishmen can die rather than
-surrender. It was all up with us, but we would sell our lives as dearly
-as we could.
-
-I pulled my gun. For a fraction of a second I fingered it fondly under
-the rug rapidly deciding where I should send my bullets with best effect.
-I had my finger on the trigger ready to raise my arm to fire when an
-officer dashed up.
-
-“Sorry for delaying you, gentlemen,” he shouted.
-
-This did not look like an ambush. I gently lowered my gun from view, and
-waited for his next words.
-
-He was the captain in charge of the party. “Two of the ‘beastly’
-cars, you know, have broken down,” he explained, “and ’twas awfully
-unfortunate, don’t you know, but the traffic was almost completely
-blocked.” He apologised profusely for the delay, but he feared there
-was not enough room for our car to pass. “’twas jolly rotten,” but he
-thought we should have to get out and walk.
-
-By this time I had quite recovered my composure. I told him politely but
-firmly that we had an important business appointment to keep, and that
-any further delay might mean serious loss to us. Besides, I said, we had
-travelled far, and a long motor journey was not good for rheumatics, and
-we were far too tired to walk.
-
-I think he was really impressed by my protest. At that stage British
-officers regarded an Irishman who could travel in a motor car as a
-person of importance who might get a “question raised in the House,” if
-treated rudely. A year or two later I know what he would have said to any
-Irishman met on the road.
-
-He suddenly turned to his men, ordered three or four of them to drop
-their rifles and push us in our car for about two hundred yards till we
-had passed the broken-down lorries, and could take the middle of the road
-again.
-
-Never did I feel more inclined to laugh. Here was a section of the
-British Army actually going out of its way to save us the trouble of
-walking, while the same army was day and night searching the countryside
-for us. What a pretty heading it would have been for the _Morning
-Post_—“Wanted Gunmen aided and abetted by the British Army!”
-
-We were more profuse in our thanks to the soldiers, assured them they
-need not push our car any further, and were very sorry to have them put
-to so much trouble. A moment later we waved them good-bye, and were
-dashing along the road to Foynes. I can assure you that the speed of our
-car was tested for the next quarter of an hour in case by any chance
-the obliging soldiers might get suspicious, and come after us to make
-enquiries. But Sean and I laughed heartily when we had left them behind.
-It was the first time since we had become outlaws that the British helped
-us to escape; it was not the last, for more than once I had reason to
-feel grateful to their stupidity in helping me out of difficulties when
-they little knew who I was.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IX.
-
-OUR RETURN TO SOLOHEADBEG.
-
-
-That evening we reached our destination—the house of the priest to whom I
-have already referred. Here we got a right hearty welcome. No trouble was
-spared to make us feel happy and cheerful. The housekeeper—Molly—was like
-a mother to us. She was a bit of a dictator, too, where dictation was for
-our good. When she had given us a good hearty meal she ordered both of us
-to bed, where we remained for two whole days. Can you wonder that we felt
-loth to leave the blankets, with memories of newspapers, dirty straw and
-damp hay still fresh in our minds?
-
-After two days’ rest I felt fit and active again, but Hogan was still
-far from well. We can never forget Molly’s kindness during this time.
-No trouble was too great for her to make us comfortable. I believe it
-was her kindness and good cookery that really brought us to. And she
-was always good-humoured and cheerful. It was a tonic to hear her merry
-laugh, her banter and her bright homely talk. It was all so different
-to what we had been accustomed to for months. Up to this the people who
-spoke to us at all never raised their voices above a whisper. Sometimes
-we had to laugh when we saw the caution they exercised before giving any
-sign that they recognised us. Whenever we met an acquaintance on the road
-he looked behind, to the right and to the left, before saluting us. Many
-of them, I suppose, were afraid that if we were caught soon after meeting
-them they might lie under suspicion, and there is nothing an Irishman
-fears more than to be thought an informer.
-
-It was amusing to observe the frightened look that came into people’s
-eyes when they recognised us. Of course, there was often a good reason
-for their fright, for we were often several weeks without making the
-acquaintance of a razor. But one is not particular about personal beauty
-when there is an army at one’s heels, and ten thousand pounds on one’s
-head.
-
-No wonder then that Molly’s good nature and good humour were such a tonic
-to us. And she was brave as well as kind. She would inspire us with hope
-when everything looked black. She was unshaken in her conviction that
-no harm would come to us; that God, as she said, would save us from our
-enemies. She always kept a lamp burning before the image of the Sacred
-Heart, in intercession for our welfare, and I am sure that many a decade
-of her beads she said for us too.
-
-But if Molly was a brick the priest was a thousand bricks. Like Molly,
-he never counted the cost of “harbouring outlaws.” We were welcome to
-his roof and to his table as long as we cared to stay, and everything
-that his house held, or that he could command, was at our service. We
-certainly enjoyed our stay at ⸺, and would have liked to prolong it, but
-it was not safe to stay over-long in the same district, and we felt it
-was not fair to our host. Moreover, we wanted to be on the move to try
-what we could be doing to put more life into the cause. After a stay of a
-few weeks in this place we went on to Rathkeale.
-
-Here for the first time I met Sean Finn—as fine a type of brave and
-chivalrous Irishman as ever lived. He was then but a mere youth, but he
-had been elected Commandant of his Battalion. Imbued with a passionate
-desire to strike a blow for the old land he was brave almost to rashness.
-But, alas! for Ireland, he fell in his first battle with the enemy about
-a year and a half later. My highest tribute to the memory of this gallant
-soldier of Ireland!
-
-We did not stay long in Rathkeale. We were restless, and longing for
-action. We were anxious, too, to know how Sean Treacy and Seumas Robinson
-were faring in Dublin. At this time we saw the newspapers every day, and
-we knew that they had so far escaped. At last, we got into communication
-with them and arranged to meet them again. We felt that the fates would
-have the four of us joined hands again, and stand or fall together. So
-Sean Hogan and I worked our way from West Limerick back towards the
-eastern end of the county, to the borders of South Tipperary. Once more
-we found ourselves in a place where we had already received shelter and
-hospitality—at Lackelly, near Emly. We were thus within six or seven
-miles of Soloheadbeg again, and within a few miles of the spot where
-a few weeks later we were to have our next most exciting and dramatic
-adventure—Knocklong.
-
-At Lackelly we met Treacy and Robinson once more. We felt like a group of
-schoolboys on a holiday. Somehow when the four of us were together all
-the dark clouds seemed to scatter. We forgot we were hunted outlaws with
-a heavy price on our heads, and when we met we talked and joked long into
-the night, and exchanged our experiences and our adventures since we had
-parted. Treacy and Robinson had gone about Dublin freely and openly, and
-had quite a pleasant time. We, on our part, tried to make them jealous by
-telling them of our great time at the priest’s house, and were able to
-boast of being helped by the British soldiers on our way to that place.
-
-Seumas was able to retort with an equally amusing experience. It seems
-that on their way from Tipperary to Dublin the car broke down just
-at Maryboro’ Jail, and immediately several soldiers rushed to their
-assistance to get it started again. In Dublin, too, they had many
-adventures, but these I cannot go into.
-
-Meantime, the police and military were still busy searching the whole
-county of Tipperary for us, and digging up gardens and bogs in search
-of the missing explosives. They watched our haunts, and raided every
-place we were ever known to frequent. In spite of the difficulties this
-state of things created, the four of us determined that it was useless
-to remain inactive. The encounter at Soloheadbeg stirred the country,
-and showed the Volunteers what could be done, but our absence might
-nullify these effects. The three months that had passed since then seemed
-to us to have been wasted. The I.R.A. was still only a name. In theory
-there was a fairly good organisation. Every county had its Brigade and
-its Battalions, and arms were not altogether lacking, but of what use,
-we asked ourselves, are men who are soldiers only in name, and of guns
-that are oiled and cleaned but never fired? The men were not wanting in
-courage, but they needed more initiative. At that time all they could do
-was go to jail. All over the country men were allowing themselves to be
-arrested and imprisoned for drilling or carrying arms, but they never
-seemed to think of using the arms rather than go to jail.
-
-We made up our minds when we met at Lackelly that this business of going
-to jail and becoming cheap heroes must stop. We wanted a real army, not a
-hollow mockery. Even if such an army numbered a few score only, it would
-be far better than the present organisation. We thought Soloheadbeg would
-have been followed by active operations all over the country, but now it
-was becoming a mere memory.
-
-In this frame of mind, and with these resolutions we procured four
-bicycles and headed straight for Donohill—back to the very scene of our
-first battle, back into the middle of the military net that martial law
-had drawn round the whole county. Donohill is about two miles north of
-the Soloheadbeg quarry, and our route took us by the very road where we
-waited so long for the enemy, and where we at last met them. It was our
-first journey past the scene since January 21st, and you can picture our
-feelings as we saw the familiar hill once more and the turn of the road
-where the peelers appeared. We dismounted and lingered for a while in the
-neighbourhood. I am sure many of the people around never expected to lay
-eyes on us again, for in the old days the usual thing for men in our
-position to do was to clear away to America. But our work was in Ireland,
-and we were going to see it through to the end.
-
-At Donohill we appeared to the Horan family like men who had come back
-from the grave. When they realised we were not ghosts, they gave us a
-typical Irish welcome, and we joked and laughed long into the night. They
-didn’t forget to keep somebody on the look-out by the road to make sure
-we would not be surprised. With the Horans we stayed till the following
-night.
-
-My own house was only half a mile away, and, needless to remark, I took
-the opportunity to see my mother. It was a great surprise for her, but a
-very welcome one. During my period on the run I dare not even send her
-a card, for it would bring her endless annoyance from the enemy, and
-probably give them useful information, for they never scrupled to open
-letters going through the post. Poor woman! She was very brave and in
-the best of spirits, in spite of the fact that her little home was often
-raided and ransacked three times in twenty-four hours, in the early dawn,
-and in the dead of night. It gave me great courage to see her and to talk
-to her again. But I should not delay long, and I bade her good-bye again,
-taking with me her warm blessing as I left.
-
-The dear old soul has suffered much for the crime of having taught her
-sons their duty to their country. Even the house over her head was
-looted and burned, and her hens and chickens had to pay the price of
-English hate, for they were bayoneted by the Black and Tans. Through
-all her trials she never lost heart, and would always have her jibe at
-the enemy. Once when the British came and asked if her son was in, she
-sarcastically asked them if they would venture under the same roof with
-him. On another occasion in reply to the same question she told them I
-was upstairs, and invited them to enter. Their response to the invitation
-was a precipitate retreat to seek cover.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER X.
-
-SEAN HOGAN CAPTURED.
-
-
-From Donohill we went to Rossmore, and then on to Rosegreen, and finally
-into Clonmel—the Headquarters of the R.I.C. for South Tipperary, and a
-large garrison town. We spent several days in that district, and were
-not idle. We met the local officers of the I.R.A.—they belonged to our
-brigade—and found out what plans they had. We did our best to induce them
-to get things moving more rapidly, and to get on with the real serious
-work.
-
-One morning while in Clonmel district I had an unusual adventure, not
-very exciting in its own way, but one that I feared was going to prove
-more than exciting for me. As I was cycling up Mockler’s Hill at 2
-o’clock in the morning, when it was still pitch dark, a cyclist coming in
-the opposite direction rode right into me. I got the full force of his
-handle-bars over the heart. I was thrown helplessly to the ground, and
-vomited a quantity of blood. I thought I was going to die. The prospect
-of such an inglorious end did not improve me, nor hasten my recovery.
-To be killed in action by an enemy bullet was a fate I did not at all
-dread; but I strongly objected to being killed by the handle-bars of an
-ordinary, inoffensive push-bicycle, and, to make things worse, I pictured
-myself being identified by the R.I.C. and kicked into an even worse
-condition than that in which the cyclist left me. However, my recovery
-was more rapid than I hoped for. I have always had a bad habit of pulling
-myself together very quickly. In a short time I was able to mount my
-bicycle again, and ride to my destination.
-
-On the 10th of May, 1919, we retraced our steps to the village of
-Rossmore. It was now almost four months since the affair at Soloheadbeg.
-During that time we had been sleeping where and when we got the chance;
-sometimes in a barn, sometimes in a cattle-shed, and very seldom in bed.
-Our health was not any the worse of our hardships. I suppose with time
-one grows hardened. Even this night when we got to Rossmore we were
-feeling fit and game, although we had been four nights without any rest.
-Still, we could do with a few hours’ sleep. Somebody we met mentioned
-casually to us that there was a dance that night in Eamon O’Duibhir’s
-house in Ballagh, only a short distance away. We forgot about our
-weariness; we forgot about our danger. We were young, and had grown
-accustomed by now to taking risks, and it was long since we had had the
-pleasure of a dance or a ceilidhe.
-
-Without a second thought we faced for Ballagh. Soon we were in the
-thick of the night’s fun. It felt glorious to be back again, even for
-one night, in the atmosphere of light-hearted gaiety. For nearly two
-years I had not mingled with a crowd, and here I was now in the midst
-of a typical Tipperary party. The music was great, and the supper and
-refreshments were even better. For once we forgot the dark clouds over
-us; we laughed and talked and danced in the reels and in the sets with
-the lads and the lassies—in the middle of the Martial Law area, and at a
-time when probably a dozen British raiding parties were breaking in doors
-in cottages and farmhouses looking for us.
-
-Of course, the boys and girls all knew us. They, like so many others
-before and after, had only to slip out, any one of them, go to the
-nearest police barracks, not two miles away, and earn a thousand pounds
-by saying where we were. But they never dreamed of such a thing. Neither
-did we ever dream of suspecting any one in the party, or in any other
-party of Irish-Irelanders. Every one of them would cut off his hand
-before he would touch that Saxon gold. Irishmen have many faults, but
-very, very few informers are bred amongst them.
-
-We danced all through the night, and in the early hours of the morning I
-returned with a few of the boys to Rossmore. The other three did not come
-with me; they stayed on for a few more dances, but we had arranged to
-meet at O’Keeffe’s, of Glenough, where we would have a right good sleep.
-Shortly after I arrived there Sean Treacy and Seamus Robinson put in an
-appearance. Sean Hogan did not come with them, but none of us felt a bit
-uneasy. He had two days to go before he reached his eighteenth birthday,
-but we knew he was well able to look after himself.
-
-The three of us were about as tired as we could be. What with our five
-nights without sleep, and the fatigue of a night’s dancing, we could have
-slept, as Sean said, on a bed of briars. The sight of the cosy bed that
-had been made ready for us almost made us sleep before we turned into it.
-
-I think Sean Treacy had not finished his rosary before I fell asleep.
-The next sound I heard was the voice of Patrick Kinnane. It seemed very
-far off. He was speaking to me I knew, but my eyes refused to open. Then
-I was brought to my senses. His words lifted me clean out of the bed; I
-realised the full meaning of his early intrusion: Hogan had been captured
-by the Peelers!
-
-It would have been very easy for us to believe that “J.J.,” as we
-called him—his name was John Joseph—had been shot. But to think he was
-arrested! I would not believe it. Was Kinnane joking? I turned to Sean
-Treacy, for he too was on his feet by now, and I read the truth in his
-face.
-
-I would have given a fortune for a few hours more of sleep. I never felt
-so tired and weary in my life. Robinson and Treacy were just as bad. But
-the thought of “J.J.” in the enemy’s clutches brought us quickly to our
-senses. Without a moment’s hesitation we made our decision. Our faces
-rather than our words conveyed to one another what was in our minds. We
-must rescue Hogan, or die in the attempt, and we knew that had any one of
-us been in Hogan’s position his decision would have been the same.
-
-Quickly we got what information there was of his capture. He left the
-dance soon after us. Before he had gone far he was surrounded by ten
-stalwart policemen. He carried his gun, of course, as we all did, but
-he never got a chance to use it. It was not until a year later that the
-British invented the happy trick of shooting prisoners “while attempting
-to escape.” If that fashion had then existed “J.J.” would not be with us
-to-day, nor would there have been much use in planning to rescue him that
-night.
-
-Our first trouble was to locate him. At that time murders of innocent
-people had not yet come into fashion, but Martial Law made people more
-careful, and few ventured out late at night or early in the morning
-because of the certainty of being held up and questioned and probably
-arrested by the British, who patrolled the roads at all hours of the
-night and day. Hence we found on our first enquiry that no one had seen
-whither Hogan’s escort had departed. They might have faced for any one of
-half a dozen garrisons—Thurles, Tipperary, or Cashel, for instance. To be
-thus left in ignorance of where to lay our plans was almost maddening,
-and we knew that every hour that passed made the danger greater, and
-that he would soon be removed to a place beyond our reach. Gladly, I
-believe, would any one of the three of us have taken the place of our
-youngest comrade. Now that he was gone from us we suddenly discovered all
-his excellent points of character, though we were never in the habit of
-paying him compliments while he was with us.
-
-We searched and enquired everywhere. We sent messengers on bicycles in
-all likely directions to endeavour to pick up a trail. But his captors
-had got too big a start. We were almost in despair when at last we got on
-the scent: we traced him to Thurles police barracks.
-
-To attempt to rescue him from that place would have been worse than
-madness. It would have been as easy to storm the gates of hell. Thurles
-is a fairly large town, and had a big garrison of both police and
-military. The barrack was strongly fortified, and the peelers were
-always on the alert. Their positions made alertness essential. They were
-in the middle of an area that was soon to become the centre of active
-warfare, and they were on the main road from Dublin to Cork. There was
-never the slightest hope of rushing the barracks or of effecting an
-entrance by a ruse, and besides, we knew that the presence of Sean Hogan
-in their stronghold would make them all the more careful, for they knew
-he was one of the four men wanted for the attack at Soloheadbeg. The
-bits of information they had picked up, and our disappearance from the
-locality made it certain to them from the first day that we were in that
-adventure.
-
-But there was one gleam of hope. We knew he would not be kept long in
-Thurles. Prisoners were only kept in these local stations for a day or
-two while the preliminary enquiries and remands were being gone through.
-Then they were transferred to one of the largest prisons—Mountjoy, Cork,
-Maryboro’, Dundalk or Belfast. In the case of Tipperary men, and indeed
-men from all over Munster, Cork was generally the destination. The odds
-were ten to one that in a day or two Sean Hogan would be taken by train
-from Thurles to Cork.
-
-Our plans were quickly completed. We would go to Emly, intercept the
-escort, hold up the train and rescue our comrade. We chose Emly for many
-reasons. It was a small station, and there were no soldiers convenient;
-the police we did not particularly mind. It was in the heart of a
-district with which we were familiar, and in which we had many friends.
-It almost touched the borders of three counties, and consequently
-increased our chances of evading pursuit, since the enemy would not
-easily discover whether we retreated to the mountains, to North Cork, to
-South Tipperary, or to East Limerick. Above all, we had faith in many of
-the boys from the neighbouring village of Galbally.
-
-But holding up a train and making arrangements for the removal of our
-rescued companion, and for our own escape, are not operations that can
-be carried out by three men. We needed help; we must get reinforcements.
-We at once secured the services of a special Volunteer despatch-rider;
-for, naturally, neither telegrams nor telephones were to be thought of.
-To trust these means of communication would be the same as to send the
-British word of our plans. Our first care was to send full details of
-our plans to the Acting Commandant of the Tipperary town Battalion, with
-orders to send us the reinforcements. Emly would be only seven miles,
-less than an hour’s cycle run, from Tipperary town.
-
-Hurriedly we decided on our course of action, and made our preparations.
-Ned Reilly and the O’Keeffe brothers gave us every help in laying our
-plans before we left Thurles.
-
-Having completed these arrangements we left the town of Thurles at 11
-o’clock on the morning of May 12th, 1919. Our hearts were sad, but we
-still had hopes, and our blood was boiling with anger, anxiety and
-excitement.
-
-[Illustration: J. J. HOGAN.]
-
-Mounted on our bicycles the three of us faced for Emly. Except for the
-hour’s sleep after the dance we had now been five nights without a rest.
-In the ordinary course Emly would have been only some thirty miles from
-us, but for obvious reasons we had to avoid the main roads, and could
-not pass near Tipperary town. We covered nearly fifty miles on that
-journey, over rough and uneven roads. It was one of the toughest rides
-we ever did. The journeys that Sean Treacy and I had done to and from
-Dublin were less wearisome. As we approached Donohill, Seumas Robinson’s
-bicycle was put out of action. We had neither the time nor the means to
-try to repair it on the roadside, but we had faithful friends. Patrick
-O’Dwyer, of Donohill, whose wife was a first cousin of Sean Hogan’s, put
-a new bicycle at our disposal, and we resumed our journey. Our fatigue
-was telling on us. We could have fallen off the bicycles and slept by the
-roadside, but the excitement and our sense of loyalty to our comrade
-kept up our strength. At Oola we actually fell asleep on our bicycles,
-but again we bestirred ourselves, and on we went doggedly, up hill and
-down dale with our teeth set and our minds fixed on rescue or death. We
-made a detour to the right, through the Martial Law area, and over the
-border into County Limerick, through the historic village of Cullen, and
-on to Ballyneety, past the ruins of the old castle, on the very same road
-that Patrick Sarsfield took on that moonlight night three hundred and
-thirty years before, when his sabre brought terror to Dutch William’s
-troops. It was a strange coincidence that we who now rode on a similar
-errand of death or glory were Tipperary outlaws, just as was Galloping
-Hogan, the man who made Sarsfield’s exploit possible that night. And we
-were going to rescue another Tipperary outlaw of the same name and clan.
-
-While Sean Treacy was reminding us of these pages of history—for he loved
-his Irish history—we were interrupted by a dull thud, and looking round
-we saw that poor Robinson had fallen off his bicycle and was fast asleep
-by the roadside. We had to keep moving, time was precious, and the three
-of us mounted again and reached Emly at half-past three on the morning of
-May 13th. On the way we had stopped once or twice to complete our plans,
-and to perfect our intelligence arrangements. Once we got a rude shock
-when a bomb dropped from Robinson’s pocket, and for a moment we thought
-we were being attacked.
-
-At Lackelly we called upon our old friends, the Maloneys, and right
-heartily we were welcomed. When we were discussing our plans, while
-enjoying a warm and much needed breakfast, May Maloney offered her
-services in any way she could help, and gladly we accepted her offer.
-She became our despatch rider for the occasion, and I do not know how we
-could have got along without her help. It was she who went to Thurles
-that morning, and sent us word that Hogan was still there. The Maloneys’
-house, by the way, was later destroyed by the Black and Tans, and both
-May Maloney and her brother Dan were imprisoned during the recent war.
-
-By 10 o’clock on the morning of May 13th, we had completed all
-arrangements for the rescue of Sean Hogan.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XI.
-
-THE RESCUE AT KNOCKLONG.
-
-
-As I have said, we arrived at Emly at 3.30 a.m. The first train on which
-the prisoner might come was not due till noon. When all was in readiness
-a few hours before noon we waited eagerly for the arrival of the men
-from Tipperary town in response to our request. As the hour approached
-we grew anxious and restive. The minutes grew into hours. Eagerly our
-eyes scanned the road from Tipperary, but no cyclist appeared. What had
-happened? We could not let ourselves believe that the help we needed
-so badly was not at hand. Eleven o’clock—still no reinforcements. The
-minutes travelled all too fast now. Half-past eleven came, and still no
-sign. And the train was due at 12!
-
-But we were not going to let Sean Hogan be taken away without a fight.
-We knew that the escort, armed with rifles, bayonets and revolvers,
-would consist of four to eight policemen, but it was possible that other
-policemen or soldiers would be on the same train. We could only fail. At
-12 o’clock the three of us rushed up to the station just as the engine
-steamed into the platform.
-
-In my hurry I dashed right into an old woman at the entrance. To save her
-I had to throw my arms around her. The two of us were swung round and
-round by the force of the collision, and I finished what must have looked
-like a dance by falling heavily to the ground. Unfortunately, there was
-no time for explanations or apologies, and I don’t know whether the poor
-woman ever heard yet the explanation of the collision. Before she could
-even see my face, I was up again and racing along the platform with my
-finger all the time on the trigger of the revolver.
-
-But there was no prisoner! We were sadly disappointed. In a sense, too,
-we felt a little relieved for there would be still time to seek help
-before the next train was due. But waiting is always the hardest part of
-any fight; suspense is more severe than action.
-
-As we returned crestfallen to our resting-place, after scanning every
-carriage, our pill was made more bitter by the thought that the Tipperary
-men had failed us. Our minds searched for other help. We thought of the
-old Galtee Battalion, the boys from the mountain districts, from Galbally
-and Ballylanders. Their Battalion we knew had lately been suspended by
-Headquarters. But we knew, too, that their hearts were right, and their
-hands strong and daring. They would not turn a deaf ear to a call like
-ours.
-
-The next train was not due from Thurles till 7 o’clock in the evening. We
-sent word to the boys of the Galtee Battalion, told them our errand and
-the danger of the work that was to be tackled. Within an hour the reply
-came. Five of their men would join us at 5 o’clock. Never before had we
-got such a heartening message.
-
-The men were as good as their word, and they came before their time.
-At 4.45 p.m. they arrived, Eamon (Ned) O’Brien, James Scanlon, J. J.
-O’Brien, Sean Lynch, and poor Martin Foley, who was hanged in Mountjoy
-Jail exactly two years later for his part in the rescue. With him was
-hanged poor Maher, who knew nothing in the world about the incident for
-which he was hanged. But they gave their lives gladly for Ireland, and
-the brave words of their last message from the foot of the gallows will
-keep their memory for ever fresh in the hearts of Irish patriots. May
-they rest in peace!
-
-We were now eight strong, five of us armed with revolvers and three
-unarmed. After a consultation we decided on a slight change of plan. Sean
-Treacy, Seumas Robinson, Ned O’Brien and myself cycled on to Knocklong,
-the next station, about three miles south of Emly. We selected Knocklong
-because, except Emly, all the other stations were held by strong British
-forces, but this being only a wayside one, and a couple of miles distant
-from a police barrack, was comparatively safe for us. If this attempt
-failed we had plans to motor to Blarney, where we could again intercept
-the escort party. The other four men we sent to Emly station with
-instructions to board the train without arousing suspicion, to find out
-what carriage our comrade was in. In that way they could give us the hint
-as soon as Knocklong was reached, and no time need be lost in getting to
-the rescue.
-
-We reached Knocklong just as the train’s departure from Emly was
-signalled. We walked up the platform looking as cool and unconcerned as
-we could, but with our guns gripped tightly in our hands. Little did
-the people who awaited the train that evening think that they were soon
-to be witnesses of a drama for which a film-producer would have given a
-fortune. In the distance we saw the smoke of the engine rise into the
-sky. Another minute and the train was pulling into the platform. At the
-same moment another train on the opposite platform came in from Cork
-direction. It was only the next day we learned that the second train
-contained a company of armed British troops for Dublin. There they
-remained within a few feet of the struggle for life or death that ensued.
-I never learned why they took no part in the struggle. Perhaps it was
-too late when they realised what was afoot.
-
-Our train had not yet come to a standstill when the signal for which we
-waited was given us by two different parties. In accordance with the
-arrangements made in Thurles the previous day a member of the I.R.A.
-Secret Service boarded the train after the prisoner, and was at the
-window to give us the signal. Our men were at their window, too, not
-knowing about the other man.
-
-There was not a moment to be lost. The train would delay only a minute,
-and we had not thought it necessary to hold up the driver. A slight
-motion of the hand from our colleagues indicated the carriage where we
-would find our man.
-
-It was a long corridor carriage divided into about a dozen small
-compartments, each shut off from the others, and a passage running
-alongside the whole way. Our Galtee men were in the passage. In one of
-the compartments we saw Sean Hogan. He sat in the middle of the seat
-handcuffed, and facing the engine. Beside him sat a sergeant of the
-police, on the other side a constable. On the opposite seat were two
-other constables—all four fully armed.
-
-Sean Treacy was, by arrangement, to take charge of the attack. He gave
-the word. Within five seconds of the arrival of the train we were
-rushing along the corridor and bursting into the prisoner’s compartment
-with our guns drawn, and with the order, “Hands up!” “Hands up!” Only a
-moment before, as we heard later, Sergeant Wallace had viciously struck
-his prisoner with the sarcastic query, “Where are Breen and Treacy now?”
-His query was answered; Breen and Treacy were at his service.
-
-As we burst in the door of the compartment, the police quickly realised
-our purpose. Constable Enright had his revolver drawn and pointed at the
-prisoner’s ear. Orders had been given the escort to shoot the prisoner
-dead if any attempt were made to rescue him. A fraction of a second
-saved Sean Hogan. It was his life or the Constable’s. The policeman was
-in the act of pulling his trigger when he was himself shot through the
-heart—death being instantaneous.
-
-And now ensued an episode in comparison with which a Wild West show
-would grow pale. The passengers realised our object. In a moment panic
-reigned. My most vivid recollection of that scene is the figure of a
-soldier-passenger, dressed in England’s khaki uniform; but under that
-uniform there beat an Irish heart. I shall never forget the triumphant
-smile on his face as he waved his hat and shouted, “Up the Republic!”
-
-I had little time for studying the passengers. That first shot prevented
-the escort from murdering their prisoner, and it was the first shot in
-a grim battle that was to end in the death of two and the wounding of
-four. With the first shot one of the policemen literally dashed himself
-through the window of the train, roaring like a wild bull. We never saw
-him again, but I heard that he ran through the country like a maniac and
-reported the fight in a very incoherent manner at Emly police barrack
-next morning.
-
-Constable Enright was dead, so that there remained Sergeant Wallace
-and Constable Reilly. A fierce and rapid exchange of shots followed.
-Constable Reilly lay stiff on the floor. We thought he was dead, but we
-soon found he was only shamming.
-
-Sergeant Wallace fought to the end. A braver man I have never seen in the
-ranks of the enemy. Several times we called on him to surrender, but he
-never answered, even when deserted by his men. The confusion and panic
-were indescribable. Cramped as we were for space, we were in danger not
-only from the bullets of the police, but also from those of our own men.
-And all the time we were struggling to push out our handcuffed comrade.
-
-We handed out our comrade in safety. Meanwhile Sergeant Wallace had also
-struggled on to the platform. I looked around me. I knew I was wounded,
-but, in the excitement, I could not know where or how seriously, though I
-knew it was in the region of the lung.
-
-Suddenly I realised that Treacy, Ned O’Brien and Scanlon were also
-wounded, and we were the only four with arms. Blood was streaming from
-all of us. The other three had lost their guns in the fight. I alone was
-in a position to fight, and I had more than the plucky sergeant to face,
-for Constable Reilly, who had shammed death a moment ago, was now out
-on the platform firing continuously from his rifle. A second bullet now
-found its mark in me. I was shot in the right arm. If Constable Reilly
-had been as cool as the old sergeant one of us would never have escaped
-alive. He saw my revolver drop from my wounded hand—and he saw me pick it
-up again. If he had been quick he would have dashed my brains out before
-I got the chance to do so. I had always prepared for such an emergency as
-this. I had practised so that I was as good a marksman with my left hand
-as with my right. I fired again, and at Reilly, and when he saw me level
-my gun he turned and fled down the platform. Meantime the Sergeant had
-collapsed on the platform, and victory was ours. Reilly escaped because
-I was blinded with blood and unable to take steady aim; but I made sure
-that he would not turn again, while the rest of my comrades carried Hogan
-off in safety.
-
-We left the dead Constable and the dying Sergeant at Knocklong Station.
-The people had fled in terror from the platform, and many of the
-passengers had jumped wildly from the train. Even the engine driver, who
-did not apparently hear the first shots, was about to start the train
-after the usual delay while the battle was still in progress, when a girl
-told him there was a battle going on. The same girl also states that she
-later saw Reilly praying near the station.
-
-Late that evening the dead body of Enright was taken in the train to
-Kilmallock, as was also Sergeant Wallace who lived until the following
-afternoon.
-
-At the inquest afterwards there was of course nobody but Reilly to give
-his version of the fight. One of the jurors boldly remarked to the
-police: “You are simply trying to paint your own story in your own way.”
-The police witnesses were not allowed by their superiors to answer any
-important questions calculated to show that we would not have shot their
-men if they had surrendered.
-
-The inquest was also noteworthy for the fact that the jury not only
-refused to bring in a verdict of murder, but spoke out. I quote the
-newspaper of 22nd May:—“Condemning the arrest of respectable persons,
-and exasperating the people, and called for Self-Determination for
-Ireland, and blamed the Government for exposing the police to danger.”
-Our efforts were having their effect. The plain people were realising
-that ours was a fight for Irish Freedom. They realised too that we had
-no enmity against the police as such, if they confined themselves to the
-work of ordinary police; but when they became spies and soldiers in the
-pay of England we had to treat them accordingly.
-
-This is the true story of Knocklong, condemned as it was at the time by
-archbishop, priests and press—the same people who, two years later, would
-have treated us as heroes and loudly boasted of “the freedom we had won.”
-Time works wonders!
-
-The heroes of the fight were Sean Treacy and the two O’Briens. In the
-next chapter I must tell of our equally exciting escape from the scene,
-and the story our rescued comrade had to tell when we clasped his hand
-again.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XII.
-
-OUR ESCAPE FROM KNOCKLONG.
-
-
-Before describing our escape from Knocklong and the adventures which
-ensued, I must pause to outline the experiences of our comrade, Sean
-Hogan, since his arrest a few days before. They throw an interesting
-sidelight on the methods of the Peelers, though at that period these
-methods were not so cold-blooded and barbarous as they became within a
-year.
-
-When the dance concluded that morning at Ballagh, and when the rest of
-us had gone on to O’Keeffe’s for a sleep, Sean Hogan went up the road
-with Brigid O’Keeffe to Meagher’s, of Annfield. This was the same Meagher
-family at whose house we had had such a narrow escape a few months
-before, when the girl’s waving handkerchief warned us of danger. Miss
-O’Keeffe was a cousin of the Meaghers, and she had decided to go up to
-their house for breakfast.
-
-So sleepy was Sean that he actually fell asleep at the table. When
-breakfast was finished he took off his belt and revolver and lay down for
-a rest on a sofa. Mr. Meagher and his two daughters were at this time
-busy about the farmyard preparing to send the milk to the creamery.
-
-Sean was suddenly roused from his sleep by the warning shout: “The police
-are coming up the road!” He jumped to his feet, put on his belt, and went
-to the door, revolver in hand.
-
-The police had been seen a good distance off by the Meaghers, but Sean
-could not see them from the house. Assuming that they were coming from
-the north side he ran from the house in the opposite direction, along a
-field which is much lower than the level of the road. When he had got to
-the end of the field he thought he was now out of danger, put away his
-revolver, and jumped on to the road—into the arms of six policemen. They
-had, as a matter of fact, been coming from the south, and had got a full
-view of him as he ran along the field from the house.
-
-Sean was at once handcuffed and his revolver seized. His captors marched
-him back the road to Meagher’s, just as another section of the police
-raiders came out the door, having hurriedly searched the house. They did
-not recognise Sean, and he refused to give his name. Just as he was being
-removed Miss O’Keeffe came and shook hands with him, saying, “Goodbye,
-Sean.” That was the only part of his name they knew. They apparently took
-her to be one of the Meagher family, for had they recognised her as one
-of the O’Keeffes they would probably have come down the road to search
-her own house, where we were at the time.
-
-Sergeant Wallace was in charge of the police party, and with him were
-Reilly and Ring amongst the others. They marched their prisoner to
-Roskeen Barracks, and at once sent word to Thurles that they had captured
-an armed man whose Christian name was Sean. A police van from Thurles
-soon arrived to escort their prisoner to that town, and one of the party
-recognised him as one of the much-wanted Soloheadbeg men.
-
-After his arrest one of the Meaghers ran down the road to Patrick
-Kinnane’s house, between Meagher’s and O’Keeffe’s, and asked him to
-convey word to the rest of us of Sean’s arrest.
-
-When Sean Hogan fell into their hands the Peelers adopted every
-subterfuge to get him to divulge information. First they tried to coax
-the information from him, for they saw he was but a mere boy. They failed
-in their efforts, and then their tactics changed. They struck him, and
-beat him unmercifully, but again they failed in their purpose; for if
-Sean Hogan was but a boy in years, he was a man in strength of character
-and loyalty to his comrades. Not a word would he tell even though they
-were to torture him to death.
-
-Then they tried still another plan. One of the policemen, pretending to
-be his friend and adviser, told him quietly that he had been betrayed
-by Breen and Treacy, who, they said, were then on their way to London,
-having been granted a free pardon and a huge sum of money for the
-information they had given. This was followed by a straight hint that
-if Hogan would supplement the information by whatever knowledge he had
-of the organisation and its plans, he, too, would be well rewarded, and
-would find himself helped to leave the country instead of finding himself
-on the way to the gallows. But J. J. knew his old comrades too well
-to think for a moment that they had betrayed or deserted him. All the
-threats and cajolery of the Peelers were in vain. He refused to answer
-their question, and in the end, did not pretend to hear them.
-
-At last he was put on board the train for Cork Jail on the evening of
-the 13th May. Thurles is only about 30 miles from Knocklong, and by the
-time that station was reached history was once more to repeat itself.
-The night before when I rode by Ballyneety my mind had gone back to the
-days of Sarsfield; to the historic episode of the destruction of King
-William’s troop train. There was no story I loved more as a boy. It was a
-tale of daring and of dramatic triumph, and I pictured the dismay of the
-English troops whose password was “Sarsfield,” when in response to their
-challenge came the grim reply, “Sarsfield—and Sarsfield is the man!”
-Often when I was a boy I dreamed of how proud I would have been, were
-I with Sarsfield’s little band that night riding out from Limerick to
-strike terror into the hearts of the invaders.
-
-[Illustration: RAILWAY STATION, KNOCKLONG.]
-
-On the train from Thurles to Knocklong Sergeant Wallace never ceased
-taunting Hogan with his plight. Repeatedly on the way he asked with
-savage mockery, “Where is Breen now?” and to add to the unhappiness of
-his helpless prisoner he accompanied each question with a prick of his
-bayonet. These are some of the things the world did not know, when it
-looked upon us for a long time as cold-blooded murderers. Many of our men
-can tell such tales, and produce their own bodies as the evidence, just
-as poor Hogan’s condition testified to us when we rescued him.
-
-Even as the train steamed into Knocklong, Wallace once more repeated his
-derisive question—“Where are Breen and Treacy now? They sold you to get
-you hanged.” Ere he had finished his question Breen and Treacy supplied
-him with the answer—an answer which he did not expect, and one which
-debarred him from further promotion in this world.
-
-And now to resume my narrative. When the last shot had been fired,
-and when Constable Reilly had fled from the scene, we moved from the
-platform. The people were terror-stricken. Many had fled in terror from
-the station. Others had taken shelter by the walls and the gatepiers. A
-few who were too dumfounded to take flight looked at us in amazement.
-None dared to approach us, and I am not surprised, for never before had
-old Galteemore looked down on such a strange party at a hitherto quiet
-and peaceful country station. There were nine of us all told, one a
-handcuffed prisoner and four of us wounded and bespattered with the blood
-of ourselves and our enemies.
-
-I was no longer able to walk, and I realised now that my last shot had
-been fired from my revolver, and that it might at any moment be found
-highly desirable to have it reloaded, but my right arm was dead and I
-could not reload. I looked around me. Outside the station I saw a motor
-car evidently waiting for somebody who was to come from the train. With
-my empty revolver raised in my left hand I held up the car. I think my
-appearance was enough to inspire any Christian with terror, not to speak
-of levelling my gun. A fit of dizziness, probably the effects of my
-wounds and loss of blood, had come over me on the platform, as I made
-for the gate, and I had fallen heavily against the wall, and blood was
-gushing from my head. I could scarcely walk. I groped my way along. The
-people around me ran at the very sight of me, many of them shrieking. At
-last somebody came to my assistance. He was dressed in khaki—an Irishman
-in England’s army! The very irony of it makes me smile to-day. I think
-he was the same man who had shouted “Up the Republic” on the train,
-though I am not sure, for some people told me afterwards that there was
-an American soldier also in khaki at the station that evening—I believe,
-too, that the soldier who cheered for the Republic was afterwards
-courtmartialled by his officers—but whoever he was that helped me, if his
-eyes catch these words, let him accept my thanks; I forgot to show him my
-gratitude at the time.
-
-Leaning on his arm I struggled from the station premises on to the road.
-He half linked and half carried me for I was now growing weaker every
-moment. Probably I was loosing my senses too, for I forgot all about
-using the motor car I had held up, and I left it behind.
-
-The rest of the party were outside on the road. With a butcher’s knife,
-procured from a man named Walsh, they broke the handcuffs that bound Sean
-Hogan, and he was once more a free man. The unwounded men took charge of
-him and brought him to a place of safety.
-
-The other four of us—Ned O’Brien, Treacy, Scanlon and I—faced for
-Shanahan’s. I scarcely remember that journey; it was growing dark, and we
-did not know the road well. I was losing blood all the time. It must have
-taken us hours to get to the house. We were all weak. In a field on the
-way we met some lads from the neighbourhood. They came to our assistance
-and helped us to reach our destination.
-
-I was at once put to bed, and the priest and doctor were sent for.
-Both soon arrived. Dr. Hennessy, of Galbally, was very kind to me, but
-both priest and doctor regarded my case as hopeless. I was told that I
-had only about twenty-four hours to live, as the bullet had gone right
-through my body piercing the lung, and I had lost an enormous quantity
-of blood. That news was cheerless enough, but I was not even to get the
-twenty-four hours to die in peace.
-
-When I arrived at Shanahan’s my comrades had at once mobilised an armed
-guard under a chap named Clancy, of Cush, Knocklong. I was not to be
-permitted to fall into the hands of the British alive. Scouts were sent
-out to watch all the approaches to the house. We knew that the country
-would be swept with columns of troops and police. All through the
-night—as I learned later—reinforcements were rushed to the neighbourhood,
-and the police garrisons were strengthened at Doon, Oola, Galbally, and
-all the local villages and towns. For days afterwards a house to house
-search was made in that part of East Limerick and South Tipperary, and
-even the graveyards were inspected for fresh graves, as the newspapers
-reported that “two of the attackers were believed to have been mortally
-wounded.”
-
-Nor can I help recalling at this stage an incident that happened on that
-memorable evening. I was told afterwards on the best authority. Four
-policemen from Elton, a few miles from Knocklong, heard the firing at
-the station, and took to their heels back to their barracks. There they
-remained, and with the door locked, until County Inspector Egan arrived
-in a motor car and broke it in, shouting, “You cowards! Here you are
-hiding, while four of our men are shot, and the murderers at large!”
-
-But a few hours after my arrival at Shanahan’s, when the priest and
-doctor had attended me, our scouts rushed in with word that the enemy
-raiding parties were hot on our heels. A hurried council of war was held.
-My comrades procured a motor car and carried me off once more, without
-even taking time to say a prayer for the man who was to die next day.
-They drove me right through the town of Kilmallock, and I did not know
-till the next afternoon that we had actually passed the R.I.C. barracks
-where the dead Constable Enright and the dying sergeant had been removed
-from Knocklong. But there was no other means of escape—we had to get out
-of the net that was closing round Knocklong. We took our chance, and
-luck favoured us. My comrades fully realised the seriousness of the
-situation and the risks they were taking in motoring through the town of
-Kilmallock, but I was blissfully unconscious of everything save the fact
-that I was soon to “cross the Jordan.” Our boys always believed that he
-who puts his hand to the plough must not turn back. They never knew what
-“going back” meant. Their guiding spirit was “On, always on.” That was
-the spirit that carried them through the most glorious fight in Irish
-history. It is the spirit that will carry them to the end.
-
-When I woke up next day I was once more in West Limerick, under the care
-of Sean Finn.
-
-Let me pause again to tell you the sequel to the Knocklong rescue. All
-of us who took part were either already on the run, or had to get on
-the run henceforth, except Sean Lynch and J. J. O’Brien, who returned
-to their business. Both of them afterwards joined Dinny Lacy’s famous
-South Tipperary column and fought all through the Black and Tan war. Ned
-O’Brien and Scanlon had shortly afterwards to escape to America, as their
-health was affected. They are now back in Ireland.
-
-A year later a brother of Scanlon’s was shot dead by the British in
-Limerick City while a prisoner in their hands. After the rescue several
-arrests were made by the British on suspicion. All, except three, were
-eventually released; but poor Martin Foley and Maher, after being held in
-prison for nearly two years, were hanged in Dublin, on June 6th, 1921—a
-month before the truce. The third prisoner, an ex-soldier (British), was
-tried but acquitted.
-
-In West Limerick my comrades and I received refuge and hospitality. Sean
-Finn was kindness personified, and indeed all around him were equally
-good to us. Especially kind and good-natured were the Sheehans, Keanes,
-Longs, Duffys and Kennedys; but our good times were not to last long. The
-enemy was once more on our track. We learned of all his movements from
-our Secret Service, for you must understand that no matter where we went
-it was necessary for us to keep in touch with our Intelligence Department.
-
-We moved farther west, on towards the Kerry border. Even here we found
-the trail was too hot, and we had to cross the border into Kerry itself.
-By this time I was well on the road to recovery. Then, as at a later
-stage, I acquired the habit of breaking all medical precedents, and
-insisting on living when, according to all the rules of the game, I
-should have died. By the time I got to Kerry I was even able to walk a
-little, though I needed some support. But I could not walk far. This
-was a greater drawback to us, because the English troops were so busy
-scouring the countryside for us, day and night, that we dare not think of
-using motor cars or vehicles of any kind, the roads being out of bounds
-to us.
-
-One bright feature always lightened our load. It was Sean Treacy’s sense
-of humour. No matter how dark the outlook Sean would have his little
-joke, and we had to laugh with him. At Knocklong he had been shot through
-the teeth and mouth, and for a long time afterwards his mouth was very
-painful. At the time I was still suffering severely from my wound through
-the lung and body. Hence the difficulties for both of us for satisfying
-our appetites. “Dan,” said Sean to me, “I wish I had your big head for
-half an hour. I am frightfully hungry, but I can’t eat. You can eat all
-right, but you won’t.” Another night on a different occasion we were
-cycling through Cullen to Tipperary. This was a very dangerous district
-for us, because it was in the Martial Law area, and was only a few miles
-either from Soloheadbeg or Knocklong. Besides, being near our native
-district, we always ran the risk of being seen and known by too many
-people. Suddenly while we were riding with all speed Sean asked us to
-pull up. We were somewhat surprised, because we knew how much any delay
-might mean for all of us, but we dismounted. It was raining like the very
-deluge at the same time. Sean turned to each one of us in turn and asked
-us solemnly for a pin. Each of us said we had no such commodity, the
-truth being that nobody wished to open his coat on such a night.
-
-“What do you want a pin for?” I asked him.
-
-“Well,” he replied, “I’m afraid my tie isn’t hanging straight!”
-
-I never felt so much inclined to give my old comrade a punch. I am sure
-it was the same with the others; but we had to laugh as we mounted and
-rode ahead making remarks which were none too complimentary about some
-people’s conceit. Such little incidents helped us on our road, and often
-helped to scatter the gloom that surrounded us.
-
-But to resume our story. In Kerry we remained for some days, occasionally
-amusing ourselves by reading the many grotesque accounts that were
-printed of the Knocklong rescue. Day after day too we read of the
-denunciation of our terrible crime (of saving our young comrade), by
-priests, bishops and politicians. We read the King’s message of sympathy
-to the relatives of his poor hirelings, and also Lord French’s. Most of
-the Kerry people with whom we came in contact were very kind to us; above
-all, we can never forget the O’Connors, the Hickeys and the Ahearns.
-
-After our stay in Kerry we returned to County Limerick, keeping along the
-banks of the Shannon all the time. Our wounds were by this time healing
-rapidly, and we were feeling strong again. We used to go in for a dip
-nearly every day, and we fished quite a good deal. We had to be doing
-something. None of us could ever stand a day of inactivity.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIII.
-
-MANY CLOSE SHAVES.
-
-
-One day while we were still in West Limerick we had what was probably our
-narrowest escape after the Knocklong affair. In was in June, 1919. Sheer
-luck drove us half a mile outside a great encircling movement made to
-capture us.
-
-This was the sixth great attempt by the enemy to net us, and each time
-they engaged thousands of troops—to catch four of us. They knew well by
-now that each of the four of us would offer armed resistance, and that if
-luck was at all favourable many of them would fall never to rise, before
-they got us dead or alive. Liberal rewards were now offered publicly and
-privately for any information concerning our movements. Our descriptions
-were published broadcast, and even dropped from military aeroplanes, with
-the promise of British gold for anyone that would inform on us. It was
-a special duty for every policeman in Ireland, and every intelligence
-officer in the British army of occupation to learn our description. About
-this time, too, the British Government was perfecting its Secret Service
-machinery in Ireland. There had always been a costly Secret Service
-organisation maintained for generations; but it was not dangerous work,
-relating mainly to the activities of harmless politicians. Now, however,
-the work was getting more dangerous. Besides, our Secret Service was
-now becoming a thing to be reckoned with; Dublin Castle had to bestir
-itself. As we well knew, the officials there were time and again severely
-reprimanded for their failure to catch us. They always replied that the
-people would give no information, that informers were very few and very
-cautious, and that Scotland Yard might be asked to give some help. They
-hinted at the same time that a few Irishmen living in England might be
-approached to undertake Secret Service work, as very few could now be got
-in Ireland.
-
-It was in the summer of this year that the British Government therefore
-reorganised its Secret Service in Ireland, relying mainly on ex-soldiers
-of Irish birth. The newspapers of the time can tell how many score of
-them paid the price of their treachery during the ensuing two years. We
-found them all out in one way or another. If one reason more than another
-accounts for the success of the I.R.A., it is that we met and broke their
-Secret Service at every move, until in the end there was no such thing in
-practice as a British Intelligence Corps.
-
-One word more on this subject. I know that many people at the time
-were surprised at the number of men who were found with the label on
-their dead bodies—“Spies beware—executed by the I.R.A.” Some people
-wondered if any mistakes were made, if any of these men were executed
-without sufficient evidence. I can say that of the cases that came under
-my knowledge there was always evidence enough to convince the most
-scrupulous. We made no mistakes, unless indeed we allowed many to escape
-against whom there was ample evidence, though we gave them the benefit of
-the slightest doubt.
-
-But the “Knocklong Gang,” as I believe we were sometimes called, always
-outwitted the spies and the battalions sent to round them up. Often, I
-know, they got fairly good information about us. At this time to which
-I have referred—June, 1919—for instance, it is probably true that they
-knew we were sometimes in West Limerick or North Kerry, near the mouth
-of the Shannon. After that big raid, which we so narrowly missed, we
-deemed it wise to change our quarters once more—and we crossed into East
-Clare, still hugging the banks of the Shannon. We kept ourselves fit
-by plenty of exercise, mostly swimming, for we had an idea that a good
-stroke in the water might at some time or other help us in getting out of
-a tight corner. Nobody could say that we did not live the healthy life of
-primitive men at this time. Many a day we enjoyed ten or twelve hours
-of a glorious summer sunbath. One day while in Clare we were basking
-beside the Shannon when a boat manned by police passed right beside us.
-We took no particular notice of it at the time, thinking the whole thing
-but a mere coincidence. When we got back to the house in which we were
-staying that evening we learned to our surprise that the boat was part of
-a search party that had got on our trail once more. They never suspected
-who we were, so that once more our recklessness had saved us—or them?
-
-Probably the police had their eyes searching round the corners of rocks,
-or peering under bushes where they expected we should be hiding. It would
-amaze them to know we were often within earshot of their own barracks.
-It is a positive fact that often a single brick alone separated us from
-a police garrison, and more than once we were interested spectators
-watching from a window lorries laden with troops going out in search of
-us.
-
-There is another possible explanation of such incidents as that on the
-Shannon. I am sure that more than one policeman whom we met on a country
-road suspected who we were; but these Peelers often considered discretion
-the better part of valour. We were never asked to produce visiting cards.
-Many a policeman in such circumstances would feel convinced that he would
-not be serving his wife and family by attempting to arrest us. I’m not
-saying he was wrong either.
-
-In a short time Clare became too hot for us. The Brennan Brothers were
-not on the best of terms with the British garrisons in that county, and
-finally relations became so strained that the British proclaimed Martial
-Law there too. Martial Law and ourselves were never very good friends;
-perhaps it was that we knew each other too well. Anyhow, we crossed the
-Shannon once more, and this time found ourselves in North Tipperary.
-
-It was at the house of a family called Whelehan that I first came in
-contact with Ernie O’Malley. Whelehans were very kind to us. While I was
-there “Widger” Meagher and Frank McGrath—both famous athletes, and the
-latter Brigade Commandant of the I.R.A. in North Tipperary—visited us.
-
-We spent a while in Mid. and South Tipperary too. At this time money was
-one of our great needs. Many, we knew, would gladly give it to us, but
-it was not easy to get in touch with the right people. The people we met
-most were, like ourselves, on the run and on the rocks.
-
-Eamon O Duibhir, of Ballagh, in whose house, you will remember, the
-dance was the night Sean Hogan was captured, was a good friend to us,
-and supplied us with money. Once we had to sleep in an old castle—Castle
-Blake, near Rockwell College. This old ruined castle was later a good
-friend to many of the boys on the run, as it had a kind of a secret
-apartment. At an early stage in the Civil War it was the scene of a
-sad tragedy when two Republicans—Theo English, of Tipperary, and Mick
-Summers—were surprised by Free State troops, and killed in the encounter
-which followed.
-
-At last we got restive again. The country showed signs of following our
-example, but at this time the signs were few—an odd attack on a police
-barrack and the capture of a rifle or two from a soldier here and there.
-We felt the time had come for more energetic and general action. We knew
-we could not remain any way safe within Tipperary or over the border of
-Offaly. We discussed our position time and again, and always agreed we
-could not continue the life we were now living. To escape being shipped
-or exiled to America by those who should have stood by us, we had to
-avoid Dublin, and to remain in some remote part of the country. We were
-no longer content to accept this condition. We wanted to know how exactly
-the country stood, how we stood, and how the whole Volunteer Army stood.
-At last Sean Treacy and I, leaving Robinson and Hogan in North Tipperary,
-cycled straight into Dublin. We had no adventure on the way. At Maynooth
-we called on Donal Buckley, a member of Dail Eireann, and a man who had
-walked to Dublin to take part in the Rising of 1916. He proved as good
-as his record. His house was put at our disposal, and we stayed three or
-four days there, though he tried to keep us longer.
-
-In Dublin we headed for Phil Shanahan’s again. Every Tipperary man who
-was on the run, or who wanted a good dinner, faced for Phil’s. Later
-we met Mick Collins, then Adjutant-General of the Irish Volunteers. We
-had a long discussion and we spoke plainly. Finally Mick undertook to
-arrange that we should stay in Dublin. With this assurance we mounted our
-bicycles again, and rode back to the country for Seumas Robinson and Sean
-Hogan.
-
-At this time I was dressed as a priest. That was not an uncommon disguise
-at the time. The Peelers and soldiers probably suspected that a good many
-of the priests they saw travelling knew more about guns than Theology,
-but seldom held any of them up. They were not then at open war with men
-and women, priests and children. There would be too much of a National
-uproar if a priest was arrested, and as the old Peelers were still
-overwhelmingly Catholic they gave suspicious-looking priests the benefit
-of the doubt. Next year they not only arrested priests, but imprisoned
-several, and murdered three of them.
-
-[Illustration: SEAMUS ROBINSON.]
-
-On this occasion when I reached Maynooth I discovered my back tyre was
-badly punctured. I did not think it becoming my clerical dignity to
-mend the puncture myself, and besides I had no patience with that kind
-of work; so I wheeled my machine to a local cycle mechanic’s shop and
-asked him to repair it at once. Apparently he was a man who believed in
-making every customer take his turn, for he told me he could not do the
-job for a few hours. I pointed out to him that I was going on urgent
-business, but it was all no use. Finally he advised me to go to the
-College—Maynooth College, the world’s greatest college for the training
-of Catholic priests—where they would easily get someone to repair it. In
-my rage at this refusal I forgot for a moment that I was in the garb of a
-minister of peace and goodwill. I told that cycle mechanic what I thought
-of him in language more forcible than priestly, and I am sure the poor
-man was amazed and shocked at the liberties which present-day clerics
-take with the English language. He was still staring at me in amazement
-when I wheeled my wounded bicycle from the door.
-
-I had no desire to visit the College. Amongst the students I would find
-many friends willing to help me, but I was afraid the President and the
-Professors might not be too well pleased to find a gunman masquerading
-as a clergyman, and I doubted if I would be able to play the part and
-pretend I was a priest. I need hardly say I was no master of Latin, and I
-always associated priests with that language.
-
-Still, I had to get the puncture mended. In a fit of bravado I turned
-towards the police barracks. At the door I met a policeman who raised his
-hat to me, and with a show of dignity that would have done credit to an
-archbishop I acknowledged his sign of respect.
-
-I told him my difficulties. Could he help me with the puncture? “To be
-sure, Father,” he replied, “I can get you all that you want in no time;
-and if your Reverence won’t mind I’ll give you a hand at the job.”
-
-In two minutes the whole garrison were out tripping over one another in
-their eagerness to get solution and patches and the other necessaries.
-Inside the door I could see dozens of printed notices and official
-documents pasted on the walls. Amongst them, I have no doubt, was an
-elaborate description of Dan Breen, and a promise of a huge reward for
-his capture.
-
-When the job was finished I thanked the Peelers most profusely for their
-kindness and rode away. I suppose it was discourteous of me not to have
-left my card with the sergeant.
-
-That night I reached the borders of Tipperary and Offaly and met the
-others. A few days later all four of us were safely settled in Dublin,
-which was to be our new headquarters for months to come. Within a few
-weeks we were planning to arouse the world by shooting the very head of
-the British Government in Ireland.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIV.
-
-ON THE TRAIL OF LORD FRENCH.
-
-
-When we got to Dublin in the Autumn of 1919, there were many signs that
-the war with the British was soon to develop. Any good judge of the
-situation at the time could have foreseen the intensive guerilla struggle
-that was to ensue for a year and a half. Raids for arms were becoming
-more numerous, and attacks on police patrols were by no means rare. But
-open warfare had not yet developed. British soldiers and police could go
-about with comparative safety. Our great danger while in Dublin was from
-the “G” men, Dublin’s Scotland Yard. These were the detective branch of
-the Dublin Metropolitan Police, paid by the ratepayers of Dublin to track
-down criminals, but now mainly employed on political or military work. So
-far from devoting their attentions to the criminal classes we knew that
-many of them actually made use of criminals as “touts” or “spotters” to
-shadow men, or to get information. In the Autumn of 1919 the “G” men,
-of whom there were a few score all told, were principally engaged in
-assisting and guiding the British military in midnight raids on the homes
-of Sinn Feiners, or in raids to seize Sinn Fein literature. They even
-made their way into Sinn Fein gatherings to take a note of the speeches,
-and though many of them were known by appearance to almost every person
-in Dublin they were not afraid, for at that time they seldom got more
-than a hiding if identified. Day after day one read in the papers of
-raids on the houses of inoffensive people who never handled firearms in
-their lives. It was this form of petty tyranny that goaded many into
-action. Boys and girls, not to speak of men and women, were imprisoned
-for such offences as having a copy of an Irish song. It was more than
-flesh and blood could stand.
-
-Towards the end of the year several notoriously obnoxious “G” men were
-shot dead or wounded in the streets, and in every case their assailants
-got safely away. Every other means of bringing these men to their
-senses, or making them realise that they were playing the part of spies
-and traitors had been tried but failed. As a result of the wholesale
-attacks made upon them it was in the end found impossible for them to
-live in their homes, or even to venture on the streets, and they took
-up their abode in Dublin Castle, whence they issued forth now and again
-to accompany raiding parties of armed troops. Many of them too resigned
-when things became too hot for them. I must say, however that a small
-number who did not resign were never molested, because they confined
-themselves solely to their ordinary work of arresting criminals. These
-men had an understanding with our side that they could go about their
-work provided they never indulged in political activities, or assisted
-the military. A few others, who remained in the force, afterwards joined
-our Secret Service, and gave invaluable assistance in the way of official
-documents and information that they were in a position to obtain. For
-obvious reasons I cannot go into details on these matters.
-
-When the four of us from Tipperary had become almost settled down in
-Dublin, and knew the city well, we were soon kept busy, as we wanted to
-be. Now and again a “G” man got on our track, but we soon dealt with him.
-We walked about Dublin quite freely and without any disguise. It was a
-common trick on the part of the R.I.C. to send a man who knew us up from
-County Tipperary for a few days in the hope of seeing us. These men soon
-learned sense. They returned home as quickly as they could, for it would
-not serve their health to get too close on our heels. Probably too a
-few of them who may have chanced to see us from time to time had wisdom
-enough not to know us.
-
-We had many good friends in Dublin. Phil Shanahan’s was a great haunt of
-ours, and one of the most amusing recollections I have of that time is
-a conversation I had there one evening with a D.M.P. man who, of course,
-had no notion who I was. He discussed the political situation with me
-very confidentially, even the Soloheadbeg and Knocklong affairs. He was
-in complete agreement with the Sinn Feiners—he guessed I was one—but he
-couldn’t agree to the taking of life. I think I gave the poor man the
-impression that my views were the same as his own.
-
-Ryan’s, of the Monument Creamery, in Parnell street, and Seumas Kirwan’s
-were also open houses to us, besides many others that I will mention in
-the course of my narrative. Of course we frequently met kindred spirits
-like Dick McKee and Peadar Clancy and Tom Keogh, for at that time the
-number of active gunmen ready for any risk in the country’s cause was
-small. Many of those who later proved their mettle did not get the chance
-at that time, principally because those who were in favour of active
-measures were few and far between. The attitude of the Headquarters’
-Staff of the I.R.A. I shall have occasion to refer to very soon.
-
-In the autumn my comrades and I had long and serious discussions about
-the policy of shooting policemen and soldiers. We felt it was not enough
-in itself. They, we argued, were but the tools of higher men. Their loss
-did not trouble England very much, for she could always get more dupes.
-Why, we asked ourselves, should we not strike at the very heads of the
-British Government in Ireland? It would arouse the world more to take an
-interest in Ireland’s case; it would strike terror into the hearts of
-English statesmen, and it would prove more effective in helping to make
-British Rule in Ireland impossible. England could carry on all right with
-a few policemen less; it would be more difficult to carry on without a
-Lord Lieutenant. Besides, there were thousands of policemen; but there
-were only a few who might become Lord Lieutenant, and they would think
-twice of taking the job if they had to risk being shot.
-
-As a result of these discussions we finally decided to make preparations
-for an attack on Lord French, the Lord Lieutenant himself. Brave and
-trusted men to whom we communicated our plans readily agreed.
-
-For three long months we watched, planned and waited for him. We suffered
-many bitter disappointments waiting. He was very rarely seen about now
-and was always accompanied by a heavy escort. Great secrecy was observed
-about his movements, though our Secret Service kept us well posted. Even
-the public functions usually patronised by Viceroys were rarely attended
-by Lord French. There were many reasons for that, which do not concern my
-story.
-
-He little knew what narrow escapes he had during these three months.
-Twice or three times we missed him by a street—the altering of his route
-by one corner. That, by the way, was a frequent plan of his—to change his
-journey from the original programme. It was a trick to upset any plans
-made against him on the strength of information supplied from inside. It
-showed what little trust he had in those around him. On one occasion we
-missed him by barely one minute.
-
-During those three months, the last months of 1919, we had no less than
-twelve different ambushes planned to intercept him. But on each one of
-the twelve occasions he either failed to come or arrived too late or too
-early for our purpose. These plans were connected with affairs of the
-city—public functions, or visits to private houses. We were naturally
-hampered, because we could not afford to hang around a particular spot
-too long—our movements would lead to suspicion, and probably to a sudden
-swoop by the military.
-
-The first occasion that we were lying in wait Mick Collins was with us.
-So was Tom MacCurtain, Commandant of the 1st Cork (City) Brigade, who, in
-March of the following year, when he was Lord Mayor of Cork, was murdered
-in his own home by the police. Poor Dick McKee was also there. He was
-then Commandant of the Dublin Brigade, and never believed in asking his
-men to take risks he was not prepared to take himself. Dick was murdered
-together with Peadar Clancy, while a prisoner in the hands of the British
-a year later.
-
-On another occasion I remember vainly waiting with Peadar Clancy for
-two hours outside the door of a Merrion Square doctor whom French
-occasionally visited. On November 11th, the Anniversary of the Armistice,
-the Lord Lieutenant was to attend a banquet in Trinity College. We had
-every hope of intercepting him that night. Our plan was to bomb his car
-as he passed Grattan Bridge, for we knew the very hour he was due to
-travel along the quays from the Viceregal Lodge to the College.
-
-So certain were we that everything would work out according to plan that
-some of our men in the vicinity of the Bridge, within a hundred yards of
-Dublin Castle, had actually drawn and thrown away the pins from their
-bombs. It was a bitterly cold night, and there they stood with their
-fingers pressed on the springs of the cold metal ready to release the
-bombs. But he never came. For almost two hours our men had to endure the
-agony of holding the springs of the bombs, and in the end they had to
-make their escape as best they could, still gripping the cold bombs.
-
-A fortnight later French was expected at the Castle, and of course
-his journey would take him across the same bridge. We knew of the
-arrangements, and again took up our positions. The weather was bitterly
-cold. It was in the early forenoon, and suddenly snow began to fall. But
-we did not mind the snow. The job we were bent upon was too serious to
-be interfered with by such trifles. Some of us paced the bridge in the
-blinding snow, and wondered were we to be disappointed again, for the
-hour fixed for his arrival had passed. While we were on the bridge a
-friend who recognised us passed, and, evidently realising that we were on
-some job remarked with pointed sarcasm, “That’s a most convenient spot
-you are taking shelter from the snow!” His words brought us to a sense of
-our position. Anybody in the shops round the bridge would have suspected
-us at once. As there seemed no use in waiting any longer we went off.
-Five minutes later lorry loads of military swooped down on the bridge,
-and held up and searched everyone in the neighbourhood. Detectives who
-had been posted near the entrance to Dublin Castle had seen us on the
-bridge, and at once telephoned to the Viceregal Lodge, with the result
-that French cancelled his appointment, and the troops came instead. We
-had just got away in time. Another instance of our luck!
-
-On all these occasions our information about Lord French’s arrangements
-was absolutely reliable. No doubt he often changed his plans at the last
-moment, fearing that our sources of knowledge were as sound as indeed
-they always proved.
-
-Personal reasons, which do not concern me, also often caused his plans
-to be altered, while of course the advice of touts and spies had its
-effect. It certainly was an eloquent commentary on British rule in
-Ireland that the head of the Government carried his life in his hands
-whenever he ventured through the streets of the capital. As everybody
-knew, he was wise enough to venture out only as seldom as he could, even
-when accompanied by a huge escort; though I have no reason to think that
-personally he was not a brave man.
-
-At last when our patience was almost exhausted, we got information that
-gave us hope of achieving our purpose. It was in December, 1919. The
-newspapers of these days seldom gave any information at all regarding the
-Viceroy’s movements. Even when he crossed to England occasionally the
-newspapers were not informed until he was safely back in Phoenix Park.
-They were not encouraged to trace his movements. Sometimes, however,
-the newspapers were supplied with information intended deliberately to
-mislead the public in general, and the I.R.A. in particular. At the time
-of which I speak the Irish newspapers had informed their readers that
-Lord French was away out of the country. I think they actually stated
-that he was cruising somewhere in the North Sea.
-
-We knew better. He was, as a matter of fact, enjoying himself with
-a select house party of male and female intimates, at his country
-residence, French Park, Co. Roscommon. We knew a good deal more about
-Lord French’s life than the public ever suspected; but my purpose is not
-to give a history of the Viceroy’s private affairs, except in so far as
-they concern my narrative. Sufficient to say that on this occasion we
-knew every member of the select few at French Park, Boyle.
-
-Frenchpark is a remote country district. While the Lord Lieutenant was in
-occupation the house was garrisoned by a strong force. But that garrison
-we felt we could easily overpower did we so desire. The situation of the
-house too would favour our escape when we had accomplished our object.
-We would have no difficulty in covering the journey from Dublin to
-Roscommon, and we believed we would get back almost as easily. We could
-readily go by roads which would avoid the towns, for it is a much easier
-matter for wanted men to go from Dublin to the West than it would be,
-say, to go South or North.
-
-Why, then, it may be asked, with all the circumstances in our favour did
-we not attempt to shoot Lord French when he was in Roscommon?
-
-The answer is simple. We knew he would be returning to Dublin on a
-particular date, and we decided to attack him almost at his own door, and
-beside the city. Why? Because what we had in mind was the effect such an
-incident would create. Against the old soldier himself we had no personal
-spite, but he was the head of the alien Government that held our country
-in bondage, and we knew that his death would arouse the world to interest
-itself in our fight for freedom. His name was known throughout the world.
-The Phoenix Park was as well known to the world as Hyde Park. Think then
-of the sensation that would be created when this man, a Field Marshal of
-the British Army, and head of the Government in Ireland, was shot dead
-at the gate of the Phoenix Park, in the capital of the country he was
-supposed to rule, and within a stone’s throw of half a dozen of England’s
-military garrisons—at a spot where within five minutes could be mustered
-twenty thousand British troops, with every implement of modern warfare.
-The risk to ourselves was greater, but the moral effect would be worth
-the price. The world would sit up and say: “The men who have done this
-are no cowards; their country must have a grievance; what is it?” That
-is the result on which we reckoned, and our reasons for finally deciding
-to plan our coup for Ashtown. I shall describe (in the next chapter) our
-attack, and its many sequels.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XV.
-
-THE BATTLE OF ASHTOWN.
-
-
-Lord French was due to arrive back in the Viceregal Lodge on Friday, 19th
-December, 1919. That arrangement was kept a dead secret, and even the
-higher officials in the Lodge and in Dublin Castle were unaware of his
-plans. But we were well aware of the arrangement. The time has not yet
-come when the source of our information may be disclosed.
-
-We not only knew the day but the hour. Further, we knew that when Lord
-French returned by the Midland Railway he would not travel into the
-terminus of that line (Broadstone Station) in the city, but would alight
-at the little wayside station of Ash town. So we laid our plans.
-
-Ashtown is about four English miles from the centre of the city, but only
-about two miles from the northern residential quarter. You travel to it
-along the main road that leads from Dublin to the Northwest of Ireland,
-one of the best trunk roads in the country, passing in a straight
-line into the heart of Meath, through Navan, Kells, Cavan, and on to
-Enniskillen. About two and a half miles after you leave the tramway line
-you come to Ashtown. The station itself is not on the main road—it is
-about two hundred yards down on a little by-road to the right. There is
-no village of Ashtown; the district has fewer houses than probably any
-other place so near the city. There seems to have been no reason for
-making a station there except, perhaps, for loading and unloading horses
-for racing and hunting.
-
-To most people Ashtown simply means one house—Kelly’s publichouse,
-commonly known as the “Half-way House.” It stands just at the cross-roads
-where you turn to your right off the main road to go to the station. That
-little by-road, which, as I have said, leads on the right hand side to
-the railway, cuts across the main road almost at right angles and leads
-on the left to the Phoenix Park and to Castleknock. Thus when one travels
-out from the city and stands at the cross-roads beside the Half-way House
-one is within two hundred yards of the station on the right, and within
-one hundred yards of the Phoenix Park gate on the left. At this gate
-there then stood a Police Barrack, where three or four D.M.P. men used to
-be stationed, but the barrack was closed a few days before our adventure.
-A quarter of a mile inside the gate was the Viceregal Lodge.
-
-Of houses there were very few in the vicinity. The only one near the
-Half-way House was the residence of Mr. Peard, the owner of the Park
-Racecourse which adjoins the main road. On the city side of Ashtown there
-were several institutions—such as orphanages and convents—the nearest
-being the famous Deaf and Dumb Institute kept by the Christian Brothers.
-Away to the right of the railway is the famous Dunsink Observatory.
-
-I have thought it necessary to describe the spot in this detail, because
-even to Dublin people the Ashtown district is comparatively unfamiliar.
-
-The special train in which the Viceroy was to return was due to arrive at
-Ashtown at 11.40 a.m. Half an hour before that our party had arrived on
-the scene. We had started from Fleming’s, in Drumcondra, that morning,
-and at Mrs. Martin Conlan’s, of Phibsboro’, I had stopped for a cup
-of tea. There were eleven of us all told in the exploit—namely, Mick
-McDonnell, Tom Keogh (later a Free State Officer killed in the Civil
-War); Martin Savage (killed that day); Sean Treacy (killed in action in
-Talbot Street, Dublin, ten months later); Seumas Robinson, Sean Hogan,
-Paddy Daly (later a Major-General in the Free State Army); Vincent Byrne,
-Tom Kilkoyne, Joe Leonard and myself.
-
-[Illustration: MARTIN SAVAGE.]
-
-We cycled out the main road—the Cabra Road—going in pairs at different
-intervals so as not to arouse suspicion. We left our bicycles outside
-Kelly’s, for at any hour of the day it was not unusual to see a dozen
-bicycles outside that tavern while the owners are refreshing themselves
-within. We knew every inch of the locality, every bush and turn, every
-nook and corner. As a further advantage we knew the exact order in which
-Lord French and his escort always travelled.
-
-We knew we would arouse suspicion were we to wait on the roadside, so
-according as our men arrived they entered the tavern. Inside were a few
-of the local labourers and farmhands. Our appearance in pairs did not
-seem to create any suspicion, especially as the local people were not at
-all aware that Lord French was to pass the spot in a short time. In the
-publichouse while drinking our bottles of minerals we indicated to any
-who might be listening that our meeting was purely accidental. We talked
-about cattle and paddocks and grazing and many things except politics.
-But even in this fictitious conversation we had to be careful, for the
-men who were in the shop knew farming from A to Z, while some of our men
-knew very little about that industry.
-
-While we were talking about all these things for the benefit of our
-audience we were beginning to get anxious now that the time was drawing
-near. More than one of us glanced at his watch from time to time, and
-our eyes were busy all the time watching the cross-road, for from the
-shop we had a clear view of everyone who passed either on the main road
-or on the road to the Park. The first sign of activity we saw was a large
-D.M.P. man coming from the direction of the Park Gate. He evidently knew
-who was to arrive, for he took up a position near the cross-road to
-control any traffic that might come that way. His spear-pointed helmet,
-his shining buttons and his spotless boots, not to speak of the care with
-which he pulled down his tunic under his belt, all indicated that he felt
-called upon to make an impressive display. We did not trouble very much
-about the poor man, though he had a revolver holster by his side and no
-doubt it was not empty.
-
-A few minutes before the arrival of the train four military lorries,
-with troops armed with rifles, drove down from the Park Gate, passed the
-Half-way House and pulled up to take their positions near the station. In
-addition we knew that several armed D.M.P. men would be lining the route
-from the Park Gate to the Viceregal Lodge.
-
-Now we had of course made all our arrangements days in advance. Nothing
-was left to the last moment. Our plan was to concentrate our principal
-attack on the second car in the convoy. That was the car in which Lord
-French always travelled. Outside Kelly’s there was a heavy farm cart
-lying. Tom Keogh, Martin Savage and I were to push this at the last
-moment right across the road, thus blocking the passage of French’s car,
-for the road is too narrow to allow two cars to travel abreast, and
-the heavy farm cart would compel them to slow down. At the same moment
-the other members of our party were to open their deadly attack on the
-Lord Lieutenant’s car with bombs and grenades, and then rely on their
-revolvers to deal with the military guard.
-
-Sharp to time we heard the whistle of the railway engine as the train
-steamed into Ashtown. But we never moved. We had two or three minutes
-more, and a false step half a second too soon might upset our whole plan.
-Then we heard the motor engines throbbing. The party was about to move
-off from the station. We stepped out to the cross-road. Our men quietly
-took up their positions. Tom Keogh, Martin Savage and I were beside the
-farm cart that we were to use as an obstruction. It was time to get it in
-motion.
-
-I caught hold of the cart and began to push it round the corner. It was
-a heavy cart, far heavier than we thought, for, needless to say, we had
-not had a rehearsal of the act, nor had we judged the weight of the cart
-otherwise than with our eyes.
-
-I pushed it round the corner on to the narrow road leading from the
-station. Suddenly I heard a voice addressing me. It was the voice of the
-D.M.P. man whose presence we had ignored.
-
-“You cannot go down there for a while,” he remarked. “His Excellency is
-to pass along here in a few seconds.”
-
-Now, I knew that His Excellency was due, much better than the Constable
-did. However, I could not explain to him that I had an appointment with
-His Excellency. Time was pressing. I tried to ignore the policeman. He
-evidently thought I was too stupid for this world. He went on protesting
-to me and explaining how necessary it was to have the road clear for His
-Excellency’s cars.
-
-The amazing thing, when I afterwards came to think of it, was that he was
-apparently too dense to notice that I had two guns in my hands. If he did
-I’m sure he would have taken out his notebook and asked me for my name
-and address, for it was illegal to carry arms.
-
-I did not want to use my gun so soon. In the first place I had no wish
-to hurt the poor man, and secondly, I knew that to fire a shot now would
-be fatal to our plans, as it would at once attract the attention and
-suspicion of the escort, who were now in their cars a hundred paces from
-us.
-
-I did the only thing I could in the circumstances. I shouted at him—I
-threatened him and finally told him if he didn’t clear out of our way I
-would smash him up. But it was no use. Even then the policeman did not
-realise the position. He still kept on talking.
-
-And while we stood there, wasting moments that were precious, our
-comrades were wondering what was wrong. One of our men who had been
-allotted a position on the ditch that ran along the road apparently
-realised the situation. Without considering how he was threatening our
-whole scheme, not to speak of endangering the lives of three of us who
-were standing by the cart, he drew the pin from his grenade and hurled
-the missile straight at the policeman’s head. Now any one of the three of
-us could easily have settled with the obstructionist with perfect safety
-to ourselves, but we had no desire to kill the poor man, and in any case
-we feared that a single shot would prevent Lord French from coming up to
-us from the station. He could, for instance, if he suspected an ambush
-have sent his escort ahead to clear the road, or he could have gone right
-into Broadstone Station, in the city, and so upset everything.
-
-The policeman was struck on the head with the bomb and the weapon
-burst at my side without doing serious injury to any of us beyond the
-fact that the force of the explosion threw us violently to the ground.
-McLoughlin, the policeman, was not seriously injured. The rest of us
-quickly recovered from our shock, and we had no time now to bother
-about the policeman, for at that moment the motor cycle despatch rider
-(or scout, as he really was) who always rode forty or fifty yards ahead
-of the Viceroy’s party dashed by us from the station. A second later
-comes the first motor and we dash right in front of it opening fire on
-the occupants. Our fire is at once returned, and so close are we to the
-enemy that a new hat I had just bought is shot right off my head. It was
-a close shave, but my usual luck was with me that day. So fast was the
-car travelling that we had no time even to glance at the occupants, nor
-indeed were we greatly concerned with them, for our real object was to
-frighten that car into such speed that it would quickly seek safety in
-flight while we would hurl all our force against the second car, the one
-in which we knew Lord French always travelled.
-
-Our cart had not completely blocked the road when the first motor sped
-by—we did not intend it to. Another dash to pull the cart right across
-the road and the second car is upon us. From every position held by our
-little party our concentrated attack opens and the air is rent with rapid
-revolver fire and bursting bombs and hand grenades. But it is by no means
-a one-sided battle. The enemy has his machine-gun and rifles in action,
-and there we stand a target for him on the roadside while we still pour
-volley after volley into car No. 2. The three of us near the cart are
-now in a double peril. The enemy’s bullets whistle round us and his
-grenades burst at our feet, but so close are we to our objective that we
-must also run the gauntlet from the bombs which our own men are hurling
-from the ditch.
-
-With our smoking guns still spitting fire at the occupants of the car
-we back behind the cart, seeking what little cover it affords from the
-enemy’s hail of bullets. Another second and the cart is being riddled
-and the splinters from its shafts are flying round us. But our work must
-be accomplished and the fight must be kept up. Suddenly to our dismay
-another enemy car is rushing towards us from the opposite direction. We
-are now in greater danger than ever for we are trapped between two fires.
-I felt a bullet pierce my left leg, but I had no time to examine the
-wound though I reckoned the bullet had passed through. The British had
-by this time about a dozen rifles and a machine gun in action; but the
-marksmen’s nerves must have failed them, otherwise we could never have
-stood up so long against them. One man, however, gets his mark and poor
-Martin Savage falls into my arms, shot through the body. Poor chap! How
-light-heartedly he had been singing and reciting poems about Ireland and
-the glory of dying for one’s country, as we rode out to Ashtown only an
-hour ago. And he is breathing his last in my arms, dying as he would have
-wished to die—by an English bullet.
-
-All the time the bullets were whizzing by and the enemy’s fire seemed to
-be growing more intense. I laid my dying comrade down on the roadside.
-His lips were moving as if he had a last message to give me. I stooped
-and put my ear to his face and catch the words spoken slowly and
-painfully but distinctly: “I’m done, Dan, but carry on!” Never can I
-forget that picture of my bleeding pallid comrade as he lay on the road
-at Ashtown that December day while bullets hopped around like hailstones
-striking everything but me at whom they were aimed.
-
-But it was no time for weeping over the dead. Martin Savage had given
-his life in the cause for which he had lived—the cause for which he had
-shouldered his gun three years before when as a lad of eighteen he had
-done his bit in Easter Week, 1916. But for the rest of us the duty was to
-live for Ireland—to carry on.
-
-Tom Keogh had now got back to cover. I looked around to see where were
-my chances of escape. There seemed none. The blood is streaming from my
-wounded leg and the enemy’s fire is fierce and rapid whilst ours has
-eased off, because our grenades are gone, many of our revolvers are
-empty and one of our men is dead. Amidst a hail of bullets I dashed for
-shelter of Kelly’s house round the corner and got there in safety.
-
-My gun speaks again. The enemy is silent. The khaki warriors have
-suddenly fled for the safety of the Park, followed by the whole Viceregal
-party.
-
-We were now left in possession of the field of battle and with us were
-the wreck of the second car, its driver McEvoy whom we had wounded and
-captured in the fray, the wounded D.M.P. man, Constable O’Loughlin, and
-the dead body of our gallant comrade Martin Savage. We released our
-prisoner McEvoy. By a strange irony of fate his path crossed mine three
-years later, in April, 1923. I was then a prisoner in the hands of the
-Free State troops in Limerick Jail. McEvoy was there, an officer in the
-prison.
-
-That December day in 1919, as we hurriedly surveyed the ground at Ashtown
-we were convinced we had achieved our purpose and had shot Lord French.
-Now our next and most urgent concern was to return to the city, for we
-knew that within half an hour Ashtown and the country for miles around it
-would be swarming with British troops.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVI.
-
-OUR ESCAPE FROM ASHTOWN.
-
-
-The ten of us now held a hurried Council of War at the cross-road of
-Ashtown. Nine of our party had escaped without a scratch: Martin Savage
-was dead and I was wounded and bleeding profusely. We had routed the
-whole body of British soldiers with their rifles, their machine gun, and
-their armour-plated car, and we had killed the Lord Lieutenant.
-
-We carried poor Martin’s body into Kelly’s shop. It was all we could
-do. We knew the enemy would soon return with reinforcements and take
-possession of all that was left of that gallant soldier, but it would
-be suicidal to attempt to remove it to the city. The terror-stricken
-occupants of the Half-way House looked on in amazement and in silence.
-
-With a prayer for the soul of our departed comrade we mounted our
-bicycles and faced for the city. We had scarcely started when Seumas
-Robinson found that his bicycle was broken and useless for the journey.
-Jumping on the back of Sean Treacy’s machine he balanced himself with
-one foot on the step and held on to Sean’s broad shoulders. But with two
-men on a bicycle speed is slow, and never were we in greater need of a
-speedy return to safety. In our dilemma we espied a cyclist approaching
-us from the city. He was walking and wheeling his bicycle, evidently
-having alighted when he heard the battle in progress. In war most things
-are fair and the temporary seizure of his machine was not against our
-rules. Robinson had his gun still in his hand. Jumping from the step he
-presented his revolver at the stranger and ordered him to hand over his
-bicycle. The order was complied with. We always liked to cause as little
-trouble as possible to civilians and even in our haste that afternoon
-Seumas did not forget his duty to the owner of the bicycle. He assured
-him that if he called to the Gresham Hotel that evening his machine would
-be forthcoming. I do not know whether the man ever got his bicycle; I
-hope he did. Anyhow it was left near the door of the hotel that same
-evening as Seumas had promised.
-
-We returned to the city safely. I was now feeling weak from the loss
-of blood, and went at once to Mrs. Toomey’s house on Phibsboro’ Road,
-on the north side of the city, and one of the first streets one meets
-in the city when returning straight from Ashtown. I believe the police
-and military later that day traced my blood-stains from Ashtown along
-the Cabra Road, but fortunately they lost the trail near the city. Mrs.
-Toomey was very kind to me. I was at once put to bed and a doctor was
-sent for. I was attended by Dr. J. M. Ryan, then famous as the Captain of
-an All-Ireland hurling team. A doctor from the Mater Hospital, which was
-only a few hundred yards from my resting-place also attended me.
-
-That evening Dublin rang with the newsboys’ cry of “Attack on the Lord
-Lieutenant—Sensational fight at Ashtown—One of the Attackers shot dead!”
-And then I got a shock that almost drove me mad. Lord French had escaped
-unhurt!
-
-It was true. We had failed. For the first time the Viceroy had travelled
-not in the second car but in the first. The car which we had scarcely
-bothered about and which we had only wanted to frighten off actually bore
-safely away the man we wanted. The news made my wound worse. I never
-liked half done jobs, and here we had not even half done our work. Sean
-Treacy took the disappointment philosophically. His motto was always to
-make the best of things. His consolation to me was, “You can’t always
-have Knocklongs, Dan.”
-
-We never got another chance of shooting Lord French. He retired
-completely from public life. He scarcely ever appeared in public
-afterwards. Even when he went to England armoured cars patrolled the
-roads to the mail boat, and armed detectives surrounded him, even to
-London. His movements were kept a close secret and disclosed to the Press
-many days later.
-
-Had we been in a position to use rifles that day we could easily have
-made sure of shooting him from Kelly’s house, but at that time our only
-means of travelling to the spot was by bicycle, for practically no motor
-cars were in use. This was due to the fact that a few months previously
-the British had made an order that every motor-driver should have a
-special permit from the military, bearing not only his name but his
-description and a photograph, like a passport. The order was to prevent
-the I.R.A. from using motor cars for getting about, especially for night
-attacks. Naturally, the only men likely to get permits from the British
-would be those who could prove their “loyalty” and were therefore not
-likely to assist us or to run the risk of giving us a car. The Motor
-Drivers’ Union resenting this degrading condition met the order by
-refusing to apply for permits and by declaring a general strike all over
-the country. Hence as we could not get motors to travel to Ashtown we had
-no means of concealing rifles as we naturally could not strap them on
-bicycles. However, I must say I am glad now that Lord French escaped. He
-was only doing his duty by his adopted country, the Nation or the Empire
-which had given him wealth, title and honours.
-
-Let me pause to recount some sequels to the Ashtown attack. Church and
-Press denounced us in unmeasured terms, but the public were more guarded
-in their condemnation; slowly the country was beginning to realise that
-we meant war with England until, to quote the words of O’Donovan Rossa,
-“she was stricken to her knees or we were stricken to our graves.”
-For the most part then, while the press and the clergy uttered bitter
-denunciations the public remained silent. It was the turning point. They
-were judging the situation. In private discussions many defended our
-standpoint. In public there was, of course, no means of doing so. The
-great majority of our countrymen were taking their bearings; they were
-perhaps shocked at the daring force tactics, but they were beginning to
-realise that we meant business, and that it was their duty to stand by us.
-
-The morning following the attack the _Irish Independent_ published a
-leading article in which we were all referred to as “assassins.” The
-article was plentifully sprinkled with such terms as “criminal folly,”
-“outrage,” “murder,” and so on, and this was the very paper which
-depended for its whole income on the support of the people who had voted
-for the establishment of an Irish Republic. It had not even the sense of
-fair play, not to speak of decency, to wait until the inquest had been
-held and until Martin Savage had been laid to rest, to express its views.
-The other Dublin papers we did not mind. The _Irish Times_ was openly
-and avowedly a British organ, and the _Freeman’s Journal_ was beneath
-the contempt of any decent Irishman. But we could not allow a paper that
-pretended to be Irish and independent to stab our dead comrade in the
-back.
-
-At the time I was, of course, confined to bed as the result of my wounds
-and had no direct part in what followed. I believe some of the boys
-favoured the shooting of the Editor. Finally, another course was adopted.
-It was decided to suppress the paper. At 9 o’clock on Sunday night twenty
-or thirty of our men in charge of Peadar Clancy entered the building
-and held up the staff with revolvers. They then informed the Editor
-that his machinery was to be dismantled, and proceeding to the works
-department they smashed the linotypes with sledges, leaving the place in
-such a condition that it was hoped no paper would appear for some time.
-With the assistance of the other Dublin printing offices, however, the
-_Independent_ was able to get a paper out as usual next day. However, we
-had taught the paper a lesson, and in a way we were glad that nobody was
-thrown out of work as many of the staff were I.R.A. men. Never afterwards
-did the _Independent_, or any other Dublin newspaper, refer to any
-I.R.A. men as murderers or assassins, and I must say that soon afterwards
-the _Independent_ was of much service in exposing British atrocities,
-even though it never supported our fighting policy. The proprietors got
-£16,000 compensation for the raid.
-
-After the inquest on Martin Savage his body was handed over to his
-relatives. The clergy refused to have his body allowed into any church
-in Dublin, and the night before its removal to his native Ballisodare,
-County Sligo, it lay all night at the Broadstone Station attended only
-by a faithful few. But the funeral the next day was the greatest tribute
-ever paid to an Irishman in the West. The cortege was several miles
-long, and the Parish Priest attended and recited the last prayers, while
-the R.I.C., with the chivalry characteristic of them, surrounded the
-graveyard with their guns and bayonets. However, I suppose that was the
-best tribute they could pay to a gallant soldier, even though they did
-not intend it.
-
-One other matter I must refer to here and then I proceed with my
-narrative:
-
-It may be asked why Martin Savage’s body was allowed to leave Dublin
-without receiving from the capital the last mark of respect which
-his sacrifice deserved. The answer is simple. The Government of the
-Republic, Dail Eireann, did not wish to associate itself directly with
-our actions. Without going into details which might involve the names
-of many prominent men, some living, some dead, I wish to emphasise
-here and now that neither then nor at any later stage did Dail Eireann
-accept responsibility for the war against the British. Why, I do not
-know, nor do I wish to enter into any controversy on the attitude of
-the Dail. I can only say what was later publicly admitted both in the
-second Republican Dail and in the Free State Dail (General Mulcahy,
-December, 1923), that the I.R.A. was left to carry on the war on its own
-initiative, on its own resources, without either approval or disapproval
-from the Government of the Republic. It is well that this fact should be
-known to future generations.
-
-[Illustration: GENERAL LIAM LYNCH.]
-
-It was amusing to read the newspaper versions of the Ashtown attack for
-days afterwards. At the inquest on Martin Savage it was stated that the
-“assailants fled and were pursued.” I almost roared laughing when I read
-this and pictured the British soldiers’ precipitate flight for the cover
-of the Phoenix Park wall. It was very strange indeed that we managed to
-reach Dublin on our bicycles if we were pursued by men provided not only
-with rifles and machine guns but with motor cars. Another imaginative
-writer described a tree by the roadside which had been specially clipped
-to form a look-out point for one of our men. Just imagine the military
-genius of anyone who would send a man up on a tree to see a train that he
-could see from the road, or to become a sure target for enemy rifles!
-
-At the inquest too the Crown Counsel refused to disclose the name of the
-lady who was in the car with Lord French.
-
-Lord French, by the way, travelled in mufti that day—so it was stated at
-the inquest. Perhaps that is why we did not recognise him in the first
-car. I also learned from the inquest story that Detective Sergeant Hally,
-who was wounded by our fire, was a countryman of my own, hailing from
-Carrick-on-Suir.
-
-After a few days in the house of Mrs. Toomey at Phibsboro’, I was taken
-across to the south side of the city to No. 13 Grantham Street—the house
-of Mrs. Malone. Three months previously I had paid my first visit to this
-house. It happened in this way:
-
-On 8th September, 1919, Seumas Robinson and I were in difficulties to
-find a place to sleep; we went to Phil Shanahan’s, where we had met Sam
-Fahy, brother of Frank Fahy, T.D. We had known Sam well in Tipperary,
-where he spent some years, though at this time he was on the run like
-ourselves. We told him our trouble, and he at once gave us the latchkey
-of a friend’s house in Grantham Street and told us the number, assuring
-us that men on the run need never want for shelter while that house was
-there. Mrs. Malone, he said, was the woman’s name, and she could be
-trusted with any secret. She had lost a son, Michael, in the Insurrection
-of Easter Week.
-
-Seumas and myself then went from Phibsboro on our way to Grantham
-Street. To make matters worse we had forgotten the number of the house.
-Fortunately it is not a large street, and at the first house we knocked
-we were directed to Mrs. Malone’s. We were made feel quite at home
-immediately. They were all very kind to us—Mr. and Mrs. Malone and the
-Misses Malone. We stayed for the night, and next morning we learned that
-the family had only four days previously suffered the loss of one of
-their daughters.
-
-From that day we became close friends with the Malone family. We brought
-Treacy and Hogan there soon afterwards and introduced them to the family.
-Both of the girls—Brighid and Aine—were active members of the Cumann na
-mBan, and were always anxious to help us. They carried all our despatches
-and messages and even helped in removing munitions to Kingsbridge
-Station. You must understand that we were always in search of revolvers
-or rifles or ammunition to buy or to capture. Any that fell into our
-hands we always sent to our Brigade in South Tipperary. The stuff was
-needed very badly there, and there were far less chances of getting it
-than there were in Dublin. Very often we sent on munitions by train, in
-boxes labelled “Tea” or “Wines,” or some other commodity that the person
-to whom they were addressed was accustomed to receive. Of course, we
-always had our arrangements made at the other end so that the goods would
-be received by a merchant who was himself an I.R.A. man or by one of his
-assistants.
-
-Only a few days before the Ashtown fight I had been joking with Aine
-Malone and telling her they would have to nurse me if I was wounded. I
-little thought that my joke of December, 1919, would come true, and that
-I would be installed in Grantham Street in the care of the Malones. The
-wound in my leg proved more serious than I expected, and my head too was
-painful. For three whole months I was laid up, scarcely able to move
-about at all. I am not so sure that I felt any way anxious to get away
-from my surroundings. Everyone was kind to me. Peadar Clancy came to see
-me and gave me the news nearly every day. I have fond, if sad, memories
-of pleasant hours spent with Peadar as he chatted or read for me. Dick
-McKee and Sean Treacy and Hogan were all kind too, and came to see me
-regularly. Peadar and Dick and Sean Treacy alas were not to see another
-Christmas. But I know they died smiling and happy.
-
-Apart from my good and thoughtful comrades there was an even stronger
-reason which made me think little of the pain and the indoor confinement.
-That was my kindest and ever attentive nurse—then Brighid Malone—now my
-wife. Few people have the good fortune to be nursed through sickness by
-their future wives whose presence counts for more than all that medical
-skill can give. But the story of our marriage a year and a half later, in
-circumstances that a fiction writer would discredit as too far-fetched
-for any Wild West novel, I must reserve for its proper place in a later
-chapter.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVII.
-
-FROM TARA TO TIPPERARY.
-
-
-At the opening of 1920 I had plenty of leisure, while my wound was
-healing, to review the year that had passed.
-
-Soloheadbeg had borne fruit. The best tribute was that contained in the
-official statistics that were now issued from time to time by the British
-Government regarding “Crime in Ireland.” Crime as such was, of course,
-almost unknown in Ireland until the arrival of the Black and Tans. When
-the British Government used the word “crime” in reference to Ireland it
-generally meant active operations against the Army of Occupation. So
-it was solemnly announced to the world at the beginning of 1920 that
-during 1919 scores of attacks had been made on British troops or police,
-hundreds of raids for arms had been carried out and a dozen policemen
-(that is, armed spies) had been shot dead. If the British Government
-thought the publication of these statistics would make us repent of our
-actions and shed our patriotism it had miscalculated. The only effect
-was to make us more determined that there would be a much bigger record
-of such “crimes” to be compiled at the end of 1920. And we kept our
-resolution!
-
-In these statistics England took good care not to record her own acts of
-warfare against the civilian population in the same period. She did not
-tell that Dail Eireann, the elected representative Government of Ireland,
-had been proclaimed an illegal assembly, and its schemes for developing
-the country’s industries declared criminal activities. She did not tell
-the world that the Gaelic League, Cumann na mBan, the Irish Volunteers
-and Fianna Eireann (the Irish Boy Scouts) had been similarly declared
-illegal bodies. Nor did she tell of the midnight raids and robberies
-officially carried out against peaceable citizens by her troops. In a
-word, to quote an expression used by Arthur Griffith at the time, she had
-“proclaimed the whole Irish nation as an illegal assembly.”
-
-But lest I should give an unfair picture of the time to the reader
-unacquainted with Irish events, I must in fairness mention a few things
-that the English forces in Ireland had not _yet_ done. They had not
-imposed curfew; they had not murdered men in their beds; they had not
-burned and bombed towns and villages; they had not shot prisoners “for
-attempting to escape”; they had not executed prisoners of war, murdered
-priests and outraged women.
-
-I emphasise the fact that they had not done these things in 1919, because
-they were guilty of every one of these crimes during the year that was
-now beginning. In order to follow my narrative it is well to bear this
-fact in mind, for I may not have occasion to mention these developments
-of British policy unless they directly bear upon my story.
-
-Indeed while I was yet in Dublin in the home of the Malones, the first
-Curfew Order was issued. In an encounter with a few I.R.A. men after
-midnight in February, 1920, a policeman was shot dead in Grafton Street.
-The British at once issued an order making it a criminal offence for any
-civilian to be out-of-doors between midnight and 5 a.m. Within a few
-months that Order was extended to most towns and cities in the south of
-Ireland; not only extended but made more severe. For instance at one time
-no one was allowed to leave his house in Limerick after 7 p.m. In Cork
-the hour was 4 p.m. for a while. It then became customary for the British
-to clear the streets with volley after volley of rifle fire, scores of
-men, women and children being murdered in this way during 1920 and 1921.
-Incidently these curfew regulations gave the Government’s murder gang
-a free field, for no civilian would be about to see them shooting or
-looting during the Curfew hours.
-
-In the early spring of 1920 I dragged myself away from my pleasant
-surroundings in Grantham Street, and traversing the fair plains of
-Fingal. I went to spend a month in royal Meath, at the foot of the Hill
-of Tara. It was my first stay in royal Meath, the garden of Ireland’s
-kings in the days of her greatness. The first day I climbed the hill—I
-stayed for an hour on its summit, living in the past, in spiritual
-association with the warriors of old, and wondering if ever again our
-land would see the day when her sons and daughters would have shaken the
-shackles of slavery from their limbs and have flung their flag proudly to
-the breeze, defiant and free. There is little now on the Hill to tell of
-those days of our greatness. No men crowd its summit; tradition says that
-the curse of a saint from my own county brought about the ruin and decay
-of Tara. But the great Banquet Hall could still be traced where the High
-Kings received homage from their vassals and bestowed hospitality upon
-their subjects. But a little cross on the summit marks the “Croppies’
-Grave,” where “many a Saxon foeman fell, and many an Irish soldier
-true”—the last resting place of the dauntless few who struck a blow for
-Ireland in ’98, and fell with their face to the enemy. And I knelt on
-the green sward of the deserted palace and prayed that the Croppies’
-sacrifice might not be in vain; that their dream might come true even in
-our generation, and that I might be given strength and courage to speed
-the day.
-
-There on the sod hallowed by the footsteps of Ireland’s warrior saints
-and kings of peace I realised for the first time the full meaning of that
-little poem of Moore’s, with its pathetic appeal that always grips the
-Irish heart and dims the patriot’s eye.
-
- “Let Erin remember the days of old
- Ere her faithless sons betrayed her!”
-
-And then my eyes wandered over the plains at my feet—richer than my own
-Golden Vale. Here and there I saw a stately mansion or a castle; but I
-knew that these were not the homes of the clansmen of our kings, but the
-fortresses of those who had deprived them of their heritage. Of farm
-houses there were none; a labourer’s cottage here and there marked the
-home of the Gaels who had survived—to be the hewers of wood and drawers
-of water. I searched the countryside for the men that this fair land
-should have raised; but the roads were deserted; the bullock had replaced
-the king and the peasant. And I asked myself did Providence ordain that
-Meath should be the home of the bullock to feed the conquering Saxon. No!
-It could not be. It was the old curse, the old blight of the foreigner.
-
-Many a day afterwards I wandered along the plains of Meath, thinking
-and planning and dreaming of the happy land it might be if only we
-were allowed to work out our own destiny as God would have us. I often
-walked for three or four hours without meeting a human being. Here and
-there a lovely mansion; around it the gatelodge of the serf, the winding
-avenue, the silent trees and the green fields with the bullock as their
-ruler. Landlordism, worked as the willing instrument of English rule,
-had wrought this desolation. And I renewed my resolve to do my share in
-bringing about the change that must come.
-
-I spent pleasant, if uneventful days, with Joseph Dardis and with Dr.
-Lynch and Tom Carton, of Stamullen, and also with Vincent Purfield, of
-Balbriggan. From them all I received the same genial hospitality that so
-many had already shown me. Thank God, England has not yet deprived us of
-our spirit of kindness and hospitality.
-
-The summer was now approaching. I was feeling strong and fit again. I
-was anxious to be doing something. The war was developing and I could
-not be idle. I felt I had no right to remain any longer out of the fray.
-Some of the things I had read in the papers had made my blood boil again.
-Tom MacCurtain, Lord Mayor of Cork, who had been with us but five or six
-months previously lying in wait for Lord French, had been murdered in
-his home in the presence of his wife. In Thurles two or three similar
-murders had been committed by the British. They were but the first of a
-hundred such murders to be committed within a year by British forces, all
-connived at or directly inspired by the highest officials in the land.
-
-I resolved to be up and doing. I returned to Dublin. There I met some of
-the boys and urged an intensive guerilla campaign. Dick McKee and Peadar
-Clancy enthusiastically supported my views and favoured my “on with the
-war” policy.
-
-As I have already explained, our own policy was all the time
-“unofficial.” Neither Dail Eireann nor General Headquarters of the I.R.A.
-had sanctioned it or accepted responsibility. Mick Collins, I must
-say, seemed to favour it. He always promised to continue to push our
-war policy in the “proper quarters,” and it must be remembered that he
-was then not only on the G.H.Q. staff but was Finance Minister in Dail
-Eireann. I have already recounted how he was with us on one occasion
-towards the end of 1919, when we had prepared to ambush Lord French, but
-the Lord Lieutenant disappointed us.
-
-The truth is that our war policy was not popular. The military
-authorities did not seem to want it. The political wing certainly did
-not want it, and more than one T.D. strongly denounced it in private;
-though it was part of our good fortune to be able always to conceal
-our differences from the enemy—until after the Truce. The Press, of
-course, denounced our campaign, though since a lesson had been taught the
-_Independent_ the newspapers had learned that “discretion was the better
-part of valour,” especially in the use of certain words like “murder,”
-and “outrage.” The words “shootings” and “tragedies” became very popular
-with the newspapers after the attack on the _Independent_.
-
-The public did not want the war. They forgot that it was their vote at
-the 1918 General Election that had led to the formal establishment of the
-Republic. They only knew that attacks on police meant more severe martial
-law, worse curfew, more arrests and compensation for policemen’s widows.
-Evidently many thought at that time that liberty was a thing to be got
-for nothing. I must say, however, that as the war developed in intensity
-towards the end of 1920 and the beginning of 1921 the vast majority of
-the people stood with us, and cheerfully took their share of the risks
-and hardships.
-
-I did not intend to stay long in Dublin. I wanted to get back to
-Tipperary. I felt that things were too quiet there. The boys were all
-right, they were game for anything; all they wanted was to be told what
-to do. So Sean Treacy and I once more cycled that hundred miles journey,
-and I found myself back in Tipperary after an absence of nearly twelve
-months.
-
-This time we had a new plan. We decided to embark upon a campaign of a
-kind then scarcely known in the struggle, but one that was soon to show
-the world that there was no longer any doubt that Ireland was in a state
-of open war.
-
-(In the next chapter I shall describe that new campaign.)
-
- * * * * *
-
-Before dealing with the events which followed my return to Tipperary I
-must tell of an incident that almost ended my career as a gunman.
-
-Seumas Robinson and I had been spending a few days with Vincent Purfield
-at Balbriggan, where I had often had such a happy time. That was during
-Holy Week, 1920, and we decided to go to Dublin for Easter. We started
-from Balbriggan in a motor driven by Vincent himself on Good Friday,
-April 2nd, 1920.
-
-Now the British authorities in Ireland were always under the impression
-that the Sinn Feiners would always do something every Easter to celebrate
-the anniversary of the 1916 Insurrection. As a matter of fact we usually
-did, but we were always disobliging enough to do just the thing they
-never expected, and at that time they were taken most by surprise.
-Anyhow, in preparation for the “annual rising,” as people sarcastically
-spoke of the thing which the Government expected, the military always
-let us know that they were not to be taken by surprise. For years they
-used to erect barricades at all the roads leading into Dublin, and place
-military outposts who searched every car and pedestrian passing in or out
-of the city during the few days before and after Easter. Having thus done
-their duty by the Empire they usually removed their barricades after a
-few days.
-
-When we left Balbriggan that morning we forgot all about this annual
-manœuvre of the British, otherwise I need hardly say we should have spent
-Easter with Vincent in Balbriggan. We had a pleasant journey until we
-arrived within a few miles of the city, about half a mile beyond the tram
-terminus at Whitehall. On rounding a corner we suddenly came face to
-face with a military lorry travelling towards us. The lorry slowed down
-apparently to pull up and search our car, but we looked so innocent and
-harmless that the officer ordered his car to proceed. We proceeded on
-our way and laughed heartily, while congratulating ourselves on our good
-luck. But our good fortune was short-lived. The noise of the military
-lorry had scarcely died away when half a mile further on towards the city
-we heard a sharp order to “Halt!”
-
-Straight ahead of us, just at the tramway terminus was a military
-barricade, a score of soldiers, with their rifles gripped in a
-business-like way, while an officer was stepping towards us, dangling
-his revolver. Now, I thought, my hour had come. There is no escape this
-time.
-
-Vincent kept as cool as a cucumber; not one of us betrayed the slightest
-concern and the car drove right to the barricade before it slowed down.
-
-I stepped out of the car and walked straight to the officer with an angry
-scowl and demanded the meaning of this.
-
-“I must search your car,” was the curt reply.
-
-Then I thought it was better to try civility. I told him we had no
-objection to being searched, but assured him that any delay would be
-serious to us, as we were in a hurry to reach the city on important
-business. He hesitated for a moment. Then he waved to the soldiers to
-clear the way.
-
-“Very well!” he said, “you may go ahead.”
-
-“Thank you,” I nodded to him, entered the car and we drove on.
-
-I could not have afforded to allow either the car or ourselves to be
-searched. Had he attempted to do so, it would have been his last piece of
-military activity. Probably we would never have escaped ourselves had he
-forced me to pull my gun, but there was no other way out of it.
-
-Our motor car was the only vehicle that entered or left Dublin without
-being searched during those five days.
-
-The same bluff as had carried Sean Hogan and myself out of a similar
-difficulty near Limerick a year before now proved successful at
-Whitehall, within a few hundred yards of the house where, seven months
-later, I was to have my biggest fight for life—at Drumcondra.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVIII.
-
-THE BARRACK ATTACKS
-
-
-Our new plan for more active operations against the British was, in
-short, to attack them in their strongholds—the police barracks throughout
-the country. The peelers were now far too cautious to patrol the roads.
-They seldom if ever ventured any distance from their barracks. We
-could not meet them in the open. But if the mountain would not come to
-Mohammed, there was only the other thing to be done. We had got to go to
-the police and attack them on their own grounds.
-
-At this time, in the spring of 1920, they were rapidly evacuating all
-outlying barracks in small places where there was a danger that the
-garrison could be cut off or surprised. They were concentrating on the
-larger barracks where the garrisons were strengthened and the buildings
-strongly fortified with steel shutters and barbed wire entanglements.
-It was at this time that the I.R.A. carried out its most intensive
-simultaneous series of operations. In one night no less than about a
-thousand vacated police barracks were burned to the ground—the operations
-extending to every county in Ireland. In this way we prevented any
-possibility that those barracks would ever again be occupied by the
-enemy. A thousand links of the British military chain had been severed.
-
-At this time the peelers had abandoned all pretence of being a police
-force. They were openly and avowedly a military force not attempting to
-suppress crime but holding the country by brute force for England. When
-the R.I.C. uniforms disappeared from a village our I.R.A. police promptly
-took over the duties that they should have discharged, and right well
-they did it. The robber and the housebreaker soon learned to have for the
-I.R.A. a wholesome respect he never had for the R.I.C.
-
-If any reader unacquainted with events in Ireland at that time thinks
-it incredible that a police force like the R.I.C. should have been so
-shameless as to allow criminals a free hand I hope I shall convince him
-by two simple facts. The first is that in cases where our men were found
-to have arrested men for robbery or other forms of crime, the practice
-of the British was to have the criminal released and protected and to
-have the I.R.A. men sent to jail. The newspaper files with accounts of
-courts-martial on our men on such charges bear out my statement. The
-second fact, though never revealed in the newspapers, did not come under
-my personal notice, but I have it from I.R.A. men concerned. In County
-Meath a most cold-blooded murder was committed by an ex-British soldier.
-The R.I.C. had clear evidence that he was guilty. They arrested him, but
-did they try him? No! They released him and advised him to leave the
-country before he fell into the hands of the I.R.A. But he was arrested
-by the I.R.A. men within five minutes of his release, and later paid the
-penalty of his crime.
-
-At this time too the Black and Tans appeared on the scene. A great many
-are still in doubt as to how they got this name, so it is as well to
-explain.
-
-The force was recruited by Sir Hamar Greenwood’s instructions early in
-1920 to swell the ranks of the R.I.C. and to replace the Irishmen who
-had resigned from that force in disgust. Greenwood wanted thousands of
-recruits for carrying out the policy of terrorism which had been decided
-upon. He could not get them in Ireland. Even in England he found it hard
-to get any decent men to come on such work. Hence his force was recruited
-mainly from the lower classes of English ex-soldiers, many of them being
-known criminals or ex-convicts. They arrived in Ireland in such numbers
-that the R.I.C. could not possibly equip half of them in the recognised
-dark blue uniform. There were some black tunics to be had and some black
-trousers, also some black caps. The military came to their assistance
-with a supply of khaki. Every man was given some portion of the black
-uniform to show he was nominally a policeman, but the main portion of
-the outfit was khaki. When these irregular forces first took up duty in
-the South you can imagine their grotesque appearance—one man being all
-in khaki except for a black cap, another all in khaki except for black
-trousers, and so on, none of them being either completely in black or
-completely in khaki.
-
-Our Irish people have a sense of humour, and they have always been noted
-for their happy knack of giving appropriate nick-names. In the district
-which surrounds Knocklong—South Tipperary and East Limerick the name
-_Black and Tan_ was born. For generations there had been in that district
-a famous pack of hounds known as the “Black and Tans.” Is it surprising
-that the people soon saw how like the new force was to their hounds, not
-only in colour but in other respects? Such is the origin of a name that
-will survive in all languages for terrorism, loot and murder.
-
-These changes to which I have referred had taken place in our native
-county during our absence. We decided at once to open a series of attacks
-on police barracks.
-
-Attacks on police barracks had been going on in various parts of the
-South on a small scale for months. The first case in which the garrison
-was captured was at Araglen, on the borders of Cork and Limerick, near
-the southern end of the Galtees. The attack was carried out by Liam
-Lynch, who was killed during the Civil War early in 1923, while he was
-Chief of Staff of the I.R.A.
-
-Liam Lynch, as the struggle developed in intensity proved himself the
-finest officer in Ireland to control and handle a brigade or division. He
-and Sean Moylan made an admirable combination and their successes against
-the British were amazing. Tom Barry was, I think, the best leader of a
-flying column.
-
-I first met Liam Lynch at the Autumn of 1919. We were introduced by Tom
-Hunter, then Republican Deputy for Cork and Peadar Clancy’s partner in
-business in Dublin. Lynch was at that time very much on the run, like
-myself. On September 7th, he had carried out a daring coup in Fermoy,
-disarming twelve soldiers who were going to church. In the struggle one
-of the British soldiers was killed and Liam himself was wounded. That
-incident is of historic importance by reason of the fact that it led to
-the first case of “reprisals”; for the night of the attack the British
-soldiers, led by some of their officers, wrecked and looted the principal
-shops in Fermoy.
-
-Liam Lynch was a soldier to his finger tips. He stood six feet in height
-and in his eye you read that he was born to be a leader of men. As gentle
-as a child he was a dauntless soldier, and commanded one of the best
-brigades in Ireland against the British.
-
-Shortly after the capture of Araglen Barracks by Liam Lynch, the next
-victory of the kind was gained by Michael Brennan, who seized all the
-arms and ammunition in a barrack in Clare. In this case the barrack
-was surrendered by Constable Buckley, who afterwards fought with the
-I.R.A. through the war, and was killed in Kerry while a prisoner during
-the Civil War. The next barracks that was captured by the I.R.A. was
-Ballylanders on the 28th April, 1920, when three policemen were wounded
-and the barrack burned to the ground after the garrison had surrendered
-their arms to Sean Malone (_alias_ “Forde”), who commanded in the attack.
-
-On our return to Tipperary we very soon carried out three attacks on
-police barracks, one of which surrendered to us after a five hours’ fight.
-
-The first barrack in Tipperary to surrender to the I.R.A. was Drangan.
-That was on June 4th, 1920. Drangan is situated in the eastern end of the
-county, near the Kilkenny side. It is seven miles from Killenaule.
-
-Our usual procedure in these attacks—which always took place at night—was
-to mobilise 30 or 40 I.R.A. men, and have trees felled across all the
-roads leading to the position. In that way we prevented, or at least
-delayed, assistance from arriving to help the besieged garrison. This
-blocking of the roads was carried out often for a five or ten mile
-radius. Often, too, we felled trees across the roads when we had no
-intention of attacking a position—merely to annoy and confuse the enemy.
-
-Having taken these precautions to ensure that no assistance could arrive
-to the garrison we also cut the telegraph and telephone wires. Then we
-quietly occupied a few houses in the front or rear of the barracks and
-opened our attack, while some of our men perhaps attempted to fire the
-building by means of petrol. Very often too the first hint we gave of
-our presence was the exploding of a mine at the door or the gable of the
-barrack in order to blow up the building or to make a breach. Sometimes
-these plans succeeded, sometimes they failed.
-
-The fight at Drangan was a prolonged affair. The officers who took part
-in the attack were Sean Treacy, Seumas Robinson, Ernie O’Malley, Sean
-Hogan and myself. Having first taken the usual steps of blocking the
-roads and cutting all wires, we quietly occupied a vacant house right
-in front of the barrack—why the police were so stupid as to leave it
-unguarded I cannot imagine. More of our men went to the back and took
-up positions for opening fire, while on the street in front we erected
-a small barricade. About midnight we opened the attack. After the first
-volley we ceased fire, and called on the defenders to surrender. We
-always did that, not only to spare their lives if possible, but also to
-spare our own supplies of ammunition which were never plentiful. But they
-refused to come out. We renewed the attack, with rifles, bombs, revolvers
-and shot-guns—our munitions were always necessarily of an assorted kind.
-The enemy replied hotly to our fire, but with no effect. Suddenly the
-sky was lighted up with Verey lights—rockets discharged by the garrison
-as a signal to neighbouring posts that they needed help. But we knew it
-would be long before assistance could pass our barriers. We continued the
-onslaught with renewed vigour from front and rear, and some of our men
-actually tore off the slates on the roof of the barrack. Daylight was
-breaking amidst cracking of rifles and the bursting of bombs when there
-was a sudden lull in the replying fire from the enemy. A moment later
-appeared from one of the windows a sharp blast of a whistle, and our men
-ceased fire. The order was shouted to the garrison to advance into the
-open. A minute later they were disarmed prisoners. We prepared for our
-return to safety before military reinforcements cut their way through. We
-marched our prisoners—two sergeants and six constables—to the outskirts
-of the village, released them and departed with our booty, not one of our
-men being wounded.
-
-The same night Cappawhite police barrack, also in Tipperary, was attacked
-by another party of I.R.A. men, but the garrison held their own.
-
-It was sometimes amusing to read the accounts of these attacks in the
-newspapers next day. Naturally none of our men ever told the true story,
-and the newspaper men had to rely mainly on the police version. The
-police, of course, had to make the best show possible in the eyes of
-their own superiors, and the newspaper men had to take their version,
-because they would need the information that friendly policemen could
-give them later on, and also because they might get a surprise midnight
-visit from the Black and Tan torturers if anything derogatory to the
-police was said. Hence it was that often when we had only 30 or 40 men
-on a job, with perhaps half a dozen rifles in all, the police would tell
-the public that the “number of attackers was estimated at 300, with
-several machine guns.” And often when not one of our men got a scratch
-it was reported that “several of the attackers were seen to fall, and it
-is believed three were shot dead.” There were times when we did suffer
-losses, but they never suspected it.
-
-Our next operation of the kind was away on the north-western side of
-the county in the mountainous districts of Hollyford. This also was a
-complete success, the same body of us being in charge of the operation.
-It must be remembered that at this time the number of men on the run was
-comparatively small, and we often had to rely upon men who were never
-suspected of taking part in these attacks, and who returned to their
-work before morning.
-
-Our next attack was not far from the same district—Rear Cross. Here we
-had a desperate battle, and were forced to retire without capturing
-the position. In this fight we had the assistance of some men from
-East Limerick Brigade, and the North Tipperary Brigade, but the South
-Tipperary boys carried out the main offensive under Sean Treacy and
-myself. The garrison, I must say, put up a brave defence, and used their
-hand-grenades with effect, Ernie O’Malley, Jim Gorman, Treacy and myself
-all being wounded by shrapnel. We succeeded in setting the building on
-fire, and I believe that several of the enemy were burned to death, while
-two others were shot.
-
-It was about this time—to be exact, on the night of May 27th—that the
-famous Kilmallock attack took place. I was not engaged on the occasion.
-This attack, carried out by Sean Malone (_alias_ “Forde”) created a big
-sensation at the time. It was a prolonged battle lasting from midnight
-until 7 o’clock in the morning. The barrack, which was regarded as being
-impregnable, was situated in the very heart of the town, and was occupied
-by one of the largest R.I.C. garrisons in the south. The I.R.A. occupied
-a hotel and several houses on the principal street, and actually pumped
-petrol from a hose on to the building. The barrack was burned to the
-ground, but our men had to cease the attack before the garrison was
-forced to surrender. One I.R.A. officer—Scully, of Kerry—was killed, two
-of the enemy were killed, and six of them wounded. The two policemen were
-burned to death in a room where they had been locked because they advised
-a surrender. The sergeant who commanded the garrison was promoted to the
-rank of District Inspector for his defence. He was shot dead in Listowel
-a few months later.
-
-The next big engagement in which we took part was the famous fight at
-Oola, the day Brigadier-General Lucas escaped. This sensational incident
-I must relate in the next chapter.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIX.
-
-CAPTURE AND ESCAPE OF GENERAL LUCAS.
-
-
-The capture of Brigadier-General Lucas was effected on June 26th, 1920,
-by Liam Lynch, George Power, and a few more of Lynch’s staff. General
-Lucas, who was stationed at Fermoy and commanded in that district, was
-accompanied by Colonel Danford, R.E., and Colonel Tyrell. Lynch and his
-comrades drove up in a motor car and surprised the three British officers
-at a place called Conna, near Castlelyons, seven or eight miles from
-Fermoy, where General Lucas had taken a fishing lodge. They were taken
-completely by surprise and removed to a waiting motor car. The original
-idea was to hold the General as a hostage to be exchanged for Bob Barton,
-T.D., who was then being treated as a criminal in an English prison,
-where he was undergoing a 10 years’ sentence for “sedition.”
-
-When Lynch had driven his prisoners for some distance they were
-conversing amongst themselves in Arabic. The purport of their
-conversation was made clear when, half an hour later, they suddenly
-attacked their captors. In a sharp melee which ensued Colonel Danford was
-wounded. Lynch thereupon sent a motor back to Fermoy military barracks
-by Tyrell, whom he also released, while Lucas was removed to a place
-of safety in the keeping of the I.R.A. The manner in which the English
-soldiers at Fermoy showed their appreciation of a generous foe who had
-released a wounded officer was to wreck the town next night—the second
-time within twelve months that Fermoy had been wrecked because of a
-successful exploit by Liam Lynch.
-
-Lucas himself was every inch a gentleman and a soldier. For five weeks
-he was a prisoner of the I.R.A., and during that time he was treated
-with the courtesy and kindness befitting his rank and character. Every
-facility was given him for communicating with his relatives, and he
-had every comfort that his captors—themselves “on the run” with their
-prisoner—could provide. To his credit be it said he acknowledged this
-later, though I believe he got into trouble with the British War Office.
-
-His last place of detention was a house in East Limerick. From there he
-made his escape on the night of July 29th, in circumstances which it is
-not in my province to narrate.
-
-Now, on the morning of July 30th, Sean Treacy and the rest of us had
-planned an ambush on the road between Limerick and Tipperary. At that
-time our men were creating much trouble for the enemy by holding up
-trains and mail cars to censor letters for information. In this way we
-got much valuable information from time to time, including evidence
-against local spies here and there. So serious a problem did we create
-for the British that they had to take special precautions to prevent
-military mails and despatches falling into our hands. For instance, the
-Limerick garrison adopted the plan of sending a special military escort
-by road to the Limerick Junction every morning to take the mails off the
-train there, and thus avoid possible raids on the 20 miles of the branch
-line from Limerick Junction to Limerick.
-
-We determined to ambush this party. The spot we selected was half a
-mile on the Tipperary side of the village of Oola. That would be about
-six miles from Tipperary town, fifteen from Limerick city and four from
-Soloheadbeg. Although we were on the main road from Limerick to Waterford
-we had a great stretch of country by which we could escape southwards,
-getting back towards East Limerick. The country is comparatively flat
-with good thick hedges of whitethorn as cover along the roadside.
-
-We expected the military car to arrive from Limerick about 10.30 a.m. A
-few minutes before that time we felled a tree across the road to block
-their path. Then we took up our positions, still well out of view, for
-it must be remembered that in the village of Oola itself, almost in view
-of our selected spot, there was a strong garrison of peelers, and on the
-other side of us, two miles away at the Limerick Junction, was another
-R.I.C. garrison.
-
-Sharp to time the military car came tearing along from Limerick. Just
-when they turned a corner and drove almost into the barracks we opened
-fire. Like a shot every man jumped from the car and took cover to reply
-to our men.
-
-A fierce encounter followed for half an hour. In the first minute two of
-the British dropped their rifles and rolled over dead, but the others
-continued to pour volley after volley in the direction from which our
-fire came. But we were in a difficulty. There were only seven of us
-there, and we had only ten rounds of ammunition per man.
-
-To add to our troubles we suddenly saw another military car arrive on the
-scene from the Limerick direction also. We had not calculated on that.
-These reinforcements must have arrived by accident, but with our limited
-supplies we could not continue to engage the whole party. We decided to
-retire. As we were retiring, still checking the enemy with an odd volley
-from the fields we saw a half a dozen R.I.C. men with rifles coming up
-from the village to give further help to the military. If we had had
-enough men or enough ammunition in the first instance we could, of
-course, have detailed a few men to feign an attack on the barracks so as
-to keep these fellows indoors; but we could not afford that, and so our
-plans miscarried.
-
-[Illustration: THE FLYING COLUMN IN TIPPERARY.]
-
-We retired without losing a man or receiving a wound. The enemy had three
-dead and three wounded.
-
-Next morning we learned more than we knew while engaged in the attack.
-Brigadier-General Lucas was actually with the enemy forces. He had, as
-I said, escaped the previous night. He wandered all through the night
-through the fields not knowing exactly where he was and endeavouring
-in the first place to avoid any of our men who might have been sent in
-pursuit of him, and in the second place trying to get in touch with some
-of his own forces, police or military. On the morning of the ambush he
-arrived at the village of Pallas, three miles on the Limerick side of
-Oola, and evidently was picked up by the passing car.
-
-We, of course, did not recognise him. As a matter of fact we were not
-even aware of his escape. The whole thing was a mere coincidence, though
-the English newspapers next day splashed the story as an “attempt to
-recapture the General.” Perhaps it is as well we did not recognise him.
-Anyhow, we wish him luck, now that all is past.
-
-A few days after this engagement at Oola I returned to Dublin. For some
-time I was kept busy with minor activities. It was only then, too, that I
-found an opportunity of having removed from my body some of the bits of
-hand grenades with which I had been wounded at the attack on Rear Cross
-police barracks.
-
-This was in the autumn of 1920. We had now been a year and a half on
-the run with a price on our heads. But I was becoming more reckless.
-The war was going on with greater intensity every day. I saw that the
-struggle of the Irish people was taking the shape I had always hoped.
-The British soldiers and police, particularly the Black and Tans and the
-Auxiliaries—the latter were all ex-officers of the British Army, and were
-the garrison’s gentlemen murderers—were day and night looting shops,
-burning private houses, and murdering prisoners and torturing youths. But
-the more savage became their methods of repression the more determined
-the Irish people became to fight to the bitter end. Practically the
-whole country was now on our side, helping us with food and information
-when they could not give us more active assistance. Men who had not the
-same views as we had on active warfare were being driven into our ranks
-because if they stayed at home in their beds they would be murdered by
-the British in the dead of night. In fact, their only hope of safety was
-to get “on the run.”
-
-If anybody not intimately acquainted with the events of that period
-thinks I am accusing the British too much I can only refer him to the
-Irish newspapers of the time. These newspapers were bitterly opposed to
-our policy and our methods, so they were not likely to exaggerate on our
-behalf. Moreover if they dared to suggest any charge that could not be
-sustained against the British they knew they would be at once suppressed.
-Yet, day after day for a year and a half these papers reported the murder
-of scores of prisoners, the shooting of men in their beds, the looting of
-towns and the burning of whole streets.
-
-The historian will yet calculate the millions of pounds worth of
-damage they committed and the hundreds of murders they perpetrated. It
-is a well-known fact that dozens of these Black and Tans have since
-committed suicide or gone mad because of the horrors for which they were
-responsible.
-
-And all this time the I.R.A. was every day becoming a vaster and more
-perfect military machine. My prophecy to Sean Treacy of 1918 was being
-fulfilled. Once the fight for freedom started in earnest, as I had said,
-it was being kept up with renewed vigour.
-
-During this visit to Dublin I put a novel proposal before Headquarters,
-the adoption of which changed the whole nature of the struggle. I shall
-outline my proposal in the next chapter.
-
-Meantime I must here refer to my ever trusty friends, at whose houses my
-companions and I were ever welcome while in Dublin, even though torture
-and imprisonment would have been the fate of any under whose roof we
-might be known to shelter. I cannot recall them all now, but some I
-can never forget—Seumas Ryan, of The Monument Creamery; the Bolands,
-of Clontarf (Harry’s people); Seumas Kirwan, of Parnell Street (a
-Tipperary man); the Delaneys, of Heytesbury Street (now Seumas Robinson’s
-people-in-law); the Flemings, of Drumcondra; Mr. and Mrs. Duncan, of
-Irishtown; Seumas and Mrs. O’Doherty, of Connaught Street, (later my good
-friends in America); Martin Conlon and, of course, Phil Shanahan.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XX.
-
-ADVENTURES WITH THE MURDER GANG.
-
-
-The plan I put before Headquarters was the establishment of Flying
-Columns in every county, starting of course with Tipperary. My experience
-of ambushes and barrack attacks had convinced me that such a scheme would
-prove an immense success.
-
-Hitherto we had been relying very much on help from men who would take
-part in a barrack attack at night and be at their work in the shops next
-morning. That was awkward for many reasons. It meant first of all, that
-they could only help at night. Secondly it often meant that business
-might often prevent them from coming and so we could not rely upon them
-very much. The disappointment we suffered from the Tipperary town men at
-Knocklong showed what serious risks there were in counting on men you
-had not actually at hand. Besides, these part-time volunteers could not
-possibly have the training that was wanted; they could not go far from
-home and they lived in an atmosphere of peace rather than of war.
-
-We wanted full-time soldiers, to fight night or day, to be always at hand
-ready for any adventure and to devote proper time to training. They would
-be a mobile force striking at the enemy to-day in one district and next
-morning surprising him twenty or thirty miles away. Could we get this? We
-could. In addition to those few men who were permanently on the run—and
-that number was growing every day—there were scores ready to volunteer
-for whole-time active service in every county. Further, the tactics of
-the British in murdering men whom they suspected of being volunteers was
-making it impossible for any I.R.A. men to remain at home or at their
-ordinary work. We were being encumbered with hundreds of fellows who
-would only be in the way unless organised in proper military units acting
-under officers with discipline and daring.
-
-By such arguments we convinced the Headquarters Staff. The Flying Columns
-were organised and on them fell the brunt of the war for the remaining
-twelve months. Perhaps the most successful aspect of this system was that
-it enabled active counties like Tipperary and Cork to send columns from
-time to time into places like Kilkenny and Waterford, where, owing to the
-apathy of the locals, the British were having too quiet a time.
-
-During these autumn days of 1920 poor Dinny Lacy was constantly with me
-in Dublin, and many an exciting adventure we had together, dodging or
-defying “G” men, or spies who got on our trail.
-
-Dinny, whose name figured prominently in the events of 1920 to 1922,
-was born in Goldengarden, in the heart of Tipperary. He was educated in
-Donaskeigh School in the parish of the patriotic Father Matt Ryan, the
-“General of the Land War.” Dinny was a great sprinter and footballer;
-in fact he was an all-round man. His home was only about a mile from
-mine, and we knew each other from boyhood. He went to Tipperary town as
-a boy, and soon became his employer’s most trusted man as manager of a
-big coal and provision premises. He never smoked or drank and he was
-always extremely religious, and could be seen at Mass every morning in
-Tipperary. He was always a keen student of the Irish language and he
-became an enthusiastic Volunteer from the very start of that force. In
-Easter Week of 1916 he was one of the small band who answered the call
-to mobilise for action at Galbally, six miles from Tipperary, but the
-countermand sent him home, and like the rest of the men of Tipperary, he
-was given no chance of striking a blow that week.
-
-In the summer of 1916 he was one of the most enthusiastic in favouring
-the reorganisation of the Irish Volunteers as a fighting force. Modest
-and unassuming he was always on the look-out for a rifle or a revolver,
-and he spent all his own money in making such purchases. He gave
-everything, even his life, in the cause of freedom.
-
-During 1917 and 1918 I came into frequent contact with him again. He took
-part in the big fight at Kilmallock in May, 1920, and shortly afterwards
-he had to go on the run. Henceforth he became one of the most daring and
-successful fighters against the British. So much was he hated by the
-Black and Tans that they actually burned down the house in which he had
-lodged in Tipperary. Poor Dinny! He escaped the bullets of the English
-only to be killed by the Free Staters in an encounter in the Glen of
-Aherlow early in 1923.
-
-However, I must resume my story. I knew my days were numbered if I
-remained in Dublin. The British had spies and “touts” and “spotters”
-everywhere. They had promised liberal rewards for information, and were
-at this time making desperate efforts to restore their Secret Service and
-to match it against ours. Everywhere one saw the khaki and the guns and
-the lorries. It was quite a common thing for an ordinary pedestrian to be
-held up and searched by troops on the streets six or seven times in the
-one day. They jumped off lorries and searched and questioned passers-by.
-They boarded tramcars and searched every passenger. They surrounded whole
-blocks of buildings and remained for days with a cordon drawn around
-while every house was being searched from cellar to attic. All these
-things were not rare, but daily occurrences.
-
-At the same time people were brought to the Castle and tortured for
-information. Letters were opened in the post; hotel servants were bribed,
-and an elaborate and speedy system of telephonic code was arranged for
-the touts and spotters. Is it surprising that in such circumstances I was
-often hard-pressed to escape? I was being shadowed at every step and I
-knew it, but I always carried my gun strapped to my wrist, and concealed
-by the sleeve of my coat, ready to meet whoever challenged me.
-
-At last came an adventure which I thought would prove my last. I was
-standing one Friday night alone at the Henry Street corner of Nelson’s
-Pillar. I had arranged to spend the night at Carolan’s, between
-Drumcondra and Whitehall. The Whitehall car came along and I jumped on
-board, going on top. At once five men sprang on to the same car and
-came up the stairs at my heels. Two of them I immediately recognised as
-members of the Castle murder gang which had recently been organised by
-General Tudor, Commander of the notorious Auxiliaries. This murder gang
-consisted of a number of Irishmen and Englishmen who were instructed to
-shoot any prominent I.R.A. officer whenever they got the chance, whether
-he was a prisoner in their hands or in whatever way they got the chance.
-This, of course, was known to Sir Hamar Greenwood and had his approval,
-the members of the gang being not only specially paid, but assured that
-no matter what evidence was brought against them they would never even be
-tried. They did, as a matter of fact, succeed in murdering a good number
-of our men here and there through the country. One of the leaders of the
-gang was a Head Constable, who had served as an ordinary constable a few
-years previously in my own part of the country round Tipperary.
-
-The organisation of this murder gang was kept a close secret, even from
-military and police officials. We, of course, knew all about it from our
-own Secret Service. We knew most of the members’ names and the murders
-in which they had taken part. In addition, Headquarters had supplied
-photographs of some of them to our Brigades.
-
-So when I recognised two of the gang on the tramcar that night I did
-not need to be a Sherlock Holmes to make up my mind that their three
-companions were also of the same ilk. But it was not the history of
-the murder gang I was recounting when I realised my predicament. I was
-in a tight corner. To attempt to retreat from the car would be a plain
-invitation to them to open fire. Besides there was the bare possibility
-that their presence on the car was a mere coincidence. Perhaps they did
-not recognise me at all. Perhaps they were really on some other job.
-
-All these thoughts flashed through my mind in a mere fraction of the
-time they take to relate. I had to keep cool, to avoid betraying by the
-slightest sign that I was excited or panicky. There was nothing for it
-but the old game of coolness and bluff that had served me so well on the
-road to Foynes and at Whitehall a few months before.
-
-I sat down on the three-seater bench at the rear of the car, just at the
-top of the steps. Then I pulled out a packet of cigarettes and lit one.
-Immediately two of the gang sat on the same bench, one on each side of
-me. A third remained standing right opposite me gripping the railings.
-The other two went along the centre passage right to the front of the
-car. I never felt less comfortable in my life. I realised my danger, but
-saw no way out of it.
-
-Neither they nor I made any move. The car started on its journey, crowded
-with passengers who little realised the drama that was being played
-beside them. It was after 11 o’clock and everybody was hurrying home, for
-curfew was at 12, and no one dared to be out after that hour to become a
-target for a dozen bullets.
-
-As the car passed up Parnell Square I began to feel a little reassured.
-Often before I had had a pleasant journey with detectives and policemen
-who never recognised me. Perhaps my luck was not out yet.
-
-Suddenly both the man on my right and his companion on my left made a
-simultaneous move. Their right hands went back to their hip-pockets. They
-were pulling something out.
-
-Another second and I had pulled my gun. I had drawn first. They realised
-my purpose. In another second my three would-be murderers were rushing
-headlong down the stairs. I was at their heels with my revolver levelled.
-They sprang from the car on to the street and I jumped at their heels.
-Now came another moment of hesitation. Would they open fire?
-
-It was not a favourable spot to select for a duel. The streets were
-crowded with hurrying pedestrians. Soldiers or Auxiliaries might appear
-at any moment. If the three murder-men fired I had no alternative but to
-return. If they didn’t, I would not fire. But I could not afford to lose
-much time. There was only one more tram to pass to Whitehall and I had to
-get that or run the risk of being picked up by a curfew patrol.
-
-We were in the middle of Dorset Street, almost facing Gardiner Street
-Church. I tried a little ruse. I stepped on to the footpath and suddenly
-ran towards St. Joseph’s Terrace. But I ran only three or four paces.
-Then I stamped my feet on the pavement, making a noise as if I was on the
-double At my first move the three men who were a few yards ahead of me
-ran too. They turned quickly into the little avenue which runs parallel
-to St. Joseph’s Terrace. They had been deceived by my ruse and evidently
-ran to intercept me at the other end.
-
-While their running footsteps were still resounding on the pavement the
-last tram from the city appeared. I jumped on the platform as it passed,
-and left the murder gang behind, probably searching the side streets for
-me. What I can never understand is why their two companions who had come
-on the tram with them did not come in pursuit of me when I chased the
-other three from the car. Possibly loyalty to comrades was not part of
-their creed, if it involved danger.
-
-It was one of these five men, I found out, who later tracked us to
-“Fernside,” the night of the terrible fight there. I slept that night at
-Fleming’s, of Drumcondra. Next morning I told Sean Treacy of my adventure
-and he laughed heartily, consoling me with the remark that I could hardly
-escape much longer. However he regarded the incident in a more serious
-light later on when we discussed it. Finally we made up our minds that
-never again would either of us go out alone; that we would both go out
-together or both remain indoors. It seemed the natural compact to make
-now that the trail was getting hot, and since we had passed through so
-many dangers together.
-
-That Saturday morning we went out to Mrs. Fitzgerald’s in Hollybank Road,
-almost beside Fleming’s. Mrs. Fitzgerald was herself a Tipperary woman,
-and we had often before enjoyed the hospitality of her home. We were
-tired and sleepy that day so we spent most of the time in bed.
-
-The following day we went to Croke Park, the headquarters of the Gaelic
-Athletic Association, and only seven minutes’ walk from Hollybank Road.
-It had been our custom for many Sundays before that to visit Croke Park
-when we had nothing else to do. We generally had a game of cards—our
-favourite was “Forty-five”—with officials of the G.A.A. who might
-happen to be present, particularly Luke O’Toole (the Secretary of the
-Association), Andy Harty, and D. P. Walsh (both countymen of our own) and
-Alderman Nowlan, the President. They were all good friends of ours, and
-gave us many pleasant evenings in Luke’s house when the matches of the
-day had finished.
-
-I remember this Sunday well, because it indirectly led up to the fight at
-Drumcondra, strange though that may seem.
-
-The stakes were never high, but to men in the position of Sean and myself
-at the time a few shillings seemed like riches. The evening I speak of
-the game proved unusually exciting; the “kitty” or pool gradually grew
-to a nice sum, and I don’t mind admitting that I eyed it jealously as it
-grew. Luck favoured me—even in gambling! I won the pool, and seldom was
-money more welcome to my pocket.
-
-Now at this time our plans were not very definite. They were not
-altogether in our own making. Dinny Lacey had returned to Tipperary
-about a fortnight before, and we had promised to join him within a week.
-Contrary to our usual habit we had failed to keep our appointment, but
-the fault was not ours. It was due to the action of Headquarters.
-
-I have already referred plainly to the attitude Headquarters had adopted
-towards us and our campaign from the beginning, but at this time—the
-early Autumn of 1920—a change was noticeable. The war was going on even
-better than we expected. Our men were meeting and beating the British
-all through the south. The world was looking on in admiration at our
-struggle, and in spite of torture, burnings and lootings the people were
-standing by us. It was death for the man who dared to “harbour a rebel,”
-but hundreds of men and women were every night sheltering our Flying
-Columns. In spite of an Anglicised Press the people had realised that
-we were right, that their cause was ours, that Ireland could never have
-peace or prosperity until we had driven the British out of Ireland. In
-our delight at the change, Sean and I were becoming almost reckless.
-The hotter the fighting the better and more perfect the I.R.A. became as
-an organisation. Headquarters apparently realised that the rank and file
-were getting too far ahead of them, and they gradually began to take a
-kind of semi-official responsibility for our actions.
-
-In pursuance of this new policy, Headquarters had now actually planned a
-certain operation for us in Dublin, and it was for that reason we were
-unable to return to Tipperary as soon as we had arranged.
-
-But the plans never matured and we were still kept dallying round Dublin.
-Still we had something to cheer us up. I got a tip for a race—a “dead
-cert” that was to come off at a meeting in the Phoenix Park. Luckier
-still, I had now got the money I won at Croke Park, to make use of the
-information.
-
-All our worldly wealth went on the horse. And he won!
-
-Now for a little of the pleasures of lite that we could still enjoy. The
-money we now had, meant wealth to us. Of course I did not regard it as
-my personal property—it belonged to our little “Soviet.” Whatever we had
-we shared, and never were there more real communists than we. Before we
-could return to Tipperary we had now to spend this money. Any day might
-be our last in this world. A couple of bullets might make us depart at
-any moment without having made our wills, and the thought that annoyed
-us was the possibility that our few pounds might provide the Black and
-Tans with the wherewithal to drink our health when we were dead.
-
-[Illustration: DINNY LACEY.]
-
-But we knew we had to be careful and more cautious than usual. The net
-was drawing round us. An incident that occurred at this time on the
-night of the 10th October, 1920, shows the dangers which surrounded us.
-Sean Treacy and I had decided to stay that night at the house of Seumas
-Kirwan, 49 Parnell Street. We had often stayed there before and had held
-several meetings there. Seumas was a Tipperary man himself and gave us
-the full run of his house. All his assistants and employees were I.R.A.
-men, and whenever we stayed there for the night they were fully armed.
-
-On this particular night we had just entered when a man rushed in at our
-heels and told Seumas that “the two men who had just come into the shop
-were shadowed by a spy.”
-
-Sean and I at once rushed into the street and the tout, who was standing
-near the door, ran for his life when he saw us. He was a good judge.
-
-We changed our plans and went elsewhere that night. Henceforth we knew
-that Kirwan’s would be a marked house, and I never stayed there again
-until the Truce period.
-
-The manner in which we were warned that night illustrates how loyal the
-people were to us. It was quite common to get friendly warnings from
-newsboys and orange-sellers who saw touts hanging about.
-
-Only a few days previously I had met a group of the Dublin Castle
-murder gang face to face in Talbot Street. We recognised each other
-simultaneously and drew our guns. They did not fire. I don’t know why. As
-I had no desire to engage a whole group unless forced into it I didn’t
-fire, but walked quietly away unmolested.
-
-But to return to the spending of our winnings on the horse. Our first
-little dissipation was to go to the pictures at La Scala Theatre, which
-had just been opened in O’Connell Street. That was on the afternoon of
-the 11th October, 1920. In the theatre we met the two Misses Fleming,
-of Drumcondra, with them was Mrs. O’Brien, wife of Eamon O’Brien, of
-Galbally, one of the men who had taken part in the rescue at Knocklong
-with us, and who was now in America. Mrs. O’Brien was not only delighted
-but astonished to meet us. I suppose it was somewhat of a surprise to
-her to meet in a picture house two men whom all the troops and police in
-Ireland had instructions to shoot at sight. We had grown used to taking
-these risks now, even though it was quite probable that not one in that
-audience that evening would get home without being held up and searched
-at the door, or in the street or in the tram.
-
-We left the theatre together. Just as we stepped into the street the
-first man I saw was one of the murder gang who had boarded the tram with
-me only a few nights before. I could make no mistake about him, for he
-was one of the two who sat on either side of me on the tram. I saw him
-first. Standing on the path and scrutinising the picture-goers as they
-emerged he was evidently pretending to be looking for a friend, but I
-guessed he was looking for me. It is quite possible, though I do not
-think it probable, that either he or some tout had seen Sean and myself.
-
-For a moment I felt tempted to draw my gun and shoot him on the spot. But
-I was between two of the girls and I did not want to alarm them. Besides
-if he had a confederate about, the return of fire might place the girls
-in danger. The five of us were facing for the Nelson Pillar to get a
-tram to Fleming’s house in Drumcondra, and as the Pillar is less than a
-hundred yards from the theatre I felt it safe enough to walk on. I said
-nothing to the others, nor did I look a second time at the Castle man.
-I knew he must have seen me, too, and I felt pretty certain that he was
-following us up in the crowd.
-
-Just as we approached the tram I stepped back to let the others get a few
-yards in advance of me. As I did so Kitty Fleming whispered, “there is
-a friend following.” Evidently she had seen him too. The girls were well
-trained to use their eyes in those days.
-
-Sean and the three girls stepped into the tram. I was at their heels. As
-I mounted the footboard I wheeled round sharply and faced my enemy. He
-read the message in my eye. Had he attempted to board the tram I would
-have riddled him on the spot. But he was quick to see my move, and he
-quietly slunk back from the tram and lost himself in the crowd as our car
-started for Drumcondra.
-
-At Fleming’s we discussed the incident over a cup of coffee. At times I
-was half sorry I had allowed him to escape with his life. Had I known as
-much when I stood on the footboard as I do now the Crown Forces would be
-one man the less that evening; for, as the sequel will show, that man or
-one of his touts must have boarded the next tram to Drumcondra, and got
-on our trail again that night.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXI.
-
-THE DRUMCONDRA FIGHT.
-
-
-That night we left Fleming’s about 11 o’clock. In case we had been seen
-entering and were still being shadowed we left by the back. It was a
-bright moonlight night. From the back of the house we got out to Botanic
-Avenue. There Sean and I debated for a few minutes whether we should
-go round to our friend Mrs. Fitzgerald, in Hollybank Road, or go on to
-Professor Carolan’s, and we turned to the right and came up to the bridge
-over the Tolka. Curfew was at 12 o’clock, and the streets were already
-deserted. As we stood for a moment on the bridge to look round and listen
-we heard the rumbling in the distance of military lorries preparing to go
-on curfew patrol.
-
-From the bridge to Carolan’s is about seven minutes’ walk. It is the
-main road to Belfast, and a well-to-do residential quarter. On the left
-is the great Training College for National Teachers, and on the right,
-some distance back from the road, is another well-known institution—All
-Hallows Ecclesiastical College.
-
-We had a latchkey of Professor Carolan’s house, “Fernside.” It was one of
-the many latchkeys we had at the time, all given us by friends to whose
-houses we were welcome whenever we might wish to call at any hour.
-
-I had already stayed a few nights at “Fernside,” having been introduced
-to the family by Peter Fleming. I well remember how heartily I was
-received on that first occasion by the family, and how thoughtfully Mr.
-Carolan himself showed me over the whole house, and especially the back
-garden. He pointed out a low wall to me as the best means of escape in
-case of a raid. “I don’t expect you’ll need it,” he said, “but it is no
-harm to know your way about.” He was a kindly, lovable man whose clear
-earnest eyes would inspire one with confidence.
-
-The house is one of a type common enough in middle-class suburban
-districts in Dublin. It is a two-storeyed brick building of eight or nine
-apartments. There is a small plot in front facing the road, and on the
-left, as one enters, is a tradesman’s side door, leading to the back.
-Over this door it would be easily possible for an active man to climb
-into the yard.
-
-At the back there is a long garden, separated from the adjoining garden
-by a wall about seven feet high. Close up to the house, and almost under
-the window was a conservatory.
-
-Every time that we had availed ourselves of Mr. Carolan’s hospitality
-we had reached the house before 11 o’clock at night. On this occasion
-we did not arrive until about 11.30 p.m., and as there was no light to
-be seen we concluded the family had retired, and we let ourselves in
-as noiselessly as possible, making our way to the bedroom which had
-been reserved for us on the second floor at the back, overlooking the
-conservatory. It is certain, of course, that no member of the family was
-aware of our presence in the house that night.
-
-We went to bed almost at once, both of us sleeping together. Still we
-did not feel very sleepy and for a while we chatted about our plans for
-the future and our return to Tipperary. Then our conversation lagged.
-My mind became possessed of a strange presentiment. Perhaps it was the
-after-effects of my few recent adventures with the murder gang. I tried
-to sleep, but for once sleep would not come. Sean, too, was still awake,
-though not inclined to talk.
-
-I felt half inclined to tell him of the queer feeling that had come over
-me, but he was himself the first to speak:
-
-“Dan,” he said, “do you find any queer feeling coming over you? I can’t
-sleep. Can you?”
-
-He had, in fact, put the very questions I was trying to frame. I told him
-so and we both laughed.
-
-“We may have a raid to-night, Sean,” I said, half joking. “I wonder
-is there any danger we were shadowed to-night coming here? If we were
-surrounded in this place we’d have a very poor chance of escaping.”
-
-Sean did not reply for a minute. “Somehow I wouldn’t mind if we were
-killed now, Dan,” he said. “The war is going to go on whatever happens,
-and if we’re killed I hope we will die together.”
-
-Another moment’s silence and we both dozed off.
-
-Suddenly we sat up in the bed. Outside in the street was the heavy tramp
-of marching men. Voices were whispering in the back. Through our window
-came the flare of a dazzling searchlight. It was about 1 a.m. We had been
-over an hour in the house.
-
-There was a crash of glass in the front. A door opened. From the stairs
-came the sound of rushing footsteps.
-
-We sprang out of bed together. Simultaneously our hands gripped our
-revolvers. I took a gun in each hand. A hand was groping on our door
-outside. I never spoke. Sean pressed my arm and whispered “Goodbye, Dan,
-we’ll meet above.”
-
-Crack! crack! Two bullets came whizzing through the door. Crack! crack!
-My German Mauser pistol was replying.
-
-There was no light save the flash of the shots. Outside on the landing
-an English voice was shouting, “Where is Ryan? Where is Ryan?”
-
-Bullets were now flying on all sides, our door was partly open. I blazed
-away on to the landing. Blood was flowing freely from my right thumb
-where a flying bullet struck me, but I felt no pain. Outside I heard
-a thud as if a man had fallen on the carpet. Suddenly I realised that
-Sean’s gun had missed fire. With my Mauser still raking the landing and
-the stairs I shouted to Sean to get back to the window. He stepped back,
-just as another bullet from outside buried itself in the wardrobe. The
-firing from the stairs had momentarily ceased. There was a hurried rush
-of retreating footsteps down towards the hall. In the back I could hear
-rifle shots ringing out.
-
-I dashed out of the room on to the landing and saw half a dozen soldiers
-making another attempt to come up the stairs, their electric torches
-making me an almost certain target for their bullets. Into that khaki
-group my pistol poured bullet after bullet. I knew now that the house was
-surrounded and that there was little hope of escape for me. But the rage
-of battle had taken possession of me. I was going to be killed; but I
-would sell my life dearly.
-
-As I blazed into the soldiers there was a hurried rush for safety. They
-had now evacuated the top landing and I was pursuing them down the
-stairs. When I got to the first floor they had all disappeared—some had
-taken shelter in the rooms underneath, others had retreated headlong into
-the street. There was no other target for my bullets, but now and again I
-heard the sharp report of a rifle from the back, mingled with occasional
-groans and cries.
-
-I rushed back to my room. At the door I tripped over two dead officers
-and a wounded Tommy. I had to pull each of them out of the way before I
-could close my door. I don’t know how I had missed tripping over them
-when I had first rushed out of the room. In the heat of the battle one
-does not see everything.
-
-Once back in my room I banged the door and turned the lock. I knew I
-had not a moment to spare; for with the hundreds of troops they had
-apparently brought on the raid they were bound to make another attack. I
-sprang to the window. A searchlight played for a moment on the back of
-the house and a shower of bullets came whizzing through the glass. A few
-of them struck me, but a couple of wounds more or less did not matter
-very much, for I had already been hit more than once in the exchange.
-
-The lower half of the window was already open. Sean had got out that
-way. I stepped on to the window-sill, and dropped into the roof of the
-conservatory. In the clear moonlight I could discern countless steel
-helmets all round the house. The Tommies were blazing at me. Before I
-could drop from the conservatory I saw I would have to get away through
-them.
-
-With the revolver which I held in my left hand I smashed a hole in the
-roof of the conservatory. Then I gripped a beam and swung down, my German
-pistol still seeking a mark on the enemy. Right well did it accomplish
-its task, for within a minute there was not a soldier to be seen—they had
-disappeared.
-
-I was still dangling from the roof of the glass-house. When I had
-silenced the enemy I swung back on the roof and then jumped to the ground.
-
-I looked around for my comrade. There was no sign of him. I called out
-his name, but got no reply. I lay flat on the ground to avoid offering a
-target to any venturesome Tommy who might put his head over the garden
-wall. I continued to call out for Sean.
-
-“Sean! Sean! Where are you?” But there was no reply. I thought he might
-have been struck getting through the window and might have been lying
-wounded in the conservatory. Now I began to fear he had fallen into their
-hands. Then I consoled myself with the thought that after all he had got
-away, though the chance was a poor one. I knew I had been fighting on the
-landing and stairs for nearly half an hour, and when I did not return
-to the room Sean may have concluded I was killed while he was trying to
-settle his revolver.
-
-As I lay on the ground I realised I was getting weak. I had neither hat,
-boots nor overcoat. I had only barely time to slip on trousers and coat.
-I saw that I was wounded in five or six places and was bleeding from head
-to foot, but I had to move quickly. Strangely enough, I was beginning to
-feel that I would escape after all.
-
-While I was still rapidly thinking what course to take the enemy returned
-to the attack. Several grenades burst around me near the conservatory.
-I made another effort and rose to move. A short distance from me I saw
-that low dividing wall that my host had been so careful to point out on
-my first visit. Now I appreciated his foresight as I made for the wall.
-A little distance beyond the conservatory in the garden I found the dead
-bodies of two soldiers. Then I knew Sean had passed that way.
-
-He might have escaped, I thought; but there was still the danger that he
-had been shot further down the garden.
-
-Just as I reached the wall a soldier’s head appeared outside. He saw
-me and levelled his rifle, at the same time shouting “Halt! halt!” He
-fired and missed me. I fired too. When I dropped over the wall, clear of
-Carolan’s garden, I stumbled over his body. I don’t know whether he was
-dead or wounded.
-
-Another group of soldiers close at hand opened fire on me, and I blazed
-at them in return as I rushed for the nearest wall. I got over but did
-not recognise my surroundings. All I knew was that I was on the road.
-Suddenly I ran right into an armoured car. There was nothing for it but
-to get in the first shot. I hit one of their men before the occupants of
-the car had time to take aim, and I rushed by as their bullets knocked
-splinters out of the roadway and the walls around me, but never once
-struck me. By this time I had recognised my surroundings. I was out on
-the main road between Carolan’s house and Drumcondra Bridge. It would be
-madness to keep on along the road, for if the armoured car did not pursue
-me I was almost certain to run into some of their outposts near the
-bridge.
-
-On my right as I ran towards the city was the limestone wall surrounding
-St. Patrick’s Training College. Could I once scale that and get into
-the college grounds my chances of escape were good. But it was about 18
-feet high. I had neither boots nor socks; one toe on my right foot was
-broken and giving me terrible pain; I had at least five bullet holes in
-my side, from my hip to my foot, besides several less serious wounds.
-But when a man is fighting for his life he gets strength that he has not
-at ordinary times. I scrambled to the top of that wall. How I did it I
-often wondered afterwards as I passed it by. When I got to the top I felt
-almost happy. My hopes grew stronger, though my body grew weaker from
-the terrible excitement and the loss of blood. I slid down carefully on
-the inside and faced for the west, leading towards Glasnevin or Finglas
-direction. But I was still within a few hundred yards of “Fernside,” and
-at any moment I might again run into a group of soldiers. I crawled along
-as noiselessly as I could. At this stage I think it was instinct that
-was guiding me. I was dazed and as near to unconsciousness as a man can
-be while he still has the power to walk. I lost all sense of time and
-distance.
-
-At last I found myself on the banks of a river. I knew it must be the
-Tolka. I had no place to seek shelter. My one aim was to put some
-distance between me and my pursuers. I could not go out on the road to
-seek a bridge. I had to cross the river, and there was only one way of
-doing it. Fortunately it was not deep and as I waded through the cold
-piercing water I could feel it trickling through my leg where some of the
-bullets had made a clear passage through my flesh. I cannot say that I
-felt the cold too keenly. I suppose there are times when nature is dead
-to minor feelings.
-
-When I got to the other side of the river I saw that I was close to some
-houses. I knew they must be the houses in Botanic Avenue and that I was
-at the back. I could struggle no further. Blood was pouring from me all
-the time. My only hope, if I was not to drop down and die of exhaustion
-and exposure, was to seek the shelter of some one of these roofs.
-
-I do not know what instinct impelled me, but I selected one particular
-back door. It was as if an angel whispered that that door and that only
-held out hope to me.
-
-I knocked. I realised well enough what a spectacle I must present now, at
-3 or 4 o’clock in the morning, half-clad, dishevelled and covered with
-blood.
-
-A second time I knocked. A man opened the door. My appearance was
-sufficient explanation, but I mumbled a few words to say that I needed
-shelter.
-
-He did not ask me who I was, or how I had received my wounds. He simply
-said, “Come in. Whatever we can do for you we’ll do it.”
-
-He and his wife took me in. The latter quickly summoned Nurse Long, who
-lived nearby. They dressed my wounds and gave me some stimulant, which
-the nurse procured from my friends, the Flemings, at imminent danger to
-her own life, having to pass twice through the excited cordon of soldiers
-in the small hours of that morning.
-
-Then I learned who my good Samaritan was. He was Mr. Fred Holmes, whose
-sympathies, I believe, were on the other side.
-
-But he and his wife tended me that morning with care and attention that
-they might have bestowed upon a son or brother. There was no need to tell
-them how I had come to be in that plight. Yet they took me in and saved
-my life.
-
-Gratitude is but a poor word to express my feelings towards that family.
-In the morning I told them who I was. They assured me that everything in
-their power would be done to enable me to recover and to get to a place
-of safety, for I knew I could not stay long in a house which was not half
-a mile from the scene of the battle.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXII.
-
-MISSED BY INCHES.
-
-
-Early in the morning—still October 12th, 1920—Mrs. Holmes at my request
-took a note to Phil Shanahan’s, with a message for Dick McKee. I
-wanted to be removed as soon as possible. I also wanted to report to
-Headquarters that Sean Treacy had been killed in the same engagement.
-
-While I was waiting the reply I learned from the people of the house
-that in each of the houses on either side a Black and Tan was lodging,
-both houses being the property of members of the Dublin Police. You can
-imagine how lucky I was to select the particular back gate I did.
-
-In a short time a motor car arrived at the door. In it were Joe Lawless,
-Maurice Brennan and Tom Kelly. They had been sent by Dick McKee to take
-me away to the Mater Hospital where he had already made arrangements that
-I was to be received and treated.
-
-I was provided with an outfit and placed in the car. My keenest regret
-was not the suit I had been compelled to leave behind in Carolan’s, but
-the six pound notes and the watch that were in the pockets. Probably some
-enterprising officer had a good night out of the discovery, for I need
-hardly say that my losses did not form the subject of compensation awards
-when the Truce came.
-
-I was driven up Botanic Road on through Phibsboro’ towards the Mater
-Hospital. At Phibsboro’ corner a D.M.P. man motioned us to stop as we
-approached. For a moment we feared there was something wrong. But relief
-came in a few moments. We were simply being asked to slow down while
-a convoy of Auxiliaries passed, probably to raid some houses in the
-locality for me.
-
-We continued our journey, and as we approached the entrance to the
-hospital in Eccles Street I saw Dick McKee—himself a very much wanted
-man at the time, walking slowly along the path. With a slight wave of
-his hand he motioned to us to pass the hospital. A little further down
-he crossed to us to tell us we could not go into the hospital for some
-time as there were two D.M.P. Inspectors, with some military and police
-actually raiding the hospital at that moment searching for wounded men.
-
-“Dan,” he said, as he gripped my hand for a moment, “ye got the very men
-we would have had to give the next two years looking for.”
-
-Our car crossed Dorset Street into Mountjoy Square, and finally drove
-into an old stable in Great Charles Street. It was one of the best known
-dumping grounds used for concealing the arms of the Dublin Brigade,
-though it was shortly afterwards discovered by the enemy.
-
-It is easy to imagine how sick and tired of life I was as I drove into
-this old stable, but picture my delight at seeing Sean Treacy waiting to
-welcome me.
-
-He had escaped without as much as a scratch. Briefly—for he had not long
-to spare—he told me of his adventures. He got safely away through the
-back, convinced that I was killed. For hours he had wandered almost naked
-through the country, scarcely knowing where he was until as dawn broke he
-knocked at a door in a last effort to gain shelter. He did not even know
-in what district he was until the door was opened by his own cousin Phil
-Ryan, of Finglas! Truly, the fates were on our side that morning.
-
-In our joy at meeting once more we almost forgot our perils; for the
-streets of Dublin were being searched that day by hundreds of troops as
-never before. But our scouts reported that the way to the Mater was now
-clear as the enemy had left the hospital. The boys were anxious that no
-time should be lost until I was in skilled hands, and we moved on at once
-towards the Mater. They took me on a stretcher into the hospital, and as
-I lay on that stretcher I shook hands with Sean Treacy—for the last time.
-
-Little did I think that evening that never again on this earth would I
-lay eyes on my faithful comrade—one who was dearer to me than a brother.
-Had I known then that it was to be our last meeting in this world I would
-have little heart to battle with my wounds. Poor Sean! the comrade of my
-adventures, the sharer of my hopes. His face is always before me, and
-until my last hour his memory will make me struggle against blinding
-tears.
-
-When I arrived in the hospital Surgeon Barnaville took me into his
-skilled hands, and I believe I owe my life and my rapid recovery to his
-unceasing care and devotion.
-
-Next day a friend who visited me gave me a full story of the Drumcondra
-fight, or at least that portion of it which I did not know myself. Some
-he had learned from the newspapers, more from our Intelligence Department.
-
-It seems that in spite of our precautions we were shadowed to Fleming’s
-that night, and later to Carolan’s by the very man we had seen outside
-the theatre. Their Secret Service was able to report that “Breen and
-‘Lacey’ had gone to ‘Fernside.’” I have never since discovered whether
-Sean Treacy was actually mistaken for Dinny Lacey, or whether the
-similarity of the surnames had confused the spy.
-
-At once every “G” man in the Castle was mobilised for the raid, but
-they refused point blank to go on the job. At this display of cowardice
-and mutiny the enemy chiefs were incensed; but they could not afford
-to betray their weakness by letting the news leak out that their whole
-detective force had refused to go on a raid. So the detectives were not
-punished for their indiscipline, and to cover up the mutiny the “G” men
-were ordered out the same morning on a raid on the shop owned by Mr. J.
-J. Walsh (now the Free State Postmaster-General).
-
-Meanwhile the military chiefs had been communicated with and informed of
-the position. They asked “what kind of a job” it would be, and were told
-they might expect “plenty of gunplay.”
-
-The military had the men willing to take the risk. Foremost amongst
-those who volunteered for the raid was Major G. O. S. Smyth, a native of
-Banbridge, and formerly a District Inspector in the R.I.C. This man had
-been serving in Egypt until he got word that his brother—also a Major—a
-Divisional Commissioner of the R.I.C. had been shot dead in Cork. This
-Commissioner was a notorious official who addressed the police in Kerry,
-and told them to shoot any person suspected of being a Sinn Feiner,
-adding “the more the merrier.” This cold-blooded incitement to murder
-even ordinary civilians led first to a mutiny of the R.I.C. in Listowel,
-and secondly to the death of Smyth himself within a month. He was shot
-dead in the County Club, in the heart of Cork city.
-
-His brother, who had been serving in the British Army in Egypt, at once
-volunteered for service in Ireland, with the avowed intention of avenging
-his brother’s death. With him he brought a chosen band of men inspired
-with similar motives.
-
-He was the first to be killed that night. With him fell another officer,
-Captain A. D. White. A corporal was also wounded. These casualties the
-British officially admitted, but we knew their losses were heavier.
-It was quite usual at that time for the British to conceal their real
-casualties.
-
-But what saddened me most of all was the news that our faithful friend,
-Professor Carolan, had been fatally wounded too. The official report
-issued at the time stated that the Professor was shot by the first
-bullet that came through our door. This was the report of a secret
-military inquiry condemning the shooting of the officers, for it must be
-remembered that long before this the British had forbidden the holding of
-coroner’s inquests. Ordinary jurors were honest men and would insist upon
-having the truth, and would thus expose the whole Murder Campaign of the
-English.
-
-Poor Mr. Carolan survived for several weeks. He was actually in the Mater
-Hospital at the same time as myself, though in a different part of the
-institution. At one time there were high hopes of his recovery. During
-that period he made a statement in the presence of witnesses which will
-be found published in the Dublin newspapers of October 21st and 22nd of
-1920. That was the death-bed statement of an honourable man and a pious
-Catholic. If further proof of its accuracy be needed it is the fact that
-the newspapers which published it were not suppressed, as they would have
-been within half an hour were the report inaccurate.
-
-In that statement Mr. Carolan made it quite clear and emphatic that the
-time he was shot we had escaped. We had been a quarter of an hour out of
-the house, he declared, before he was put standing with his face to the
-wall, and deliberately shot by a British officer. When he first opened
-the door for the raiders they asked him who was in the house, and the
-faithful man said he thought Ryan was the name—giving a name common in
-that part of the country from which our accents would tell we came. That
-accounted for the shouts we heard, “Where is Ryan? Where is Ryan?”
-
-A revolver was kept pressed to the poor man’s temple all the time,
-and when the British saw their leaders killed they murdered him as a
-reprisal. Generous, noble and patriotic he dared to shelter us when few
-of our pretended friends would have done so. I shall always think of him
-and his family’s kindness to us, and regret from the bottom of my heart
-that he met such a sad death. May he rest in peace.
-
-On the evening of the 13th October, while I was being taken into the
-Mater, the village of Finglas, where Sean had found shelter, and only a
-mile from the house where I had been befriended, was invested by hundreds
-of British troops in full war kit. Evidently they had either traced Sean
-to the district or had suspected that I got farther than I actually did.
-
-Every house in the village and district was searched, but without avail.
-
-One other sequel to the Drumcondra fight I must relate before I proceed
-with my own story. Every male member of the Fleming family was arrested
-next day. That is the best proof we got that our footsteps were dogged
-all that night. Michael Fleming was sentenced to six months imprisonment
-for refusing to give information about me.
-
-Thursday, 14th October, 1920, is a date I shall never forget. That was my
-third day in the hospital.
-
-Early in the afternoon one of the Sisters came running into my room.
-Before she spoke I could read that she had serious news. A few hours
-before I had heard some firing in the neighbourhood, but that, I had been
-told, had been an encounter at Phibsboro’ corner where an attempt to
-capture an armoured car proved unsuccessful—one I.R.A. man giving his
-life in the effort. That occurred only three hundred yards from where I
-was lying.
-
-But the Sister had more serious news than that for me. The hospital
-was surrounded by troops and armoured cars, and the hospital was being
-searched for me.
-
-My bed was beside the window. I raised myself on my elbow and looked
-out. Below I saw the burly figures and the Glengarry caps of a dozen
-Auxiliaries on guard outside.
-
-“It is all up this time, Dan,” I remarked to myself, “and you can’t even
-pull a gun!”
-
-Somehow I felt resigned to it. For the music of the shots I had heard
-that morning told me that the fight was going to go on.
-
-Still, I cannot say that I was not excited. Now and again I heard the
-engines of the military cars throbbing. Perhaps they would go without
-finding me. But they were only driving up and down to keep back the
-crowds. When I looked out the Auxiliaries were still there. The minutes
-grew into hours. Would the raid ever end? When would the door open to
-admit the searchers to my room?
-
-Luck favoured me once more. After a two hours’ stay the raiders departed
-without even coming near my part of the house.
-
-When they had gone I learned the reason of their swoop. Early that
-morning a young I.R.A. man named Furlong had been wounded in an
-explosion which occurred near Dunboyne, ten miles outside the city, where
-he had been testing some bombs. His comrades at once rushed him in a
-dying condition to the Mater. The British got to hear of this. He was
-not unlike me in appearance. The poor fellow died while the raid was in
-progress, and I believe some of the Black and Tans thought they had seen
-the last of Dan Breen.
-
-This raid had for me personally the saddest sequel that could come to
-pass. In the next chapter I shall relate what I afterwards learned.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXIII.
-
-EXECUTIONS AND REPRISALS.
-
-
-While I was lying in the Mater my faithful comrade, Sean Treacy, was
-never idle. His main concern during this time was to be ever on the watch
-for my safety. And that Thursday evening, 14th October, 1920, he learned
-that the hospital was surrounded.
-
-Without a moment’s delay he went to Headquarters to seek a rescue party
-of which he himself would be one. His request was granted, and within an
-hour he and other trusty comrades were busy mobilising their men. In his
-zeal to undertake a desperate task for my safety he forgot about himself.
-He went openly through the principal streets—and was shadowed. I cannot
-say for certain, but I have a firm conviction that the man who traced him
-was the same man who, three days before, had traced us to Drumcondra.
-
-Sean had almost completed the arrangements for the rescue when he went to
-the “Republican Outfitters,” in Talbot Street, where he was to have a
-few final details settled. That place was a drapery establishment owned
-by Tom Hunter, T.D., and Peadar Clancy. It was perhaps the best known
-centre in which I.R.A. men met from time to time, or delivered messages,
-though it was so closely watched that it was never advisable to delay
-there long.
-
-When Sean arrived in the shop he found George and Jack Plunkett, sons of
-Count Plunkett, T.D., and both members of the Headquarters Staff. With
-them were Joe Vyse and Leo Henderson, officers of the Dublin Brigade, who
-had been holding a hurried meeting.
-
-Peadar Clancy, who left the shop, accompanied by a lady friend, had only
-reached the Nelson Pillar, two hundred yards away, when he saw a military
-raiding party dash from O’Connell Street into Talbot Street, and at once
-suspected that the shop was going to be raided. But he had no chance of
-giving word to the boys. It would take the military less than two minutes
-to reach the shop. Sean, who was standing near the door, was the first
-to see the enemy approach. Two or three others had to face the front and
-take their chances of evading the British.
-
-The lorries pulled up at the door. One of those in the shop immediately
-ran from the door to the street. A soldier sprang from the lorry to
-intercept him. Just at the same time an Auxiliary Intelligence officer,
-whose name was given as “Christian,” and who was in civilian clothes,
-jumped from the first lorry and shouted “That is not he. Here is the man
-we want”—rushing towards Sean Treacy, who was in the act of throwing his
-leg across the bicycle which he had left outside the door.
-
-Sean saw he was cornered and pulled his gun. It was a hopeless fight from
-the first, but like the man that he was Sean Treacy fought till he was
-riddled.
-
-The whole contingent of British troops and Auxiliaries, regardless even
-of their own comrade who was in grips with Sean, turned their rifles and
-machine gun on the man they feared. They killed Sean and three civilians
-who came in the line of fire, but Sean had left “Christian” dangerously
-wounded before he fell himself.
-
-Thus died the greatest Irishman of our generation. He gave his life to
-save his comrades. It was not the first time he had offered to do it.
-
-I have no hesitation in declaring that Sean Treacy was not only the
-noblest patriot of our time, but the greatest military genius of our
-race. It is a big claim to make for a man who died before he was 28 years
-of age, and who had had none of the training that we associate with
-military leaders of fame and reputation. The world has since acknowledged
-that the tactics adopted by the I.R.A. in its guerilla warfare with the
-British were inspired by genius of the highest order. I assert now
-for my dead comrade that the most brilliant of these tactics for which
-others were given credit, were the product of Sean Treacy’s active brain.
-He gave the hints; others elaborated them. He died with a smile on his
-countenance—the noblest patriot, the bravest man, and the cleanest and
-most honourable soldier I have ever known.
-
-I knew nothing of the fight in Talbot Street for days afterwards. I
-am not given either to superstition or to flights of imagination, but
-so sure as I pen these lines so sure am I that I knew that Thursday
-afternoon that Sean Treacy was dead. He stood at the foot of my bed, with
-a calm smile on his countenance.
-
-That evening Mick Collins came to see me. My first question was: “Where
-is Sean?” I was yet too ill to be told the bitter truth. Mick turned his
-eyes from mine and replied: “He is out in the country.”
-
-Not for ten days did I hear the full story. From Ship Street Barracks,
-whither his body had been taken by the British, the remains of Sean
-Treacy were taken to his native Tipperary, where they were received with
-honour and reverence that no king could claim. From Soloheadbeg Church,
-where he had knelt in prayer as a child, the body of Tipperary’s pride
-was taken through the town of Kilfeacle. Never before had such honours
-been given to a dead Tipperaryman. The British seemed to fear him in
-death, for their armed ghouls sought to interfere with the funeral. The
-day was observed as a day of general mourning in South Tipperary, and the
-funeral procession was several miles long. Scarce an eye was dry that day.
-
-The country will not soon forget Sean Treacy. His grave at Kilfeacle has
-become a place of pilgrimage, and his name will rank with those who stand
-highest in the roll of our people’s soldiers and patriots.
-
-The following Friday night I was removed from the Mater Hospital by
-Gearoid O’Sullivan and Rory O’Connor. Gearoid O’Sullivan was later
-Adjutant-General of the Free State Army. Rory O’Connor, with his comrades
-Liam Mellows, Dick Barrett and Joe McKelvey, was executed in Mountjoy
-Jail on the 8th December, 1922, by order of the Free State Government, as
-a reprisal for the shooting of Sean Hales.
-
-These two accompanied me in a motor to the house of a lady doctor on the
-south side of the city. It was felt that the Mater was no longer a safe
-place for me, though I shall always think with gratitude of the devoted
-care I received from every member of the staff, particularly Surgeon
-Barnaville and the nuns. It must not be forgotten that at this time
-the British had issued orders that any doctor or nurse who attended a
-patient for gunshot wounds was at once to report the case to the Castle.
-The object was to trace men who were in a position similar to mine. To
-their credit be it said that the members of the medical profession,
-irrespective of their personal political views, absolutely declined to
-carry out these orders.
-
-At my new resting-place I was again carefully tended, and my wounds began
-to heal rapidly. After a few days I was able to get out of bed for a
-short time every day.
-
-A week after my arrival at this house another exciting incident took
-place. The whole block in which my hostess lived was surrounded. Once
-more, I thought, they were on my trail. From my window I saw the troops
-taking up their positions. I rushed to the skylight—for skylights had
-often before proved useful to me. Just as I got to the skylight I saw an
-Auxiliary outside on the roof with a rifle in his hand.
-
-This time, I concluded, there was no chance for me. I was to be caught
-like a rat in a trap. I went to the front window again. Outside was a
-line of khaki and steel. Beyond that was a throng of curious sightseers.
-Some, I suppose, were full of anxiety and fear lest any soldier of
-Ireland should be caught in the trap. Others no doubt were proud of the
-Empire’s Army, and hoping it would gain another little laurel.
-
-As my eyes travelled along the line of spectators I saw the figure of
-Mick Collins. Later I learned why he was there. He had seen the troops
-moving in the direction of the district in which I was being nursed, and
-had actually collected a few of the boys to be ready to attempt a rescue.
-
-Their services were not needed. The soldiers raided almost every house
-in the locality, including the house next door, but never came into
-the place where I was. All the same I felt grateful to Mick. As I have
-already explained, he was the only member of G.H.Q. who stood by us
-consistently.
-
-It was considered advisable to remove me again. I was taken to Dun
-Laoghaire to the house of Mrs. Barry early in November, 1920. Miss
-O’Connor and Miss Mason were both constant nurses of mine while I was
-there and my recovery became rapid. I had been there only three or four
-days when almost every house in the avenue was raided, except that of
-Mrs. Barry. Evidently the British spies were hitting the trail but losing
-the scent.
-
-I was in Dun Laoghaire on “Bloody Sunday,” November 21st. On that morning
-fourteen British Intelligence officers were shot dead in their lodgings
-in Dublin by our men. These officers, living the lives of ordinary
-civilians in private houses, were really spies, and the brains of the
-British Intelligence Department at that time. In every land spies pay
-the death penalty during war, and even the British Ministers of the time
-justified all their actions by saying they were “at war with Ireland.”
-But there could not be one set of war rules for their men and another for
-ours.
-
-The operation was one of the most successful carried out in Dublin. The
-I.R.A., however, suffered some losses. Frank Teeling was captured and
-sentenced to death, but escaped from Kilmainham Jail before the sentence
-was carried out. Paddy Moran was later captured and tried for taking part
-in one of these executions although he was four miles from the scene. He
-was hanged in Mountjoy early in 1921. I knew poor Paddy well. I first met
-him at the home of my friend Mrs. O’Doherty in Connaught Street, Dublin.
-He was a lovable character, and a faithful soldier of Ireland.
-
-There were two terrible reprisals that day for the execution of the
-fourteen spies.
-
-In broad daylight the same afternoon hundreds of soldiers and Black and
-Tans drove to Croke Park where 10,000 people, who had not even heard of
-the shootings that morning, were witnessing a football match between
-Tipperary and Dublin.
-
-Surrounding the grounds the British without warning poured volley after
-volley into the crowd, killing seventeen people and wounding about fifty.
-That crime was, perhaps, the most diabolical of which England had been
-guilty.
-
-Another incident of “Bloody Sunday” had, however, a sadder personal
-touch for me. That was the murder of Peadar Clancy and Dick McKee. They
-had been captured by the enemy shortly before, and were murdered in
-Dublin Castle as a reprisal for the shooting of the officers. Of course,
-Sir Hamar Greenwood, or his chief manufacturer of lies at the Castle,
-invented one of their usual explanations that they attacked the guard and
-attempted to escape. Fancy two highly intelligent officers attempting to
-attack an armed guard in the heart of a fortress from which a mouse could
-not escape! An independent medical examination showed that the two I.R.A.
-men were subjected to the most incredible tortures before they were done
-to death.
-
-Mick Collins and Tom Cullen (later A.D.C. to the new Free State
-Governor-General) arranged for this medical examination, and also for the
-lying-in-state of the two bodies at the Pro-Cathedral. I mention this to
-their credit, for few members of G.H.Q. staff would have ventured so much
-in public at that time of danger and uncertainty.
-
-Poor Dick and Peadar! They were two of our bravest officers and two of
-our staunchest supporters of the intensive war policy. They lived only
-five weeks after Sean, and did not even get a chance of dying fighting
-like him. A County Clare Volunteer named Conor Clune was murdered on the
-same occasion in the Castle.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXIV.
-
-MY RETURN TO TIPPERARY.
-
-
-From Dun Laoghaire I was taken in a motor car by Eamonn Fleming across
-the mountains into Wicklow. At one place Eamonn introduced me under an
-assumed name, but the man of the house laughed heartily and assured him
-that he knew me well as Dan Breen, for he was a patient in the same part
-of the Mater Hospital when I was there some weeks before.
-
-At this time I had to keep moving from place to place more rapidly, as
-England was now pouring troops into the country by thousands. The jails
-and penal settlements of Britain were being scoured for recruits for the
-Black and Tans, who were given every assurance by their chiefs that they
-need have no fears they would ever suffer for letting themselves loose on
-a campaign of murder, loot and arson. And they took the hint.
-
-I spent a few days at the lovely home of Bob Barton, T.D., in the Glen
-of Wicklow. Later I went farther south again, and finally, a few days
-before Christmas of 1920, I found myself back again in my own brigade
-area in South Tipperary.
-
-Here I met all the old comrades again—Seumas Robinson, Dinny Lacey, Sean
-Hogan, Sean O’Meara and many others. I was feeling strong again, but by
-doctor’s orders I was not allowed to walk any considerable distance.
-
-The war was now at its height. Our columns were moving about in broad
-daylight with their rifles on their shoulders, welcomed everywhere by the
-people, whose offence in harbouring us was punishment by death. The enemy
-now only ventured from their strongholds in the towns when they were in
-hundreds, accompanied by dozens of armoured cars. The British machinery
-of Government was completely wrecked. British courts were deserted while
-litigants flocked to the Republican Courts to get justice, even though a
-long term of imprisonment was the penalty for anyone found in one of our
-courts. The orders of the English Government Departments were ignored by
-all our public bodies. In a word, England’s only claim to rule Ireland at
-this time was that she had about one hundred thousand armed criminals in
-the country dressed as soldiers and police.
-
-I spent a while in the neighbourhood of Solohead, and later went on
-towards Cahir and Rosegreen. Most of the remaining period of the war I
-passed in that part of the county, round Fethard, Cahir and Rosegreen
-direction. Our columns were now busy fighting every day, and about this
-time we put into practice the idea of having elaborate dugouts for
-sleeping accommodation and for concealing arms. These underground resting
-places had very narrow entrances, barely large enough to admit a man’s
-body.
-
-In April, 1921, we were in Cahir district when our Brigade Intelligence
-officer reported that it had become usual for a convoy of British troops
-to pass between Clogheen and Cahir every Wednesday morning. We decided
-to ambush this convoy on 22nd April. Word was sent to the columns to
-mobilise at the spot chosen for the attack. Con Moloney (who became
-Deputy Chief of the I.R.A. Staff during the Civil War) and I arrived
-in the neighbourhood the previous night and fell in with our columns.
-At this time we travelled about in a motor car, so the reader will
-appreciate the change that had taken place. In 1919 when the war had not
-started I dare not stay in my own county, and now in 1921, when the war
-was at its height, I could use a motor car with comparative safety.
-
-At 5 a.m. on the morning of the 22nd all our men rose to prepare for the
-ambush. It was about midway between Clogheen and Cahir. When all was
-ready Moloney, Lacey, Hogan and myself visited the positions.
-
-The enemy party was expected to pass about 10 o’clock in the morning,
-and before that hour our men were on the alert with their guns in their
-hands. It was approaching 11 o’clock when we began to fear that the
-soldiers would not follow their usual custom; still we remained in
-readiness until 1 o’clock, when Con Moloney and I decided to return to
-Brigade Headquarters—“somewhere in South Tipperary.”
-
-We had left the position only half an hour when the convoy came along.
-Our men at once called upon the enemy to surrender, but they replied by
-opening fire. A sharp encounter followed, in the course of which one
-soldier was killed and two wounded. The remainder of the party then
-surrendered to the I.R.A., who disarmed them, destroyed their convoy, and
-then released their prisoners.
-
-Our men lost no time in retiring from the position, for the firing had
-probably been heard in Clogheen and Cahir, both occupied by strong
-British garrisons who would at once rush reinforcements into the
-districts. The I.R.A. were marching off with their booty, in column
-formation, when a single motor car, rounding a corner at a place called
-Curraghclooney, almost ran into the rear guard. The car was halted. Our
-men asked the occupant his name and got the reply, “District Inspector
-Potter, of the R.I.C., Cahir.”
-
-He was at once taken prisoner, and his car seized. Our columns had not
-proceeded much farther on their way when they suddenly found themselves
-being ambushed by a strong party of enemy troops. A brisk engagement
-developed, but although out-numbered three to one, our boys not only
-fought their way through without losses on their side, but carried their
-prisoner with them. Their success was due to the able leadership of Dinny
-Lacey and Sean Hogan.
-
-Now at this time an I.R.A. man named Traynor was under sentence of death
-in Dublin. Already the British had hanged several of our soldiers who
-had fallen into their hands, but our side firmly set its face against
-reprisals. On many a day that I.R.A. men were hanged as criminals British
-soldiers and police fell into our hands, but they were always released on
-handing up their arms. If England would not play the game we would.
-
-Traynor’s was a particularly sad case. He was the father of a helpless
-young family. His execution was fixed for April 25th.
-
-With Potter a prisoner in our hands we at once decided upon a course of
-action which might save Traynor’s life. We sent a special courier at once
-to Dublin, with a message to be delivered at the enemy headquarters to
-the effect that we were prepared to exchange our prisoner for Traynor,
-and failing this, that Potter would be executed by us.
-
-The message was delivered in Dublin Castle two days before the time
-fixed for the execution. We got no reply. I believe the Castle officials
-never let the offer go beyond their own secret circle. After all, Potter
-was in their eyes but one of the mere Irish whom they had used as a tool.
-
-On the 26th we received word that Traynor had been executed the previous
-day. We felt it would show weakness on our part if we did not carry out
-our threat. We thought, too, it would have a good effect if we had to
-make similar offers in the future. And besides Potter was, in our eyes,
-not an English soldier but an Irish traitor.
-
-We informed him he was to be executed. We gave him every facility for
-communicating with his wife and children, and for writing any messages he
-wished.
-
-I never felt more sorry in my life at having to carry out such an
-unpleasant task. We discussed the matter from every aspect and agreed we
-had no alternative. Potter was a kind and cultured gentleman, and a brave
-officer. Before he was executed he gave us a diary, a signet ring and a
-gold watch with the request that we should return them to his wife. We
-fulfilled his request.
-
-As an official reprisal for his death the British military authorities
-blew up ten farmhouses in South Tipperary. Amongst them was Mrs. Tobin’s,
-of Tincurry, where Sean Treacy, Hogan and I had sheltered the night after
-the Soloheadbeg affair.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXV.
-
-MARRIED IN THE BATTLE LINE.
-
-
-On the 12th June, 1921, just one month before the Truce with the English
-forces, I was married in circumstances as strange as they were romantic.
-
-In an earlier chapter I have already told how I first met my future wife,
-Brighid Malone, in September, 1919, and how she and her sister served us
-and our cause when sympathisers were few. From the day of our first visit
-to the home of the Malone’s, our friendship began and soon developed into
-a deeper feeling. I knew it was to Brighid’s constant care and nursing
-that I owed my speedy recovery from the wounds I received at Ashtown.
-During the months that I spent in her mother’s house after that encounter
-our attachment became stronger, and in 1920 we became formally engaged.
-
-After the fight at Drumcondra in October, 1920, Brighid came to see me
-whenever it was safe. We decided to get married as soon as I would be
-completely recovered. I knew well the risks I was asking her to take for
-my sake; but she never hesitated in taking them. To be known as a friend
-of mine involved all the petty tyranny and torture of which the British
-were capable. What then would it mean for the girl against whom the
-terrible crime could be laid that she was my fiancee or my wife?
-
-I knew that spies would forever after dog her steps, that her home would
-be raided night and day, and she herself insulted, and perhaps tortured
-for information. But she never flinched. She was willing to take her
-chance, and I, for my part, felt I could be still as good a soldier of
-Ireland.
-
-Early in 1921 we agreed that the marriage would take place in June.
-Brighid would have her holidays at that time, and therefore her journey
-to the country, if noticed, might not arouse so much suspicion.
-
-At the end of May we had completed all arrangements. To have the ceremony
-in a church was out of the question. Churches were constantly being
-raided and searched, and even sacrilege was of little concern to the
-Auxiliaries. Besides, a marriage ceremony in a local church arouses the
-curiosity of the neighbourhood.
-
-We decided to have the marriage at Michael Purcell’s, of Glenagat House.
-Glenagat is six miles from Clonmel, and four miles from each of the towns
-of Cahir, Cashel and Fethard. All of these towns were held by strong
-enemy forces who every day and night sent out heavy columns to scour the
-district in search of our units. Our chosen spot was, therefore, in the
-midst of the enemy.
-
-The Purcells were a great family, and did everything in their power to
-help in completing the arrangements. They had a long record of service
-in the country’s cause, and both Mr. Purcell and his wife had seen the
-inside of a prison cell during the “Land War” of the last generation.
-They had been ruthlessly evicted from their homestead, but at this time
-they had won back their farm.
-
-The fight was now more intense than ever. Each side was suffering heavy
-casualties every day, and the crimes of the Black and Tans were daily
-becoming more fiendish and revolting.
-
-Brighid arrived in the district on the Sunday before the wedding. It was
-seven months since we had seen each other, so that our reunion was not
-only romantic but delightful. It is not easy to appreciate the risk she
-had taken.
-
-Meantime I had sent word from Brigade Headquarters to all our columns,
-telling them of the event that was coming off. During the early morning
-of 12th June all our columns converged on Glenagat, felled trees across
-the roads, and posted armed guards at all the approaches. Glenagat that
-day was as impregnable as the South Tipperary Brigade could make it,
-and if the British forces attempted to visit the area they would get a
-reception such as they had never before experienced. Never were our men
-so eager, so determined, or so excited. The night before Sean Hogan,
-Dinny Lacey, Mick Sheehan, Con Moloney, Sean Fitzpatrick and several
-other officers slept with me in a tent near by. I think I should have
-said spent the night, for we slept very little, much to my regret. The
-boys would insist on talking all through the night and giving me all
-the advice that bachelors usually give to one who is going to become a
-benedict. If ever I was the target for rapid and sustained fire it was
-that night—though fortunately it was not of a dangerous kind.
-
-Early in the morning we arrived at Glenagat House. Father Murphy, of New
-Inn, Cashel, who was to perform the ceremony, had already arrived, and
-Brighid was there too. Father Murphy said Mass in the house, and both
-Brighid and myself received Holy Communion. Sean Hogan was my “best man,”
-and Miss Annie Malone was bridesmaid.
-
-When the ceremony was over we sat down to breakfast, and a right merry
-party we were. Father Ferdinand O’Leary, Sean Cooney and Miss Cooney
-arrived on the scene just as the breakfast began.
-
-At Jack Luby’s, of Milltown House, we had a real country wedding. All
-through the evening and night the boys and girls of the neighbourhood
-danced and sang and enjoyed themselves as if there was no war on. All
-the time our outposts were on the alert, though each party was relieved
-from time to time to have their share in the merriment. And even while
-the boys danced and laughed their guns were ever at hand in case of need.
-We had grown used to the war. No terrorism could ever kill the spirit of
-the people.
-
-From Glenagat district we went across to Donohill, back to my native
-parish, beside Soloheadbeg. Larry Power, who was Captain of my old
-company, saw that we had nothing to fear, and I knew my old comrades
-could be trusted to the death.
-
-Here we spent our honeymoon, moving from the house of one friend to
-another, for they were all anxious to entertain us. John Quirke, Paddy
-O’Dwyer, James Ryan and Jack O’Brien, of Ballinvassa, were each in turn
-our host, and spared no pains to make us happy and safe.
-
-Truly, it was a strange wedding and a strange honeymoon. No wedding
-marches, crossed swords, confetti or rice or trips to the continent, but
-the love and welcome of trusted friends with generous warm hearts. And I
-do not believe that either my wife or I would have it otherwise, if we
-had our choice again.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXVI.
-
-THE TRUCE.
-
-
-Early in June, 1921, I learned that a movement was on foot to effect a
-compromise with England. It did not surprise me then to hear that a Truce
-had been arranged as from July 11th, 1921.
-
-In many respects we welcomed the respite, though we never thought it
-would end as it did. For some time our area had been running short of
-munitions, and just before the Truce we had sent some of our men to the
-continent in the hope of negotiating for a cargo which would attempt to
-run the blockade. At the time of the Truce I was Quartermaster of the
-Second Southern Division of the I.R.A., but I resigned for reasons I do
-not wish to state here. It was just about the time of the Truce that our
-Brigades all over Ireland were being grouped into Divisions.
-
-It was like a new life to us to return from the columns to the towns
-and cities again. Everywhere we were welcomed and acclaimed as heroes,
-even by the people who, two years before, had been describing us as
-murderers and assassins. But all this time we were still short of
-money. During the months of the Truce I went about almost every day to
-race meetings and made scores of friends amongst the racing fraternity
-whose information—especially that of the owners—enabled Hogan and myself
-to make some very profitable investments. It was the only way we could
-obtain money, for the I.R.A. were still an unpaid Volunteer Army.
-
-In Tipperary and Dublin I visited all my old friends, and was welcomed
-everywhere. In August I decided to give up racing. At that time the
-I.R.A. was devoting special attention to the Northern areas, endeavouring
-to equip and train the units there so that when the fight would be
-renewed they would play a more active part and relieve some of the
-pressure from the Southern counties. I was anxious to give a hand in
-this work and went to the north, where I met Charlie Daly, who was since
-executed by the Free State during the Civil War. Daly, who was a Kerry
-man, was one of the finest and ablest soldiers I ever met. I spent five
-weeks with Charlie training the Northern boys in the use of the gun and
-the bomb. It was hard work for all of us, but I enjoyed it as I saw much
-of Ulster in our long walks and pleasure drives. To make it more exciting
-we went into Belfast itself on a few occasions.
-
-I returned to Dublin about the end of September. While I was in the
-capital the Dublin Guards presented me with a gold watch and chain, and
-Paddy Daly and others, who were later officers of high command in the
-Free State Army, said some very nice things about me. Here I must observe
-that the watch I received on that occasion was looted from my house in
-Carrick-on-Suir ten or eleven months later by the Free State troops who
-entered that town.
-
-I remained in Dublin until a few days before the signing of the Treaty.
-Then I discovered that a compromise was being made, and I went to the
-south once more. I was convinced that if we could show that the Army
-was standing solid for what it had fought to achieve the Dail would not
-betray the Army. The soldiers, I felt, would keep the politicians on the
-straight track. I could not bring myself to believe that the Dail would
-take upon itself the responsibility of making a compromise, when it had
-never taken responsibility for the Anglo-Irish War. In this I was sadly
-mistaken. The very men who were most bitterly opposed to the few who
-began the war were now the strongest supporters of the Treaty.
-
-I came to Dublin on December 7th, the day the terms of the Treaty were
-made public, and I met Liam Lynch, Sean Hogan, and several I.R.A.
-officers. I urged Liam Lynch, who was then in command of the 1st Southern
-Division, to end the Truce right away and resume the war. In that way we
-might have kept the Army united once the common enemy was again in action
-against any section of us. Nobody favoured my plan. Some held out the
-vain hope that even if the Treaty were accepted by the Dail it would be
-rejected by the people at the polls. I laughed at the hope, knowing that
-in any country which has wearied of war the masses of the people will
-always accept a compromise.
-
-Disheartened at the failure of my efforts to get the boys united once
-more against the enemy, I made up my mind to leave Ireland. I intended to
-go to India and strike a blow against the old enemy there and help those
-who were fighting the same battle as we had been fighting in Ireland. But
-when Sean Hogan and I got in touch with Indian leaders in London they
-asked how could Irishmen be trusted to fight for India when they had
-deserted their own country?
-
-In despair I decided to go to America. In the middle of December I acted
-as “best man” for Seumas Robinson when he was married in Dublin. That
-evening I left for London.
-
-As I left Dun Laoghaire I felt completely broken in spirit. I had seen
-all our efforts in vain, and the men we trusted had told the world that
-the freedom we fought for was the freedom to have our country cut in
-twain, and the freedom to take an oath of allegiance to a foreign king.
-
-[Illustration: J. J. HOGAN. FATHER DAN KELLY. DAN BREEN.]
-
-Before I left Dublin I had asked several I.R.A. officers to stand with me
-in resuming the war, but they would not accept my views. Had they agreed
-I would never have left Ireland, and I warned them that within twelve
-months they would be fighting a Civil War.
-
-On the 19th of December, before leaving Ireland, I addressed an open
-letter to Commandant Sean McKeon, T.D. In this letter I made my attitude
-towards the Treaty perfectly clear. These were my exact words:—
-
-“I wish to point out to you that you are reported to have stated in
-An Dail to-day, that this Treaty brings the freedom that is necessary
-and for which we are all ready to die. You also are reported to have
-previously stated that this Treaty gives you what you and your comrades
-fought for.
-
-“As one of your comrades I say that I would never have handled a gun or
-fired a shot, nor would I have asked any of my comrades, living or dead,
-to raise a hand to obtain this Treaty.
-
-“Let me remind you that to-day is the second anniversary of Martin
-Savage’s death. Do you suppose that he sacrificed his life in attempting
-to kill one British Governor-General in order to make room for another
-British Governor-General?
-
-“I take no party’s side, but I still stand by our old principle of
-Complete Separation and entire Independence.”
-
-In London I met Sean Hogan who had crossed before me. It was the first
-time I had ever been out of my own country, and for a time the novelty of
-life in London and my strange surroundings helped to keep my mind from
-the great tragedy of Ireland. We stayed in London for about a fortnight.
-During my stay I met Mr. P. L. Smyth, the well-known Dublin Commission
-Agent, and he proved a kind friend to us.
-
-Our next trouble was how to get to America. We decided to attempt to
-cross from Canada, but we had two great obstacles to overcome.
-
-In the first place we had very little money, and in the second place
-we had no passports. How we overcame the passport difficulty I cannot
-explain here.
-
-Anyhow, after a three weeks’ journey we landed safely in Canada. From
-Canada we successfully crossed into the States, and made our way to
-Chicago. Here we were met by my two brothers, John and Pat, and my
-sister, Mary, all of whom had been in the United States for some years.
-I soon found that in this far away city we were almost at home. We met
-fellow-countrymen and fellow-countrywomen everywhere. One of the first we
-met was Ned O’Brien, of Galbally, whose health had broken down because
-of the wounds he received in the rescue at Knocklong. Other friends we
-made included Mrs. McWhorter, a great worker in the Irish cause, Michael
-Mulryan, Jim Delaney and Colonel O’Reilly. They all helped to make it a
-real holiday for us by showing us everything of note in that great city.
-Above all, I marvelled at the great meat-curing factories, most of which
-are owned and worked by Irishmen.
-
-We went from Chicago to Philadelphia where a host of friends again
-greeted us. Joe McGarrity, that veteran worker for Ireland, was one of
-the first to welcome us, and we spent a while in his house where so many
-before us—Sean McDermott, Padraig Pearse, Roger Casement, and Eamon de
-Valera—had been honoured and entertained. Luke Dillon, too, welcomed us,
-and our old friends Seumas O’Doherty and Mrs. O’Doherty, whom we had
-known in the old days in Dublin. The kindness of the O’Doherty family to
-us I shall always remember with gratitude.
-
-From Philadelphia we travelled to California. There I again met many
-Irish friends, including Father Peter Scanlon, Father Dan Kelly, Senior;
-and Father Dan Kelly, Junior, all from my own part of the country. I was
-delighted to meet Mick McDonnell too, our old comrade of the Ashtown
-fight, who had been out there for quite a good while.
-
-California is a delightful place. Although it was mid-winter when I
-got there the weather was like the weather we get in Ireland in the
-summer-time.
-
-Meantime I was far from being out of touch with affairs in Ireland. The
-American papers gave much prominence to the development of events at
-home following the acceptance of the Treaty. It was plain that our old
-comrades were irrevocably divided and heading for Civil War. Every day
-brought fresh stories of new differences and minor conflicts that showed
-the situation could end only in one way. In America our countrymen were
-divided in the same way as our people at home.
-
-Early in March came the news that Limerick was on the verge of an
-outbreak. Different posts in the city were held by the rival sections
-of the Volunteers—some supporters of the Treaty and some against it.
-Ultimatums had actually passed between the rival commanders there, and
-it looked as if at any moment a single shot might begin a conflict that
-would soon spread throughout the land.
-
-I was staying with Father Dan Kelly, Senior, at Menlo Park, when a cable
-reached me from Ireland asking me to return at once. This message was the
-outcome of an agreement made between the rival sections in Limerick, an
-agreement which averted a conflict.
-
-Within two days of the receipt of this cablegram I had left California
-for Chicago. There I again stayed for a few days with my relatives and
-friends. From Chicago I went to Philadelphia where I got the same warm
-greeting from Joe McGarrity, Luke Dillon and the O’Dohertys.
-
-We had decided that New York would be the best place from which to
-attempt a passage to Ireland, for of course Hogan and I were still
-confronted with the same difficulties regarding money and passports as
-we had experienced on our outward journey. We could easily have got
-passports from the British Consulate if we had asked them as British
-subjects, but we would rather have rotted in America. While in New York
-we visited the Carmelite Fathers’ place in 39th Street, and also the
-Irish Offices in 5th Avenue, where I met Liam Pedlar.
-
-At last, through the help of some Irish friends, both of us got taken on
-a vessel that was sailing for Cobh. We were working our way as stokers.
-Sean and I set to our work with a will, and had done four hours at a
-task which was novel to us. The vessel was to sail within an hour,
-when somebody got suspicious of Hogan. He was questioned as to his
-nationality, his experience on other vessels, and the result was that he
-was ordered to leave the ship on the spot.
-
-Now this was a nice dilemma for me. I saw our four hours’ hard work and
-all our efforts to secure the jobs gone for nothing; but I could not
-think of leaving Hogan alone in New York without a cent, in his pocket. I
-made up my mind that I would not sail without him.
-
-But it was no easy matter to escape from the ship. The crew were
-marshalled for the voyage, and to attempt to return to land was a serious
-offence, for which I might find myself in irons.
-
-The risk had to be taken. I made a bold bid. I walked straight to the
-gangway, but was held up by an officer. I explained to him that I had
-important business to do on shore but would not be detained longer than a
-few minutes. He must have taken me to be a simple harmless poor worker,
-for he accepted my word and allowed me to land. I never saw him or his
-ship afterwards.
-
-The loss was not all on his side. All the money we had the night before
-we intended to sail had been invested in guns, and these were on the
-ship. It would be madness to try to bring them with me, so I had to
-suffer the loss. My comrade was more to me than Krupp’s factory.
-
-We had a few more bitter disappointments before we could again get on a
-liner. Finally we found ourselves on the high seas once more, sailing for
-Cobh.
-
-We landed in Ireland early in April. A friend to whom my wife had wired
-to meet me at Cobh brought me the happy news that not only my wife but a
-son was waiting my arrival in Dublin.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXVII.
-
-EFFORTS TO AVERT CIVIL WAR.
-
-
-When I arrived in Dublin I found that the situation was even more
-critical that I had expected. The old Republican Army had definitely
-split into two sections—one the new Free State Army, and the other the
-I.R.A. The British troops had evacuated Beggar’s Bush Barracks and
-Wellington Barracks, and handed them over to the Free State troops.
-The Republicans had seized and fortified the Four Courts as their
-Headquarters. Similar divisions existed all over the country, though the
-south was overwhelmingly Republican so far as the Army was concerned. It
-was clear that at any moment a civil war might ensue. War was in the air.
-At night there was constant firing, and armoured cars rushed through the
-streets.
-
-I felt almost broken-hearted. Had we stood so loyally together in the
-past only to turn our arms against each other now? I decided that I at
-least would not be to blame if fighting broke out.
-
-I visited the strongholds of each party in turn to explore the
-possibilities. I called meetings of the old fighting crowd on each side,
-but there seemed no chance of any agreement.
-
-I then met Sean O’Hegarty (Commandant of the 1st Cork Brigade), Florrie
-O’Donoghue (Adjutant of the 1st Southern Division), Humphrey Murphy,
-of Kerry; Tom Hales, of Cork; and Sean Moylan, T.D., all of whom were
-opposed to the Treaty. After some discussion we decided to meet some
-officers on the other side in a last effort to find a way out. We met
-Mick Collins, Dick Mulcahy, Owen O’Duffy, Gearoid O’Sullivan, and Sean
-Boylan.
-
-After a long exchange of views we agreed upon a certain basis of
-settlement. This we put in writing, and each of us signed it except Sean
-Moylan. This document was published in the Press on 1st May. I give it
-here in full:—
-
-“We, the undersigned officers of the I.R.A., realising the gravity of the
-position in Ireland, and appreciating the fact that if the present drift
-is maintained a conflict of comrades is inevitable, declare that this
-would be the greatest calamity in Irish history and would leave Ireland
-broken for generations.
-
-“To avert this catastrophe we believe that a closing of the ranks all
-round is necessary.
-
-“We suggest to all leaders, Army and Political, and all citizens and
-soldiers of Ireland, the advisability of a union of forces on the basis
-of the acceptance and utilisation of our present national position in the
-best interests of Ireland, and we require that nothing shall be done that
-would prejudice our position or dissipate our forces.
-
-“We feel that on this basis alone can the situation best be faced, viz.:—
-
- “(1) The acceptance of the Pact—admitted by all sides—that the
- majority of the people of Ireland are willing to accept the
- Treaty.
-
- “(2) An agreed election with a view to
-
- “(3) Forming a Government which will have the confidence of the
- whole country.
-
- “(4) Army unification on above basis.”
-
-That was signed by Tom Hales, Humphrey Murphy, Sean O’Hegarty, Florrie
-O’Donoghue, Sean Boylan, Dick Mulcahy, Owen O’Duffy, Gearoid O’Sullivan,
-Mick Collins and myself. That is, five of us who opposed the Treaty
-and five who favoured it. In the Civil War which followed both Florrie
-O’Donoghue and Sean O’Hegarty remained neutral.
-
-These proposals came in for severe criticism. The Republican Headquarters
-in the Four Courts at once issued a statement repudiating the terms, and
-suggesting the whole thing was an attempt to split their ranks. I myself
-received my full share of adverse criticism. One Republican Journal,
-_The Plain People_, described me as a “Judas—with perhaps the difference
-that I had not got the thirty pieces of silver.” I do not to this day
-know who the editor of this paper was. Perhaps he believed what he wrote.
-I paid no heed to these observations. My duty I believed was to strain
-every nerve to avoid civil war.
-
-On May 3rd, those who had signed this suggested basis of peace were
-received by the Dail, and Sean O’Hegarty addressed the House. The result
-was the appointment of a Committee representing both sides in the Dail to
-discuss the proposals.
-
-The next step was to see what could be done to bring about a reunion in
-the Army. A conference was arranged between the chiefs on both sides, and
-several meetings were held. But neither the Army chiefs nor the political
-chiefs could come to any lasting agreement. The one result of all the
-negotiations was the Pact between Eamon de Valera and Michael Collins
-agreeing to contest the coming elections as a United Sinn Fein Party,
-both Free Staters and Republicans standing on the same ticket and not
-opposing each other. In that way all the outgoing members of the Dail
-were again nominated, and the agreement was that after the election there
-was to be a Coalition Ministry.
-
-When the election came there was some difficulty about a vacancy which
-had been created in East Tipperary by the resignation of Alderman Frank
-Drohan, of Clonmel. He had resigned before the division on the Treaty,
-and a dispute arose as to whether the Republicans or the Free Staters
-were to nominate his successor. Finally, I was selected as being more or
-less neutral. I was not consulted on the matter and I knew nothing about
-the arrangement until I saw the announcement in the Press. I protested
-against the proposal, but for the sake of harmony I agreed to allow my
-name to go forward. I had no ambition to enter politics. I was a soldier
-above all things, and I made it quite plain that I would take no part
-in the election campaign. However, both sides nominated me and I was
-defeated at the polls.
-
-I had hoped that as a result of the Pact between Collins and de Valera
-we would have an uncontested election, which would result in preserving
-a united front against England. However, both the Labour Party and the
-Farmers prepared to send forward candidates of their own to oppose
-Republicans and Free Staters. Before the polling, Mick Collins delivered
-a speech in Cork urging Labour and other parties to carry on their
-campaign. This was, of course, a flagrant violation of the agreement
-which he had entered.
-
-In North, Mid. and South Tipperary I succeeded in inducing the Farmers’
-candidates to withdraw from the contest. If all parties were as patriotic
-as the farmers of Tipperary civil war might have been avoided. They had
-suffered more than any other section of the community from the Black and
-Tan terror. They had had martial law preventing the holding of the fairs
-and markets for three years. Their farmhouses and creameries had been
-wrecked in scores, and they had stood loyally by us all through the war.
-Their self-sacrifice in retiring from the 1922 election deserves to be
-remembered.
-
-The Labour candidate in Tipperary would listen to no argument. He cared
-nothing about presenting a united front to the enemy. He was ambitious
-for power and he insisted upon going forward. He afterwards, I believe,
-boasted that he was not afraid of Dan Breen even when a gun was put up to
-his breast. Even in election campaigns such slanders are hardly playing
-the game. However, I hope my countrymen know me well enough not to
-believe that I would ever put a gun up to an unarmed opponent.
-
-All this time I still felt anxious for the future. Mick Collins’
-violation of the Pact made me suspicious. I felt too that England would
-never permit a Coalition Ministry of Free Staters and Republicans, but my
-hope all the time was that if a crisis came the Free Staters would throw
-the Treaty back in her teeth rather than cause brother to fight against
-brother.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXVIII.
-
-HOW I WAS CAPTURED.
-
-
-I have no intention of giving here a story of the Civil War. I can only
-say that I claim to have done my part to avoid it. But when I learned
-to my amazement that the Free Staters had in the dead of night placed
-British guns in position to shell the Republicans in the Four Courts I
-felt there was only one course open to me—to throw in my lot with my old
-comrades and carry on the fight for the Republic.
-
-In the course of that fight I lost nearly all my old brothers-in-arms.
-Even in the war against the Black and Tans Tipperary suffered less
-heavily. Dinny Lacey gave his life for Ireland; so too did Jerry Kiely,
-“Sparkie” Breen, Paddy Dalton, Paddy McDonough, Mick Sadlier, D. Ryan,
-Liam Lynch, and several others with whom I had campaigned in the old
-days. They were noble and courageous soldiers, true and unselfish
-comrades. Ireland will miss such men as these. They might be with us
-still if the agreement made in Limerick between Liam Lynch and Mick
-Brennan had been kept by the Free Staters. That agreement might have
-saved the soldiers of the south from turning their guns on one another.
-No one can say that the Republicans have a particle of responsibility for
-the breaking of the 1922 Treaty of Limerick.
-
-I shall conclude my story with an account of the circumstances that led
-to my capture.
-
-When Liam Lynch was killed in County Waterford in the early spring of
-1923, Austin Stack, Frank Barrett, David Kent, Sean Gaynor, Maurice
-Walsh, George Power, and several others of us who were together in the
-neighbourhood decided to make our way to the Nire Valley to attend
-an important meeting that had been called to discuss certain peace
-proposals. We reached Melleray at 1 o’clock next morning, and had a much
-needed rest and some food. At 5 o’clock we resumed our journey towards
-Cappoquin, and after an hour’s march we crossed the road, for we were
-anxious to keep to the fields as much as possible. Just after we had
-crossed the road, and were advancing up a hill heavy fire was opened on
-us from three sides. We at once took cover, but as the firing became more
-intense we decided to get away as best we could. In the confusion we
-became scattered. I never met Austin Stack from that day until I met him
-four months later in Mountjoy, where we were both prisoners.
-
-I fell in with Maurice Walsh and Andy Kennedy, and we decided to face for
-Newcastle, near Clonmel. When we arrived there we found to our amazement
-that the place was held by a strong party of Free Staters.
-
-We had to remain for two days on the hills, as the Free State troops had
-brought up huge reinforcements to sweep the district. There was heavy
-snow on the ground, but we could not venture into any place of shelter.
-
-After two days we slipped through the lines, and I headed for my old
-haunt, the Glen of Aherlow. I reached a dug-out on the Glen and almost
-collapsed from exhaustion and hunger. I slept almost as soon as I lay
-down.
-
-From that sleep I was wakened by the heavy tramp of marching men above.
-I jumped out and looked into the barrels of several Free State rifles. I
-had no option but to surrender.
-
-I am not a soft-hearted man. I have gone through too much to feel it an
-easy job to weep; but my pride alone kept me from crying like a child
-that day.
-
-For five years I had defied England’s garrison in Ireland. Everything I
-had suffered willingly for my country and my countrymen. And now in my
-native county I was a prisoner in the hands of my own countrymen.
-
-I was first taken to Galbally where I met my old friend of Knocklong,
-Ned O’Brien, his brother John Joe, and James Scanlan. I think they felt
-the situation as keenly as I did, but they tried to cheer me up.
-
-From Galbally I was taken under escort to my native town, Tipperary,
-where I was put through some form of trial. Next day I was taken from the
-Free State Headquarters, the Abbey School, and marched to the railway
-station. The humiliation and agony I endured during that short march I
-shall never forget. May the reader never know what it is to be marched
-a prisoner through his native town for doing what he believed to be his
-duty and serving his country.
-
-I was taken by rail to Limerick where I was detained for two months. I
-have already related how I met, as one of the military officers in charge
-of me, Lord French’s driver whom we had wounded at Ashtown.
-
-From Limerick I was taken to Mountjoy, and because of my treatment there
-I went on hunger-strike. After twelve days of hunger-strike and six of
-thirst strike, I was released.
-
-During my imprisonment the people of Tipperary had elected me as their
-senior Republican Deputy.
-
- Printed at
- The Talbot Press
- DUBLIN
-
-*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK MY FIGHT FOR IRISH
-FREEDOM ***
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the
-United States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg™ electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG™
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
-the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
-of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
-copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
-easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
-of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
-Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away--you may
-do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
-by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
-license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg™ mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase “Project
-Gutenberg”), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg™ License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg™ electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg™
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg™ electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. “Project Gutenberg” is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg™ electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg™ electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg™
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (“the
-Foundation” or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg™ mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg™
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg™ name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg™ License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg™ work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country other than the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg™ License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg™ work (any work
-on which the phrase “Project Gutenberg” appears, or with which the
-phrase “Project Gutenberg” is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you will have to check the laws of the country where
- you are located before using this eBook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg™ electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase “Project
-Gutenberg” associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg™
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg™ electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg™ License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg™
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg™.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg™ License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg™ work in a format
-other than “Plain Vanilla ASCII” or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg™ website
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original “Plain
-Vanilla ASCII” or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg™ License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg™ works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg™ electronic works
-provided that:
-
-• You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg™ works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg™ trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, “Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation.”
-
-• You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg™
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg™
- works.
-
-• You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-• You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg™ works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg™ electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
-the Project Gutenberg™ trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
-forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg™ collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg™
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain “Defects,” such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the “Right
-of Replacement or Refund” described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg™ trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg™ electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you “AS-IS”, WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg™
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg™ work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg™ work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg™
-
-Project Gutenberg™ is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg™'s
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg™ collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg™ and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's business office is located at 809 North 1500 West,
-Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up
-to date contact information can be found at the Foundation's website
-and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg™ depends upon and cannot survive without
-widespread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg™ electronic works
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg™ concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg™ eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg™ eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This website includes information about Project Gutenberg™,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
diff --git a/old/69928-0.zip b/old/69928-0.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 792f750..0000000
--- a/old/69928-0.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69928-h.zip b/old/69928-h.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index d0400ba..0000000
--- a/old/69928-h.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69928-h/69928-h.htm b/old/69928-h/69928-h.htm
deleted file mode 100644
index 0dc2074..0000000
--- a/old/69928-h/69928-h.htm
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,9043 +0,0 @@
-<!DOCTYPE html>
-<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" xml:lang="en" lang="en">
- <head>
- <meta charset="UTF-8">
- <title>
- My Fight For Irish Freedom | Project Gutenberg
- </title>
-
- <link rel="icon" href="images/cover.jpg" type="image/x-cover">
-
- <style>
-
-a {
- text-decoration: none;
-}
-
-body {
- margin-left: 10%;
- margin-right: 10%;
-}
-
-h1,h2 {
- text-align: center;
- clear: both;
-}
-
-h2.nobreak {
- page-break-before: avoid;
-}
-
-hr {
- margin-top: 2em;
- margin-bottom: 2em;
- clear: both;
-}
-
-hr.tb {
- width: 45%;
- margin-left: 27.5%;
- margin-right: 27.5%;
-}
-
-hr.chap {
- width: 65%;
- margin-left: 17.5%;
- margin-right: 17.5%;
-}
-
-img.w100 {
- width: 100%;
-}
-
-div.chapter {
- page-break-before: always;
-}
-
-p {
- margin-top: 0.5em;
- text-align: justify;
- margin-bottom: 0.5em;
- text-indent: 1em;
-}
-
-table {
- margin: 1em auto 1em auto;
- max-width: 40em;
- border-collapse: collapse;
-}
-
-td {
- padding-left: 2em;
- padding-right: 0;
- vertical-align: top;
- text-indent: -2em;
-}
-
-.tdr {
- text-align: right;
-}
-
-.tdpg {
- vertical-align: bottom;
- text-align: right;
-}
-
-.blockquote {
- margin: 1.5em 10%;
-}
-
-.caption {
- text-align: center;
- margin-bottom: 1em;
- font-size: 90%;
- text-indent: 0em;
-}
-
-.caption2 {
- margin-bottom: 1em;
- font-size: 90%;
- text-indent: 0em;
-}
-
-.center {
- text-align: center;
- text-indent: 0em;
-}
-
-.figcenter {
- margin: auto;
- text-align: center;
-}
-
-.larger {
- font-size: 150%;
-}
-
-.pagenum {
- position: absolute;
- right: 4%;
- font-size: smaller;
- text-align: right;
- font-style: normal;
-}
-
-.poetry-container {
- text-align: center;
-}
-
-.poetry {
- display: inline-block;
- text-align: left;
-}
-
-.poetry .stanza {
- margin: 1em 0em 1em 0em;
-}
-
-.poetry .verse {
- padding-left: 3em;
-}
-
-.poetry .indent0 {
- text-indent: -3em;
-}
-
-.right {
- text-align: right;
-}
-
-.smaller {
- font-size: 80%;
-}
-
-.smcap {
- font-variant: small-caps;
- font-style: normal;
-}
-
-.titlepage {
- text-align: center;
- margin-top: 3em;
- text-indent: 0em;
-}
-
-.x-ebookmaker img {
- max-width: 100%;
- width: auto;
- height: auto;
-}
-
-.x-ebookmaker .poetry {
- display: block;
- margin-left: 1.5em;
-}
-
-.x-ebookmaker .blockquote {
- margin: 1.5em 5%;
-}
-
-/* Illustration classes */
-.illowp100 {width: 100%;}
-.illowp48 {width: 48%;}
-.x-ebookmaker .illowp48 {width: 100%;}
-.illowp52 {width: 52%;}
-.x-ebookmaker .illowp52 {width: 100%;}
-
- </style>
- </head>
-<body>
-<p style='text-align:center; font-size:1.2em; font-weight:bold'>The Project Gutenberg eBook of My fight for Irish freedom, by Dan Breen</p>
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
-most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
-of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
-at <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you
-are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws of the
-country where you are located before using this eBook.
-</div>
-
-<p style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:1em; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Title: My fight for Irish freedom</p>
-<p style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:0; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Author: Dan Breen</p>
-<p style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:0; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Contributor: Joseph McGarrity</p>
-<p style='display:block; text-indent:0; margin:1em 0'>Release Date: February 1, 2023 [eBook #69928]</p>
-<p style='display:block; text-indent:0; margin:1em 0'>Language: English</p>
- <p style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:0; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em; text-align:left'>Produced by: Tim Lindell and the Online Distributed Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net (This book was produced from images made available by the HathiTrust Digital Library.)</p>
-<div style='margin-top:2em; margin-bottom:4em'>*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK MY FIGHT FOR IRISH FREEDOM ***</div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_i"></a>[i]</span></p>
-
-<p class="center larger">MY FIGHT FOR IRISH FREEDOM</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_ii"></a>[ii]</span></p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_iii"></a>[iii]</span></p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp48" id="illus01" style="max-width: 28.125em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/illus01.jpg" alt="">
- <p class="caption">DAN BREEN.</p>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<p class="titlepage larger">MY FIGHT FOR<br>
-IRISH FREEDOM</p>
-
-<p class="titlepage"><span class="smaller"><i>By</i></span><br>
-DAN BREEN</p>
-
-<p class="titlepage"><span class="smaller"><i>With an Introduction by</i></span><br>
-JOSEPH McGARRITY<br>
-<span class="smaller">(<i>Philadelphia</i>)</span></p>
-
-<div class="figcenter titlepage illowp52" id="talbot" style="max-width: 10.9375em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/talbot.jpg" alt="">
-</div>
-
-<p class="titlepage"><span class="smaller">DUBLIN</span><br>
-THE TALBOT PRESS LIMITED<br>
-<span class="smaller">85 TALBOT STREET<br>
-1924</span></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_iv"></a>[iv]</span></p>
-
-<p class="titlepage">First Published, August, 1924.<br>
-Second Edition, September, 1924.<br>
-Third Edition, October, 1924.</p>
-
-<p class="titlepage">Printed in Ireland at <span class="smcap">The Talbot Press</span>, Dublin.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_v"></a>[v]</span></p>
-
-<p class="center"><span class="smaller">TO</span><br>
-SEAN TREACY<br>
-J. J. HOGAN<br>
-<span class="smaller">AND</span><br>
-SEUMAS ROBINSON</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_vi"></a>[vi]</span></p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_vii"></a>[vii]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="INTRODUCTION">INTRODUCTION</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p><i>My Fight for Irish Freedom</i>, by Commandant
-General Dan Breen, of the Third Tipperary
-Brigade, is a story written in the plain unaffected
-language of one of Ireland’s bravest and most
-devoted sons. Many of Ireland’s great champions
-passed from this world without leaving any authentic
-record of the battles in which they took part, save
-that which tradition handed on from generation to
-generation.</p>
-
-<p>As time passed, many of the most important
-phases of the stories thus transmitted were forgotten,
-and in some cases additions were made
-which gave certain of the tales a mythical rather
-than an historical character.</p>
-
-<p>An authentic historical record by Cuchulainn
-himself, if discovered to-day, would create a greater
-world interest than has the discovery of the tomb
-of the Pharaohs.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_viii"></a>[viii]</span></p>
-
-<p>The author and principal actor in this dramatic
-story was born and reared in Tipperary. He had
-no military knowledge whatever until he joined the
-Irish Volunteers. Gallant young Irishmen of the
-type of Dan Breen had been, for generations, drifting
-away from their native land. Their natural
-military genius and daring found outlet in the armies
-of France and Spain, where</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="verse indent0">“On far foreign fields, from Dunkirk to Belgrade</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">Lie the soldiers and chiefs of the Irish Brigade.”</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>Washington appreciated in full the valour of his
-Irish emigrant soldiers, as he afterwards proved by
-conceding to them equal status with the native-born
-Americans. He placed unbounded confidence in the
-patriotism and loyalty of his Irish generals and
-soldiers who comprised almost one-half of the entire
-Revolutionary Army.</p>
-
-<p>With the outbreak of the World War in 1914 the
-manhood of the world was being rolled up into two
-opposing mighty war machines—preparing to annihilate
-each other. The catch-cry “to fight in
-defence of small nations” was broad-casted. Under
-this, and other specious pretexts, hundreds of Irishmen
-were induced to join up in England’s Imperial<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_ix"></a>[ix]</span>
-armies, and they endured the horrors of France,
-Flanders and the Dardanelles.</p>
-
-<p>While these newly-recruited Irish regiments were
-being drafted to the various war fronts in Europe,
-great minds were busy at home planning Ireland’s
-regeneration. For two years the Irish Volunteer
-movement, directed by Pearse, Connolly, Casement,
-Clarke and the other leaders, had been
-spreading like a prairie fire through the country!
-Alas! because they dared to put forth the claim of
-their own small nation to be master in its own house
-the firing squad and the scaffold extinguished the
-brave lives of sixteen noble Irish leaders.</p>
-
-<p>Dan Breen and his few comrades had definitely
-reached the conclusion that while a foreign flag
-floated over public buildings in Ireland, and while
-a foreign army was garrisoned in the land, there
-was one place—and one place only—for Irishmen
-to fight—and that place was Ireland.</p>
-
-<p>He did not wait for an army to grow up, or for
-some great captain to come from foreign lands to
-lead his countrymen to victory. As a matter of fact
-at one time our soldier-author was, with a few
-comrades, practically the only force in the field
-engaged in active hostilities against the enemy.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_x"></a>[x]</span></p>
-
-<p>Such a stirring drama has seldom if ever been
-acted on the stage of Irish life. It is doubtful if any
-other individual in Irish history received a like
-number of near-fatal wounds, fighting in defence of
-his country—and survived to tell the story of the
-engagements in which the wounds were inflicted.</p>
-
-<p>Fired with a burning love of country and a fixed
-determination to achieve her independence, Dan
-Breen with a handful of men declared war on
-England on their own account, convinced that their
-countrymen would follow their example. In this he
-was not disappointed.</p>
-
-<p>The engagements described follow each other in
-such quick succession, and are of such a thrilling
-character, that from the opening of the first chapter
-to the close of the last, the reader is in momentary
-expectation of the story ending with the dramatic
-death of the author.</p>
-
-<p>The author’s graphic descriptions of localities,
-his giving of accurate distances between one location
-and another, his recording of place-names and
-family names gives the story a distinct and particular
-historical value.</p>
-
-<p>Great as was the physical suffering he endured,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_xi"></a>[xi]</span>
-having been literally riddled by bullets, it was as
-nothing compared to the mental torture he must
-have endured later on seeing his former comrades
-turn their arms against each other after the signing
-of the “Treaty” in 1921.</p>
-
-<p>In giving to his countrymen this authentic
-written record of the engagements in which he took
-part, Dan Breen has rendered a service to Ireland
-second only to the services rendered to her in the
-engagements he describes.</p>
-
-<p>Let us hope that some competent Celtic scholar
-will translate the story into the language of Ireland’s
-ancient champions whom she had gathered to her
-bosom centuries before this gallant son of Tipperary
-was ready to render to his beloved country the
-splendid services he has so willingly given.</p>
-
-<p class="right"><span class="smcap">Joseph McGarrity.</span></p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Philadelphia.</span></p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_xii"></a>[xii]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">CONTENTS</h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<table>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr smaller"><span class="smcap">Chapter</span></td>
- <td></td>
- <td class="tdpg smaller">PAGE</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr"></td>
- <td>Introduction</td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#INTRODUCTION">vii.</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">I.—</td>
- <td>A Volunteer’s Training</td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_I">1</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">II.—</td>
- <td>Preparing for the Fray</td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_II">11</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">III.—</td>
- <td>Our First Munition Factory</td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_III">17</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">IV.—</td>
- <td>Our Factory Blown Up</td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_IV">23</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">V.—</td>
- <td>The Political Landslide</td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_V">29</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">VI.—</td>
- <td>Soloheadbeg</td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_VI">34</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">VII.—</td>
- <td>Our Escape</td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_VII">41</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">VIII.—</td>
- <td>Helped by the British</td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_VIII">50</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">IX.—</td>
- <td>Our Return to Soloheadbeg</td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_IX">64</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">X.—</td>
- <td>Sean Hogan Captured</td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_X">72</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XI.—</td>
- <td>The Rescue at Knocklong</td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_XI">83</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XII.—</td>
- <td>Our Escape from Knocklong</td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_XII">93</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XIII.—</td>
- <td>Many Close Shaves</td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_XIII">106</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XIV.—</td>
- <td>On the Trail of Lord French</td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_XIV">115</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XV.—</td>
- <td>The Battle of Ashtown</td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_XV">126</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XVI.—</td>
- <td>Our Escape from Ashtown</td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_XVI">138</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XVII.—</td>
- <td>From Tara to Tipperary</td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_XVII">150</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XVIII.—</td>
- <td>The Barrack Attacks</td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_XVIII">162</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XIX.—</td>
- <td>Capture and Escape of General Lucas</td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_XIX">173</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XX.—</td>
- <td>Adventures with the Murder Gang</td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_XX">181</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XXI.—</td>
- <td>The Drumcondra Fight</td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXI">197</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XXII.—</td>
- <td>Missed by Inches</td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXII">209</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XXIII.—</td>
- <td>Executions and Reprisals</td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXIII">219</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XXIV.—</td>
- <td>My Return to Tipperary</td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXIV">228</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XXV.—</td>
- <td>Married in the Battle Line</td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXV">234</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XXVI.—</td>
- <td>The Truce</td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXVI">239</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XXVII.—</td>
- <td>Efforts to Avert Civil War</td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXVII">249</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XXVIII.—</td>
- <td>How I was Captured</td>
- <td class="tdpg"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXVIII">255</a></td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_1"></a>[1]</span></p>
-
-<h1>MY FIGHT FOR IRISH FREEDOM</h1>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_I">CHAPTER I.<br>
-<span class="smaller">A VOLUNTEER’S TRAINING</span></h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="verse indent0">“A soldier’s life is the life for me,</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">A soldier’s death, so Ireland’s free.”</div>
- </div>
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="verse right">—<i>Davis.</i></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>It was in 1914 that I first joined the Irish
-Volunteers in the village of Donohill, some four
-miles from Tipperary town. At that time I was
-about twenty years of age. I soon became known
-to the local police as the “Sinn Feiner,” then a
-very rare sort of animal. At a later stage in my
-career the same people, I believe, conferred upon
-me the still higher title of “Prince of the
-Assassins”! But I must beg the reader’s patience
-while I briefly outline the position in Ireland the
-year the Great War began.</p>
-
-<p>The British Parliament had passed its Home
-Rule Bill for Ireland. The Orange minority in the<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_2"></a>[2]</span>
-North of Ireland declared it would resist any attempt
-to enforce that Bill or to set up a Parliament in
-Dublin. Supported financially and morally by the
-wealthiest section of the English Tory Party, the
-Orangemen openly organised, drilled and armed a
-Volunteer Army to defy the British Parliament.</p>
-
-<p>At this time Sinn Fein as a political policy was
-little known outside of Dublin City. The spokesmen
-of the great majority of the Irish people were
-the Parliamentarians led by John Redmond. But
-a few of the intellectual leaders, such as Pearse and
-MacNeill, whose political influence then counted for
-little, saw in the action of the Orange Volunteers an
-excellent example to the rest of Ireland. They
-called on the Nationalists to form a Volunteer Army.
-The tradition of the Fenians still lived. Many who
-cared little for the Home Rule Bill saw that we now
-had got the opportunity for which they wished.
-Ireland answered the call, and when the Great
-War broke out there were in Ireland three armies,
-though very different in equipment and in outlook.
-One was the British Army of Occupation; the other
-was the Orange Volunteer Army in the North; and
-the third was the Irish Volunteer Force. Consequently,
-when the Great War broke out Redmond
-and his followers threw in their lot with the British,
-and appealed for recruits for the British Army. The
-Orange Volunteers, too, were in whole-hearted
-sympathy with the British cause. The Irish<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_3"></a>[3]</span>
-Volunteers for a time were split and disorganised;
-thousands joined the British Army; but a small
-number remained doggedly neutral and loyal to
-Ireland alone. That small number was not deceived
-by England’s cant of “fighting for small nations,”
-and “for the sanctity of treaties.” They were
-those who believed in an Independent Ireland; and
-as their best speakers were supporters of the political
-programme of Sinn Fein, they all gradually became
-known as “Sinn Fein Volunteers.”</p>
-
-<p>Our little band at Donohill was part of this small
-minority. We did not give much heed to John
-Redmond’s call to join the British Army. We
-continued to drill and train openly, in the hope that
-the time would come when we might get our chance
-to strike a blow at the only enemy we recognised—England.</p>
-
-<p>As the war developed we were closely watched
-by the police. We were known as “pro-Germans.”
-The majority of the people, carried away by the
-campaign of lies and calumny in the Press, were in
-favour of England as against Germany in the war.
-The aristocracy and the wealthiest merchants and
-farmers generally supported the movements that
-were started to provide comforts for the British
-soldiers in the trenches. But we of the Irish
-Volunteers—henceforth in using that term I must
-be understood to mean those who declined to take
-England’s side in the war—stood aloof. It was<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_4"></a>[4]</span>
-then that I came into disfavour with the police for
-my refusal to support their funds for providing
-comforts for soldiers. I was an employee of the
-Great Southern and Western Railway, and I have
-no doubt that they acquainted my superiors with
-what they regarded as my disloyal tendencies.</p>
-
-<p>It is necessary to explain the nature of this police
-force. The Royal Irish Constabulary—a body that
-has now passed into history—was not a police force
-in the sense understood in other countries. It was
-a semi-military force, trained to the use of arms,
-and provided with carbines and rifles. As crime in
-the ordinary sense was practically unknown in
-Ireland, the main duty of these men was to spy
-upon Volunteers and others working for an Independent
-Ireland. They were known to report even
-sermons delivered by Irish priests. In all there
-were then about ten thousand of these police in the
-country, scattered in small garrisons of two to ten
-or twenty men, according to the size of the village
-or town in which they were located. Sprung as they
-were for the most part from Irish Nationalist
-families, they were the brain of England’s garrison
-in Ireland; for they knew the people and they got
-the information without which England’s 40,000
-troops—ignorant alike of the country, its people
-and its history—would have been of little use.</p>
-
-<p>I now resume my narrative. From the outbreak
-of the Great War I still continued my daily work,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_5"></a>[5]</span>
-and took no more active part than any ordinary
-private in the local company of the Irish Volunteers.
-We met and drilled a few times a week, and tried to
-pick up a rifle or a revolver now and again; for the
-Volunteers generally had very few arms at that
-time.</p>
-
-<p>Thus we continued our routine through 1915,
-and up to April, 1916. With the Insurrection of
-1916 I do not propose to deal here, except to say
-that owing to the confusion of orders and counter-orders
-the men of Tipperary got no chance of having
-their mettle tested. I must, however, remark upon
-a coincidence in connection with our plans. Part
-of the duty of the Volunteers of my district was to
-have been the destroying of an important line of
-railway communications. For that purpose we were
-to have seized a quantity of gelignite, then stored
-by the County Council for blasting purposes in a
-neighbouring quarry. That quarry was Soloheadbeg,
-where three years later my comrades and I
-received our baptism of fire.</p>
-
-<p>The Rising of 1916 changed our whole outlook.
-The people who had scoffed and sneered at the
-Sinn Feiners before now swung round to our side.
-But our military organisation had collapsed.
-Thousands of our men all over the country were
-seized and deported to England. The British forces,
-both police and military, seized what arms they
-could lay hands upon. We could no longer drill and<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_6"></a>[6]</span>
-parade in public; our organisation had been solemnly
-proclaimed by the British to be an illegal body. For
-a time we were in confusion and despair. It was
-only for a very short time, however, for within a
-few months those who had escaped the meshes of
-the English military net after the Rising had
-actually held two secret Conventions in Dublin to
-re-organise the Volunteers.</p>
-
-<p>After a few months we set to work again. My
-neighbour and comrade, Sean Treacy, and I decided
-to make a fresh start, and to put our Volunteer
-company at work once more. This time, of course,
-we could not do it openly; we had to work on a
-secret basis. As it was now considered dangerous
-to have anything to do with the Irish Volunteers,
-our numbers were small; but we had better and
-more determined men. For a while, indeed, there
-were only three of us.</p>
-
-<p>We met in a little wood after our work twice
-every week. So we struggled on until May, 1917,
-when our company had grown to be thirteen strong.
-Not a man of us possessed any military knowledge,
-and those in the neighbourhood who could instruct
-us had either joined the British Army, or could
-not be trusted to take the risks. Still we got on
-very well at physical drill, scouting, signalling,
-revolver practice, close-order drill, and such work.
-We had to rely mainly on book-work; and by a<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_7"></a>[7]</span>
-strange irony the books we found most handy were
-the official texts supplied to the British troops, the
-men we were preparing to meet.</p>
-
-<p>Of course, we made mistakes now and again, but
-our earnestness surmounted many difficulties.
-Besides, we were often innocent spectators of British
-drill manœuvres in the locality, and I can assure
-you we kept our eyes and ears open for tips. If the
-chance of picking up an odd revolver came our way,
-we managed to find the money somehow, and added
-to our little supply of munitions.</p>
-
-<p>The best tribute to our success in the art of
-military education was paid by the officials of the
-British Government, who, at a later stage, described
-our little band as the “crack shots of the I.R.A.”
-In passing it is well to observe that we ourselves
-learned that anything in the nature of official statements
-issued from the British military headquarters
-at Parkgate Street, Dublin, or from the civil
-authorities at Dublin Castle, should always be
-digested with a considerable quantity of salt.</p>
-
-<p>It was in August, 1917, that our little handful
-of men made its first public parade. By that time
-the men who had been deported after the Easter
-Week Insurrection had been released, and all over
-the country were beginning to do what we had been
-doing on our own account for nearly a year. In the
-political arena two bye-elections which had occurred
-in Roscommon and Longford, resulted in a triumph<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_8"></a>[8]</span>
-for candidates standing for the Republican cause.
-A few months later still Eamon de Valera, on his
-release from Lewes Jail, had been invited to contest
-a Parliamentary vacancy in East Clare. Standing
-for a Republic, and for declining to attend England’s
-Parliament, he was elected by a huge majority.
-Shortly after his election he addressed an enormous
-meeting in Tipperary town, and we, in the dark
-green uniforms of the Irish Volunteers, acted as a
-bodyguard of the man who was shortly afterwards
-elected President of the Irish Republic. Tipperary
-was then occupied by a garrison of over one thousand
-British soldiers, and as our meeting was held
-almost under the shadow of their barracks we did
-not carry rifles. Instead we carried hurleys. Now,
-we were thus, to the amazement of all peaceful
-people, committing a treble act of defiance against
-England. In the first place, it was a crime to march
-in military formation; secondly, it was an even more
-serious offence to wear uniform; and thirdly, it
-was violating a special proclamation just issued
-against the carrying of hurleys.</p>
-
-<p>That proclamation came about in this way. A
-meeting was being held in Beresford Place, Dublin,
-one Sunday afternoon to protest against the treatment
-of Irish prisoners detained by England. The
-meeting was being addressed by Count Plunkett
-and Cathal Brugha, when Inspector Mills, of the
-Dublin Metropolitan Police, with some of his men<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_9"></a>[9]</span>
-attempted to prevent the holding of this peaceful
-meeting of citizens. The meeting included many
-young men going to or returning from a game of
-hurling—Ireland’s national pastime. In the melee,
-which followed the attempt to break up the meeting
-and to arrest the speakers, the Inspector was struck
-with a hurley, and received injuries from which he
-died. Thereupon, Sir Bryan Mahon, then Commander-in-Chief
-of the British troops in Ireland,
-issued a proclamation making it illegal to carry
-hurleys in public. To realise the absurdity of this
-proclamation one has only to imagine a civilised
-Government declaring it illegal to carry a walking-stick.
-The result was what anybody knowing
-Ireland might expect—hurleys for a time were
-carried in places where their use was scarcely
-known, and the British Government became a
-laughing-stock.</p>
-
-<p>This first military display of ours in Tipperary
-was not a bigger shock to the enemy than it was
-to the local Sinn Feiners; for you must understand
-that by this time public opinion had swung round
-almost completely in favour of Sinn Fein, and we
-were burdened with thousands of recruits, who were
-not in their hearts in favour of any stronger weapons
-than resolutions. On this occasion many of the
-local Sinn Feiners were shocked by our audacity in
-taking the step we did without a solemn discussion,
-a formal proposition to the meeting, and a long-winded<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_10"></a>[10]</span>
-resolution. Such poor souls often hampered
-us later on, but we didn’t mind. The purely political
-wing of Sinn Fein criticised us severely, I believe,
-but we kept silent, just listened to all, and judged
-our men.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_11"></a>[11]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_II">CHAPTER II.<br>
-<span class="smaller">PREPARING FOR THE FRAY.</span></h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>The local police duly informed their headquarters
-of this open defiance of British law in Tipperary.
-They were ordered to arrest the culprits. But, as
-we had no desire to enjoy the hospitality of His
-Britannic Majesty’s jails, Sean Treacy and I went
-“on the run,” that is to say, in order to evade our
-pursuers we had to leave our homes, and keep
-moving from the house of one trusty friend to another.
-But on the Friday following our public
-parade, Sean was arrested by the “Peelers.”
-Members of the R.I.C. were better known in Ireland
-for generations as “Peelers,” a term of contempt
-coined from the name of Sir Robert Peel, who, in
-the early part of the nineteenth century first
-organised the force.</p>
-
-<p>Sean was taken to Cork Jail where he first met
-the brothers Brennan, of Meelick, County Clare,
-who were also unwilling guests of the British jailers.
-The three brothers Brennan—Austin, Paddy and
-Michael—afterwards became famous officers in the<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_12"></a>[12]</span>
-Southern Command of the Irish Republican Army,
-and at present hold high ranks in the Free State
-Army. In passing I should say that in throwing
-men into prison at that time England was really
-giving them an excellent opportunity of exchanging
-views, discussing plans for the future and generally
-turning the prison into a “University for Rebels.”
-Many indeed learned more about drill, and the
-methods of making explosives, while they were in
-prison than they had ever before known.</p>
-
-<p>Sean was eventually tried by court-martial, and
-sentenced to two years imprisonment, but sixteen
-months of the term were remitted. These trials
-were, of course, a mere formality, for our men
-never put up any legal defence, but declined to
-recognise the right of any British tribunal to try
-them. Very often in the early stages our men turned
-the proceedings into a farce by reading a newspaper
-or singing while the evidence was being taken.</p>
-
-<p>With a number of his comrades Sean went on
-hunger-strike as a protest against their treatment.
-It was the first time that Irish political prisoners
-used this weapon, which later became so common.
-They were removed to Mountjoy Prison, Dublin,
-where they continued their hunger-strike until one
-of their number, Commandant Tom Ashe, who had
-taken a leading part in one of the most successful
-exploits in the 1916 Insurrection—died as a result
-of the attempts made by the prison doctor and<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_13"></a>[13]</span>
-officials to feed him forcibly. The tragedy raised
-the whole Irish nation to fury, and the British
-Government realised for the first time that our men
-were in earnest, and ready to die for their principles.
-An agreement was entered into whereby they were
-to be treated as prisoners of war, or as political
-prisoners, and forcible feeding was never again tried.</p>
-
-<p>Meantime I had been busy during my comrade’s
-imprisonment. I organised sections of Volunteers
-in all the surrounding parishes, and as similar efforts
-were being made all over the country our military
-organisation soon became even more perfect than it
-had been in 1916. The British Government, true
-to its traditions, broke the agreement made with the
-prisoners, and Sean and his fellow Volunteers, who
-had now been removed to Dundalk Jail, went on
-hunger-strike again, and secured their release.</p>
-
-<p>All this time the organisation and drilling of the
-Volunteers had been done secretly. Now and again
-the British surprised bodies of men here and there,
-and captured them. But when Sean came home
-he brought back the word that we were to come out
-in the open to drill, even if the British Government
-attempted to arrest every man of us. It was felt
-that if England carried out the policy of wholesale
-arrests she would soon have tens of thousands of
-Irishmen in jail, and would again make herself a
-laughing-stock to the nations.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_14"></a>[14]</span></p>
-
-<p>This was in the early part of 1918. By this time
-we had been getting a fair supply of arms and ammunition
-by channels which may not yet be disclosed.
-It must be remembered that for several years before
-this no firearms were allowed into the country, no
-shops could sell any they had on hands, and even
-sporting cartridges could only be bought by special
-permission of the British military authorities. The
-enemy scented another Insurrection.</p>
-
-<p>They became more alert, and once more Sean
-Treacy was arrested. From the moment of his
-capture he again went on hunger-strike, and was
-joined by Michael Brennan, of Meelick, and by
-Seumas O’Neill, a teacher in Rockwell College,
-both of whom had been arrested three days after
-Sean.</p>
-
-<p>During Sean’s first term of imprisonment I had
-been elected company captain; and now during his
-second term I was further promoted to be
-Commandant of the Battalion, and later still I
-became Brigade Commandant. At that period each
-company elected its own captain, each man having
-a vote, and each man being eligible. The various
-company officers in a battalion area then met, and
-in their turn elected the officers for the battalion,
-and so with the brigade. Truly, it was a democratic
-army.</p>
-
-<p>This was the time when things were going badly
-with England in the war. In March, 1918, began<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_15"></a>[15]</span>
-the great German offensive, when the British lines
-were broken through. In their despair the English
-cried, “Conscript the Irish.” Within a few weeks
-the necessary Act was passed in the British
-Parliament, and all preparations made to force
-Irishmen to fight England’s battle. Sir John
-French, later Lord French, himself an Irishman by
-birth, was British Viceroy in Dublin.</p>
-
-<p>The Irish people were roused to action. Never
-before was there such a fierce determination to
-resist the British plans. Bishops, priests and
-political leaders of all shades of opinion met together
-to face the threat. In the moment of common
-danger all turned instinctively to the Irish Volunteers.
-If resistance was to come it would only come
-from their ranks; for England and Ireland well
-knew that the Irish Volunteers would be wiped out
-to the last man before they would allow a single
-Irishman to be forced into the British Army.</p>
-
-<p>Our trouble was the shortage of arms; of men
-we now had too many. At that time I was Brigade
-Commandant, and we decided to make raids for
-arms. We knew there were plenty of shot-guns,
-revolvers, bayonets, swords, and an occasional rifle
-here and there in private houses, especially in the
-houses of the element loyal to England.</p>
-
-<p>We had very little trouble in collecting the arms.
-Our men in every district had compiled exact information
-regarding every house in which there was<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_16"></a>[16]</span>
-a weapon. We generally went at night and asked
-for the arms. Those who would have liked to refuse
-knew they dare not. Many others gave them
-willingly, and some even sent us word to call for
-them. In no case had we to fire a shot during the
-few weeks we were on this job. We had to do the
-thing as quickly as possible, for as soon as the
-British got wind of it they immediately issued an
-order that all arms should be handed to them for
-safe keeping. We generally got there first, and
-more than once our visit to a house was only a few
-minutes before that of the peelers.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp48" id="illus02" style="max-width: 28.125em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/illus02.jpg" alt="">
- <p class="caption">SEAN TREACY.</p>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_17"></a>[17]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_III">CHAPTER III.<br>
-<span class="smaller">OUR FIRST MUNITION FACTORY.</span></h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>During the summer of 1918 the threat of
-Conscription hung over the land, and young and old
-flocked to the ranks of the Volunteers. It is safe to
-estimate that at that time nine-tenths of all able-bodied
-Irishmen between the ages of sixteen and
-fifty were Volunteers of a kind; while the women
-had their association—Cumann na mBan—and the
-boys had theirs, the Fianna or Boy Scouts, all
-preparing to be our auxiliaries. As most of our
-officers were in jail on one charge or another, we
-who were out were kept working day and night.
-All the time I felt enthusiastic, for I saw in Conscription
-a glorious chance of uniting our own
-people. Though poorly armed we were determined
-to fight; and I believed that if the fight came the
-survivors would be united in their purpose, and to
-me a united Ireland of two million people would be
-preferable to an Ireland of four and a half million
-divided into three or four different factions.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_18"></a>[18]</span></p>
-
-<p>Meantime, though the Conscription Act had
-become law, England, realising our determination,
-postponed its enforcement for a few months, in
-order to give us an opportunity of enlisting voluntarily.
-We went on with our preparations, and
-became all the more daring. Sometimes it was both
-bewildering and amusing to the public to witness
-our manœuvres.</p>
-
-<p>More than once, for example, in sham battles we
-attacked or defended Tipperary town, and actually
-proclaimed certain roads or streets as “military
-areas,” where British soldiers or police, as well as
-civilians were forbidden to enter during the “operations.”
-These operations were carried out by a few
-hundred Volunteers, while the town was occupied
-by a garrison of over a thousand British soldiers. On
-such occasions we had no display of arms, though
-a few of our number might for special reasons have
-their revolvers in their pockets.</p>
-
-<p>It soon became evident that England was wiser
-than to try conscripting us. The threat gradually
-faded away, and so too did our great army! But
-the small number that remained was of more use.
-They meant to fight for Independence. The others
-had been only thinking of saving themselves from
-the trenches of France, and believed with the old
-political leaders that Ireland’s freedom was not
-worth the shedding of a drop of blood. As my
-subsequent actions showed, I held a different view.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_19"></a>[19]</span></p>
-
-<p>At this time, as I have already explained, Sean
-Treacy was enjoying the luxury of a hunger-strike
-in Dundalk Jail. He had been thirteen days without
-food, and we feared they intended to let him
-die. We who were outside felt that we should do
-something without delay. I got a brain wave. Why
-not capture a Peeler, bring him off to a safe hiding-place,
-and put him on forcible hunger-strike, and
-keep him as a hostage for Sean’s safety? I discussed
-the plan with some of the others: they were
-favourably disposed; and as we knew that a few
-policemen regularly patrolled the railway line near
-the Limerick Junction every evening, we decided
-they should be our hostages. All preparations
-were made, and our hiding-place up in the mountainous
-district on the Limerick-Tipperary border
-was selected. Forty men were mobilised to carry
-out the job; but for once the policemen failed to
-patrol the line. Later I found out that the scheme
-had been turned down by the Irish Republican
-Brotherhood, a secret organisation which included
-the most reliable of the Volunteers, and which
-practically controlled the Volunteer Army. After
-that I severed my connection with the I.R.B.</p>
-
-<p>Sean Treacy was released in July, 1918. When
-he came home he was full of plans for organising.
-I had had an overdose of it in the months that he
-was away, and from my experience I was more in<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_20"></a>[20]</span>
-favour of starting a fight at once than of trifling
-further with organising. Sean would have his way,
-and we agreed to differ. I at once started a
-“munition factory” in partnership with my friend
-Patrick Keogh. Many a lively dispute we had on
-various points, some important, some otherwise,
-but as soon as Sean appeared he always poured oil
-on the troubled waters.</p>
-
-<p>I must give you a description of our factory, lest
-the reader be picturing an Irish replica of the Krupp
-works at Essen. The building itself was a small
-rural cottage owned by Tom O’Dwyer, of the Boghole.
-Three rooms were let to Denis O’Dwyer, of
-Dervice. Both he and the owner were well-known
-characters in Tipperary. Our equipment was of the
-crudest kind, for we had no machinery. But it was
-a simple matter to make ordinary black gunpowder.
-We also turned out crude hand grenades, which,
-by the way, had to be ignited by a match before
-being thrown, so you can imagine the risks if these
-had to be brought into action on a windy or a rainy
-night. At this time, too, we collected every available
-cartridge, including sporting cartridges for shot
-guns, and these were refilled with buckshot. Keogh
-and I always quarrelled as to whether it was better
-to put four or eight grains of lead to the cartridge.
-The reader can easily imagine the effect on a poor
-devil who might get the full charge of one of these
-refilled sporting cartridges.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_21"></a>[21]</span></p>
-
-<p>Though most of our raids for arms had been
-carried out by this time, we still found occasion for
-an expedition of the kind from time to time. My
-first encounter with the enemy was one night while
-I was returning from a raid.</p>
-
-<p>A small number of us, including Sean Treacy,
-were cycling home from Tipperary, when my
-bicycle went flat, and I had to dismount to pump it
-up. I ordered the others to go ahead, saying I
-would overtake them. On their way they passed
-the police barrack on the outskirts of the town. It
-would seem that the police heard them passing the
-barrack, and came out to have a look round; or
-else they were actually on the road when the men
-passed, and, with their usual courage, were afraid
-to confront the six Volunteers. Anyhow, I neither
-heard nor saw anybody when I had pumped up my
-bicycle, until I was suddenly pulled off by a burly
-Peeler. In my left hand I carried a small iron bar
-for forcing locks, so I tried its effect on his head.
-The bar got the better of the argument. I then
-drew my revolver, and covered the group of
-peelers. “Surrender, or I shoot,” shouted their
-officer. “Put up your hands, or I’ll shoot the lot
-of you,” I replied. They complied with my order.</p>
-
-<p>I then stepped backwards, rolling my bicycle,
-and still keeping my gun levelled at the peelers,
-until I reached a laneway. I dashed up the lane,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_22"></a>[22]</span>
-mounted my bicycle, and escaped from the town
-not a moment too soon. The alarm was quickly
-raised, and the whole town was surrounded, and
-every street and lane searched. But I was safe in
-my factory with my comrades.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_23"></a>[23]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_IV">CHAPTER IV.<br>
-<span class="smaller">OUR FACTORY BLOWN UP.</span></h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>My most exciting experience was to see our
-munition factory blown into the sky. I had a narrow
-escape, for I was within fifty yards of the door; but
-my partner, Paddy Keogh, had an even more
-wonderful escape, for he was actually on the
-premises when the explosion occurred.</p>
-
-<p>We never knew what brought about the havoc.
-I had gone out to a well to fetch a can of water,
-for necessity compelled us to do all our own cooking
-and cleaning. As I was returning to the cottage, I
-saw the roof leaving it, and simultaneously came the
-roar of the bursting grenades. In a moment the
-house was in flames. It was a desperate situation.
-My one thought was to save my comrade, if indeed
-he was not already beyond human aid.</p>
-
-<p>I dropped the can of water and rushed to the
-house. I dashed up the stairs and found Paddy
-lying in the room either dead or unconscious. I
-raised him in my arms and carried him with a heavy
-heart through the rain of shrapnel down the stairs<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_24"></a>[24]</span>
-and out of the house, and away to the banks of the
-Multeen, a little stream not far away from the house.
-My heart was wrung with anguish as I laid him by
-the stream and rushed for my can to throw some
-of the fresh clean water over his pale countenance.
-Before I had time to try the effects of a second
-supply, Paddy was on his feet and rushing for me—very
-much alive!</p>
-
-<p>“You damn fool, do you want to drown me?”
-he shouted. And then he added a lot more that I
-prefer not to repeat.</p>
-
-<p>The destruction of our house was a heavy blow,
-and for a while we mourned the loss of our little
-factory and its contents.</p>
-
-<p>My little capital was gone now, and the
-O’Dwyers had to be compensated for the loss of
-their home. I thought out my plans, and gathered
-together all the tradesmen in our little army, and
-put them to work. In a few days the cottage was
-repaired, and looked none the worse.</p>
-
-<p>By the way, the Black and Tans, at a later stage
-wreaked vengeance on it more effectively than the
-explosion of the grenades.</p>
-
-<p>O’Dwyer’s house was now out of bounds for my
-work, but in a very short time I got another house
-from a good typical Tipperary man, Jer. O’Connell.
-Here I was more successful, because I took greater<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_25"></a>[25]</span>
-precautions with my work. I guarded against
-another explosion; but other circumstances compelled
-us to evacuate it within a few months.</p>
-
-<p>During our stay in this house our condition was
-far from happy. Of bodily comforts we had none.
-We had neither bed nor bed coverings, and worse
-still, we had no money wherewith to buy them. We
-got a loan of a couple of blankets from neighbours,
-and we commandeered some straw from the nearest
-farmer. First we spread out the straw on the ground
-and covered it over with one blanket. We then
-spread over us a lot of old newspapers (which we
-carefully collected every day), and over these we
-placed our second blanket. The paper was excellent
-for keeping us warm, and by not turning out of one
-position we usually got about three hours’ sleep.
-As soon as we moved, the paper tore and the cold
-quickly worked its way through. Still greater discomfort
-than our bed was caused by the presence
-of mice! The little beggars were very numerous
-and very daring. Many a night we were wakened
-by their nibbling at our hair. Whenever I
-protested, in action as well as in words, Sean Treacy
-would plead—“Ah, the poor little creatures! They
-might as well be happy when we can’t. Don’t be
-vexed with them, Dan, even if they take a little of
-your black hair.” I argued that it was enough to
-have the peelers after us, and that if the mice had
-any decency they ought to leave us alone.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_26"></a>[26]</span></p>
-
-<p>For some time things went on smoothly, and our
-work progressed pleasantly. Then my partner,
-Keogh, left me, and I was joined by Sean Hogan—whose
-life for the next five years was to be very
-closely linked up with mine.</p>
-
-<p>The two Seans and myself seemed to have but
-one mind—I have never had any difference with
-Hogan up to the present day, and never had an
-angry word with my dear old comrade—Sean
-Treacy—up to the day of his death.</p>
-
-<p>It was during our sojourn in O’Connell’s house
-that we were joined by Seumas Robinson, later
-elected Deputy for East Tipperary and Waterford.
-Robinson, who had lived a good part of his life in
-Glasgow, at once became a fast friend. The four
-of us—Treacy, Hogan, Robinson and I—seemed
-perfectly balanced in temperament, age, outlook
-and hopes. Many an ambitious plan we made, and
-many a dream we dreamed of the Free Ireland for
-which alone we now lived and worked.</p>
-
-<p>After a few months Jer. O’Connell gave us notice
-to quit. We had no tenant’s rights, no protecting
-Act of Parliament, and no alternative but to depart.
-Being “on the run” we dare not go looking for
-lodgings in the ordinary way, even if we had money
-to pay. The peelers knew every hole and corner
-in their district, and were ever on the prowl for
-Irishmen known to have little love for English rule.</p>
-
-<p>But good luck came to our rescue.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_27"></a>[27]</span></p>
-
-<p>Some cousins of Sean Hogan’s had a little dairy
-or outhouse, which they generally placed at our
-disposal. Here we enjoyed the luxury of bed,
-clothing and other little comforts, but our meals
-were few and far between. I myself lived for two
-weeks in the “Dairy” on rice boiled in water,
-without either sugar or milk. This abstemious life
-was not new to me. For months while I was
-organising I used to fast from breakfast to breakfast,
-and many a night I walked twenty miles for a
-bed, or even a shake-down.</p>
-
-<p>The “Dairy” did not escape the attention of
-the enemy, who subsequently gave it the name of
-“The Tin House.”</p>
-
-<p>We were terribly handicapped for want of money;
-not indeed for personal comforts, which seldom
-troubled us, but to get round.</p>
-
-<p>On one occasion Sean Treacy and I cycled to
-Dublin to get some arms. We had no money for
-train fares, and it was essential that we should reach
-Dublin by 6 o’clock on a particular Monday evening.
-There was a Brigade Council meeting fixed for
-Sunday night—at which we were bound to attend.
-That meant that we could not leave Tipperary till
-about 8 o’clock on Monday morning. We covered
-the 110 miles, and we reached Dublin in good time.
-Of course we were very hungry, but once we
-reached the house of our good friend Phil Shanahan—himself
-a Tipperary man, and later a Republican<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_28"></a>[28]</span>
-Deputy for Dublin—all our troubles disappeared.
-Then and after we never wanted for anything while
-Phil was about.</p>
-
-<p>We had to remain in Dublin until the following
-Saturday before we could conclude our business.
-Here another difficulty arose. We were due back
-in Tipperary at an officers’ meeting the same
-Saturday at 6 p.m. We left Phil Shanahan’s house
-at 8.30 in the morning. We carried six revolvers,
-five hundred rounds of .303 (rifle) ammunition, and
-half a dozen grenades, and we were the only two
-who were punctual at the meeting.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_29"></a>[29]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_V">CHAPTER V.<br>
-<span class="smaller">THE POLITICAL LANDSLIDE.</span></h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>In December, 1918, came the event which gave
-the Irish Volunteers the moral sanction for their
-subsequent activities—the General Election.</p>
-
-<p>It is important to bear in mind the position at
-that time. No General Election had been held in
-Ireland for seven years. In that interval the vast
-majority of the people had completely changed their
-views. They no longer had any faith in England,
-or in the efficacy of sending their hundred representatives
-to the British Parliament, where they were
-in a helpless minority, and where their voices were
-scarcely heard. England’s treachery on the Home
-Rule question and her threat of Conscription had
-cost her dearly. But the greatest force of all in the
-awakening was the Rising of 1916. That episode
-had put new life and heart into the people. The
-bye-elections, to which I have already referred had
-given the people their only opportunity, so far, to
-indicate the growing desire for liberty, complete and
-untrammelled.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_30"></a>[30]</span></p>
-
-<p>On November 11th, 1918, the Great War
-virtually ended with the Armistice. A week later
-it was announced that the long delayed General
-Election was fixed for the 14th December. Sinn
-Fein got its opportunity, for that election was to be
-the first ever held under the British Constitution on
-the basis of manhood suffrage, and we knew well
-that the young men of Ireland would vote overwhelmingly
-for our cause.</p>
-
-<p>But we had to educate and organise. The name
-and policy of Sinn Fein were still grossly misunderstood.
-The public did not clearly realise the
-difference between the political body, Sinn Fein,
-and the military organisation—the Irish Volunteers.
-The Insurrection of 1916 was commonly called the
-“Sinn Fein Rising,” and our Volunteers were
-spoken of as the “Sinn Fein Volunteers.” Even
-the Republican Tricolour—the Green, White and
-Orange of the Young Ireland Party of 1848, and
-of the Fenians of the next generation—was called
-the “Sinn Fein Flag.” But misnomers did not
-trouble us very much, for the Sinn Fein body had
-been adjusting its programme to suit Republican
-ideals. And now when Sinn Fein clubs were springing
-up in every parish, it was quite usual to find
-that the President or the Secretary of the club was
-also captain of the local Volunteer corps. The
-majority of the younger men in the Sinn Fein<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_31"></a>[31]</span>
-Political Organisation were also Volunteers; and the
-Volunteers were also members of the Sinn Fein
-club.</p>
-
-<p>During the period of the Election the people went
-Sinn Fein mad. We had most of the clergy with us,
-and the earnestness and enthusiasm of our speakers
-and organisers swept the country. The political
-wing of the Republican cause spread like wild-fire;
-but our army was gradually dwindling. While we
-lamented this decay on the military side, we saw
-the necessity of making an enormous success of the
-elections, hoping to restore our army to its proper
-strength when the election was over. So we threw
-ourselves heart and soul into the contest, and
-worked night and day for the Republican candidates.
-We didn’t leave a dead wall or a cross-roads
-in the country that we did not decorate with
-appeals to “Rally to Sinn Fein,” “Vote for the
-Republic,” “Stand by the men of 1916.” Such
-were the rallying calls addressed to the people
-during those few critical weeks. No secret was
-made of our policy. Every Republican was pledged
-never to take his seat in the British Parliament, but
-to work at home in Ireland for the establishment and
-recognition of the Republic.</p>
-
-<p>We knocked plenty of fun out of the election.
-Alas! many of those who worked hardest in those
-days have passed under the sod since. Our workers
-in Tipperary included Dinny Lacy, killed during the<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_32"></a>[32]</span>
-Civil War in his native county; Sean Duffy and
-Paddy Maloney (whose father was our successful
-candidate), later killed in an encounter with the
-British not far from Soloheadbeg; Sean Allen, who
-was executed by the British in Cork Jail; “Sparkie”
-Breen, also killed in the Civil War. But these
-memories only serve to remind one of the fine fellows
-we have lost. Anyhow we won every seat in
-Munster, except Waterford City. Leinster and
-Connaught did equally well, and in Ulster we won
-several seats. The net result was that of the one
-hundred and five constituencies, seventy-three had
-repudiated British rule and plumped for an Irish
-Republic.</p>
-
-<p>A month later, on January 21st, 1919, these
-elected representatives of the vast majority of the
-Irish people met in public session in Dublin;
-formally proclaimed the Republic, and established
-a Government. The same day, and almost at the
-same hour, our little handful of Volunteers were
-striking the first blow since the formal repudiation
-of British authority by the people. But let me
-explain how it came about.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp100" id="illus03" style="max-width: 43.75em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/illus03.jpg" alt="">
- <p class="caption">SCENE OF SOLOHEADBEG AMBUSH.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>After the election we had more time to review
-our position. The results had cleared the air; the
-people had by an overwhelming verdict given us
-moral sanction to drive the British forces out of
-Ireland. But the election work had had a serious
-effect on our army. Many had ceased to be soldiers<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_33"></a>[33]</span>
-and had become politicians. There was danger of
-disintegration, a danger which had been growing
-since the threat of Conscription disappeared a few
-months earlier. I was convinced that some sort of
-action was absolutely necessary. Over and over
-again I discussed the matter with Sean Treacy. I
-knew that if we once showed them the way, there
-were plenty of fine fellows on whom we could rely.
-Sooner than we expected the opportunity came.</p>
-
-<p>Let me introduce my readers to the first authentic
-account of the affair known as “The Soloheadbeg
-Outbreak,” or, as the hostile Press persistently
-titled it, “The Soloheadbeg Murders”; for those
-who read the newspaper versions of our struggle
-with England must bear in mind that every newspaper
-in Ireland was hostile to our policy, and so
-remained to the end, though a few of them lost
-their bitterness towards us as the campaign
-progressed. It must also be remembered that even
-when the “Great War” ended the British Press
-Censorship was continued in Ireland for over a
-year.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_34"></a>[34]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_VI">CHAPTER VI.<br>
-<span class="smaller">SOLOHEADBEG.</span></h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>At the beginning of January, 1919, we received
-information to the effect that a quantity of explosives
-was to be conveyed to Soloheadbeg Quarry
-for blasting purposes. The consignment, we knew,
-would be guarded by armed policemen, as was
-always the rule at that time.</p>
-
-<p>I spoke to Sean about it. “Here is our chance,”
-I said, “let us start the war soon, or the army will
-lose heart.” I knew we had but a very small
-number of men with determination enough for such
-a job, but I knew too that the number would
-increase with time; and, in any case, it is quality,
-not quantity, that counts in guerilla warfare.</p>
-
-<p>We discussed the proposal for a long time.
-Finally we decided to disarm the guard and seize
-the explosives, for, as Sean said, there was nothing
-we needed more at that time than guns and explosives.
-We made a careful survey of the locality.
-We selected the spot for our first ambush. We
-knew every inch of the ground, we had been<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_35"></a>[35]</span>
-born and reared in the vicinity, and Sean’s own
-farmhouse was not a stone’s throw from the
-quarry.</p>
-
-<p>Soloheadbeg is a small townland about two and
-a half miles from Tipperary town, and less than a
-mile from the Limerick Junction. The quarry
-stands on an eminence on a little by-road. Farmhouses
-and cottages are dotted here and there in
-the neighbourhood, though there is no village
-nearer than Donohill, a mile and a half distant. It
-was in this plain, overshadowed by the gigantic
-figure of Galteemore away to the south, that Brian
-Boru and his brother Mahon fought their first great
-battle with the Danes in 968, when Brian with his
-gallant army of Tipperary men and Clare men
-routed the invaders, and never ceased from the
-pursuit till he reached Limerick twenty miles away
-and burned the town over their heads. The right
-wing of his army swept across the hills where the
-quarry now stands, as the defeated Danes fled to
-their stronghold.</p>
-
-<p>The quarry itself stands on the right, down the
-little by-road. There is a high ditch on each side
-of the road by which it is approached from
-Tipperary, and here and there is the further cover
-afforded by thick whitethorn bushes. I should
-explain that what we call a “ditch” in Tipperary
-is really a bank, or dike.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_36"></a>[36]</span></p>
-
-<p>Unfortunately our information regarding the date
-of the arrival of the explosives was not quite
-correct. We expected it on January 16th, but it
-did not come till five days later. During these five
-days we waited in readiness for the attempt. Our
-men had left their homes without giving any indication
-of their plans. After three days I had to
-send all home except eight. We had neither provisions
-to feed them nor money to purchase the
-provisions.</p>
-
-<p>And so the nine of us who remained were
-watching and waiting. The men who were with me
-were—Sean Treacy, Seumas Robinson, Sean
-Hogan, Tim Crowe, Patrick O’Dwyer, of Hollyford;
-Michael Ryan, of Grange (Donohill); Patrick
-McCormick, and Jack O’Meara, Tipperary.</p>
-
-<p>Our chief concern during these days of waiting
-was to avoid attracting attention. We did not want
-to be seen by any of the people in the locality.
-Those were nearly all employed at the quarry, and
-as the times were then disturbed enough any report
-that strangers were hanging around the neighbourhood
-might have completely upset our plans. Every
-morning before daybreak we went as noiselessly as
-possible to our hiding place, there to remain under
-cover, but ever on the alert, while one of our
-number acted as scout from the by-road to the
-main road from Tipperary, along which the peelers
-were bound to approach. There we waited in<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_37"></a>[37]</span>
-silence until 2 o’clock in the afternoon, and then
-we abandoned our position, knowing they would not
-come later, as they liked to be back in town before
-darkness set in. We spent the night at my own
-home, where my mother prepared breakfast each
-morning about 4 o’clock. On the fifth morning she
-declared, “If you don’t do something to-day you
-can get your own breakfast to-morrow.”</p>
-
-<p>At last came the fateful morning of January 21st,
-1919, the day that was to see our country rejoice
-at the first meeting of the Parliament of Ireland,
-the first Dail Eireann setting up the Government of
-the Republic, and sending its message to the free
-nations of the earth.</p>
-
-<p>We had taken our place behind the ditch, and
-had spent many weary hours waiting and watching.
-We were quietly discussing the great event that
-was to take place in Dublin that day. Our scout
-was away with his eyes fixed on the Tipperary road.
-Suddenly our conversation was interrupted by our
-scout. Dashing towards us from his look-out, his
-eyes sparkling with the light of battle, and a grim
-smile on his countenance, he whispered the word
-of warning—“They’re coming, they’re coming!”</p>
-
-<p>Every man knew his post. For days we had
-thought of nothing but the position we were now in.
-If any of our number felt nervous or excited he
-showed little outward sign of it. Like a flash every
-soldier manned his post. Our hour of trial was at<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_38"></a>[38]</span>
-hand; we were to face the enemy, with life or death
-in the balance. And incidentally we were to open
-another phase in the long fight for the freedom of
-our country.</p>
-
-<p>Our scout was again on the alert, and again he
-returned to report. This time he gave us the actual
-distance, and he told us their number.</p>
-
-<p>Nearer and nearer they come. In the still clear
-air we hear the sound of the horses’ hoofs, and the
-rumbling of a heavy cart over the rough hilly road.</p>
-
-<p>That day I did not feel the same coolness that I
-afterwards strove to develop. My nerves were
-highly strung; I realised what we were doing, and
-I foresaw the consequences whether our plans
-succeeded or failed.</p>
-
-<p>We were facing men trained to the use of firearms,
-especially disciplined for such emergencies as
-this. In all probability they had but just completed
-the special course in bomb-throwing, which had
-lately been added to the accomplishments of the
-R.I.C. My little squad had little experience in
-the practical use of firearms. We had never been
-in a position to fire one round of ball-cartridge for
-the sake of practice. We had often chaffed one
-another about this want of experience, and jokingly
-referred to the probable consequences if our nerves
-got jumpy when the real time came. But we always
-brushed aside these idle fears, and maintained a<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_39"></a>[39]</span>
-calm and cheerful exterior, consoling ourselves with
-the thought, “We’re Irish anyhow, and all Irishmen
-are fighters by nature.”</p>
-
-<p>But now the hour had come. From my point of
-vantage I shot a hurried glance down the road as
-the party approached. The driver and the County
-Council employee who was to take over the explosives
-walked beside the horses. Two policemen
-in their black uniforms were also on foot carrying
-rifles in their hands. They were a little distance
-behind the cart.</p>
-
-<p>Only a moment before the blood was rushing
-madly through my veins; now when I saw them
-actually at hand all my nervousness disappeared,
-and I felt cool and strong again. I believed I could
-fight a dozen of these enemy forces all by
-myself. For the men who were now approaching
-had deserted their country, and were the spies and
-hirelings of her enemy. Nearer still they come.
-They talk in low tones. They are almost under the
-shadow of our revolvers.</p>
-
-<p>“Hands up!” The cry comes from our men as
-with one voice. “Hands up!” But no! They
-seize their rifles, and with the best military movement
-bring them to the ready. They were Irishmen,
-too, and would rather die than surrender.</p>
-
-<p>Again and again we called upon them to put up
-their hands. We would have preferred that they<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_40"></a>[40]</span>
-should surrender without bloodshed, but they were
-dogged and stubborn, and now ’twas our lives or
-theirs.</p>
-
-<p>Their fingers were on the triggers. Another
-appeal on our side would be useless—perhaps too
-late for ourselves.</p>
-
-<p>Quick and sure our volleys rang out. The aim
-was true. The two policemen were dead.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_41"></a>[41]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_VII">CHAPTER VII.<br>
-<span class="smaller">OUR ESCAPE.</span></h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Now began our career of real excitement. If
-we had disarmed the police without firing a shot the
-thing would not have been so serious. But the
-shots had alarmed the countryside. In a moment
-men and women would appear at every doorway.
-On the roadside were the two terrified civilians,
-James Godfrey, the driver of the cart, and Patrick
-Flynn, the County Council employee. Within an
-hour hundreds of police and military would be
-scouring the countryside for us. Henceforth I
-realised we were to be outlawed rapparees with a
-price on our heads.</p>
-
-<p>But it was a time for action. We seized the rifles
-and equipment of the police, mounted the cart, and
-drove away with our booty. The cart contained
-more than a hundred-weight of gelignite, but thirty
-electric detonators which Flynn had in his pocket
-escaped us, as we learned a week later.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_42"></a>[42]</span></p>
-
-<p>Never was a poor horse called upon to give such
-gallant service in a dash for life and liberty. Sean
-Hogan held the reins; Sean Treacy and I sat
-behind. The others of the party had been ordered
-to escape in different directions, and all got clear
-away.</p>
-
-<p>On we sped, urging our poor horse to greater
-speed, while school children and farmworkers
-watched us in amazement as we went by.</p>
-
-<p>We were heading for Donaskeigh. For a great
-part of our journey not a word was spoken. Treacy
-was the first to break the silence. He spoke in the
-same cool tones that he might have used if he were
-sitting round a fire discussing a game of cards.</p>
-
-<p>“Do you remember, Dan, when we were
-reading about explosives? The book says that they
-are dangerous if frozen, or if they get jolted?”</p>
-
-<p>This reminder did not add to our peace of mind,
-for if ever explosives got a jolting ours did. The
-road was rough and uneven; heaps of loose stones
-were scattered along the way; the cart was one of
-the ordinary farmyard type, heavily and roughly
-built, and without springs.</p>
-
-<p>But on we had to go until we reached the spot
-where we had decided to hide our booty. There we
-quickly deposited the gelignite, all except two sticks
-which I kept for a decoy. These I threw on the
-roadside at the spot where we eventually abandoned
-the horse. For months later, day after day, police<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_43"></a>[43]</span>
-and soldiers actually walked over our dug-out, but
-never discovered it. They had been deceived by the
-two loose sticks, and kept themselves warm by
-digging trenches all over the country, but their
-search was in vain.</p>
-
-<p>When we had hidden the booty our trouble began.
-The poor old horse could go no further. Besides
-we had no desire to keep him much longer, for he
-would only furnish the enemy with a clue to getting
-on our track later. We left him on the roadside and
-went our way. A few hours later that district was
-spotted with khaki figures, for the horse was found
-that evening at Aileen Bridge, about four miles from
-Tipperary town on the main road to Thurles.</p>
-
-<p>Difficulties were now looming up before our eyes.
-Tipperary was no longer safe. The weather was
-against us. We were tired with the excitement of
-the day, and the suspense of the days before, but
-we could not think of rest for a long while yet. The
-weather was intensely cold, and, to make things
-worse, it started to snow. That not only added to
-our difficulties, but there was the danger that if the
-snow lodged we might easily be traced.</p>
-
-<p>At Ryan’s Cross, near Aileen Bridge, we
-abandoned the horse. Then we turned to the right.
-Previously we had been going north, but now we
-went south-east, and gradually south towards where
-the Galtee mountains towered above us. We walked
-forty miles over these mountains and valleys, for<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_44"></a>[44]</span>
-like many before us we felt that they would give us
-hope and shelter. All through the ages since
-Geoffrey Keating penned his famous <i>History</i> when
-there was a price on his head, the Galtee mountains
-and the Glen of Aherlow have been the first refuge
-of the Tipperary felon.</p>
-
-<p>We had travelled four miles after leaving the
-horse when we took our first rest at Mrs.
-Fitzgerald’s, of Rathclogheen, near Thomastown.
-There we had our first square meal since my mother
-gave us breakfast early that morning, and right
-heartily we enjoyed the ham and eggs and tea our
-hostess set before us. It was in that house that our
-famous countryman, Father Mathew, was born.</p>
-
-<p>But we could spare no time for lingering; we had
-yet to put many more miles between us and Soloheadbeg.
-We resumed our journey towards the
-mountains. At Keville’s Cross we crossed the Cahir
-and Tipperary Road. The cold was bitter, and the
-wind was piercing. The only other living things we
-saw out in the open were two mountain goats,
-spancelled together near the cross-roads. Several
-times we lost our way after that. We dare not call
-to a strange wayside farmhouse, for at that time the
-people had not learned to keep a shut mouth. At
-one point Sean Treacy fell into a drain about twenty
-feet deep, and we thought he was killed. When
-we got him out we found he was little the worse for
-his fall, and he assured us he would fire another shot<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_45"></a>[45]</span>
-before handing in his gun. We continued our
-journey towards the summit. Once when we had
-traversed the Glen and climbed Galteemore’s
-rugged slopes from the Tipperary side, we lost our
-bearings on the top. In the height of the summer
-you will find it chilly enough on Galteemore. You
-can imagine how we felt that evening in the heart
-of winter. It had taken us three hours to climb, but
-after all our exertions we wandered back to the
-two goats—back to our starting-point. In despair
-we abandoned all hope of crossing the mountain.
-As Sean Hogan said then, “’tis all very well for
-poets sitting in easy chairs at the fireside to write
-about the beauties of mountains, but if they had to
-climb them as we had, hungry and cold, they would
-be in no mood to appreciate the beauties of nature.”</p>
-
-<p>When we returned to Keville’s Cross we decided
-on a new plan. We crossed on to the railway line,
-and determined to face for Cahir. It was lucky we
-did so. We had not gone many miles along the line
-when we saw the lights of the military lorries that
-were scouring the roads in search of us. Had we
-been down on the road we could never have avoided
-them.</p>
-
-<p>A railway is a tiresome road to travel, even at
-ordinary times. For us in our condition that night
-it was cruel. Yet we had to keep on. Once in the
-thick darkness I saw a black figure a few paces
-ahead. I was walking in front and promptly levelled<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_46"></a>[46]</span>
-my revolver, with the order “hands up!” The
-figure remained motionless, having apparently
-halted at my command. I advanced, with my gun
-still levelled, and walked into a railway signpost
-with the warning, “Trespassers will be prosecuted.”
-Unhappy though our plight was, the boys laughed
-at my mistake, and I had to laugh myself with
-them.</p>
-
-<p>A little farther on Sean Hogan asked us to stop
-for a moment, as his boot was feeling loose. Sean
-Treacy tied the lace, but he did not travel much
-farther till he again complained that it was loose.
-Sean stopped to examine it, and found that the
-whole boot was practically worn away by the
-rocks and boulders. Only a bit of a sole and the
-laced portion of the upper remained.</p>
-
-<p>All the time Sean Treacy tried to keep our spirits
-from drooping. Several times we asked him how
-far more was it to Cahir, and always got the reply,
-“the next turn of the road.” He was right, of
-course; but as the road and the railway which runs
-parallel to it are an almost perfect straight line for
-three miles, the next turn was a long way off. Now
-and again we were so exhausted that we used to
-stand and rest our heads against the ditch by the
-railway side to take a sleep—or what we persuaded
-ourselves was a sleep—for five minutes.</p>
-
-<p>At last we reached Cahir. We were now as near
-to absolute collapse as men could be. We were<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_47"></a>[47]</span>
-becoming desperate. For the first time we had to
-assume that outward coolness, and take that risk
-which later became almost part of our daily routine.
-We walked right through the town of Cahir, a
-garrison town on the main road from Limerick to
-Clonmel and Waterford, and only fifteen miles from
-Soloheadbeg. But we had to take the risk. Our
-blood was almost congealed with cold, we were
-ravenously hungry, and there was little life left in
-us. But we knew one good friend on whom we
-could rely for a night’s shelter. That friend was
-Mrs. Tobin, of Tincurry House, near Cahir. I
-shall never forget her kindness to us that night and
-to others of the boys later. The British
-afterwards bombed and destroyed the house in daylight
-as an “official reprisal” for the shooting of
-District-Inspector Potter, an incident to which I
-shall refer in a later chapter.</p>
-
-<p>We got to bed the first time for a week. The
-three of us were in the same plight. Excitement,
-cold and exhaustion all combined to make sleep
-impossible for us. But we lay limp for four hours,
-and in this way we got some rest for our weary
-limbs.</p>
-
-<p>We got up full of anxiety to hear the news.
-Since we left Soloheadbeg we had spoken to nobody
-and had not seen a newspaper. Sure enough, there
-were the big splash headings, just as we anticipated,
-announcing this “Tipperary Outrage,” “Fearful<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_48"></a>[48]</span>
-Crime,” “Murder of Two Policemen,” and such
-like. We saw, too, an account of the inquest on the
-dead men, Constable McDonnell and O’Connell.
-Most of the news of the incident was absolutely
-wrong, as it often was later on. We learned, too,
-that two young men had been arrested on suspicion,
-but neither had anything to do with the affair, and
-they were released in a few days. Two schoolboys
-from the locality, Matthew Hogan, aged fifteen,
-a brother of Sean’s; and Timothy Connors, aged
-eleven, were also arrested by the British, as they
-were supposed to have seen us. The father of the
-boy Connors had been a workman employed on the
-farm of Sean Treacy’s mother. Both boys were
-detained for months in an effort to get them to
-give information, and, in the case of Connors, a
-great legal action ensued, which resulted in a verdict
-against the Commandant of the R.I.C. Headquarters
-for illegal detention.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp48" id="illus04" style="max-width: 28.125em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/illus04.jpg" alt="">
- <p class="caption">POLICE NOTICE.</p>
- <p class="caption">£1000 REWARD</p>
- <p class="caption">WANTED FOR MURDER IN IRELAND.</p>
- <p class="caption">DANIEL BREEN</p>
- <p class="caption">(calls himself Commandant of the Third
- Tipperary Brigade).</p>
- <p class="caption2">Age 27, 5 feet 7 inches in height, bronzed complexion,
- dark hair (long in front), grey eyes, short
- cocked nose, stout build, weight about 12 stone,
- clean shaven; sulky bulldog appearance; looks rather
- like a blacksmith coming from work; wears cap
- pulled well down over face.</p>
- <p class="caption2">The above reward will be paid by the Irish Authorities, to any
- person not in the Public Service who may give information
- resulting in his arrest.</p>
- <p class="caption">Information to be given at any Police Station.</p>
- <p class="caption">S.O. 14591. (G. 40). 5,000. 11.20.—A. T. &amp; Co., Ltd.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>Meantime our episode at Soloheadbeg had had
-its first effects. South Tipperary, that is half the
-county, had been proclaimed a “military area.”
-That, for all practical purposes, meant martial law.
-Fairs, markets and meetings were prohibited;
-military reinforcements were rushed into the district
-and garrisons were established at villages which had
-never before sheltered a British soldier. Night and
-day they patrolled the roads and scoured the fields.
-Our little band had unmasked England. She had<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_49"></a>[49]</span>
-now to come out in the open and let the world see
-that she held Ireland by naked force, and by force
-alone.</p>
-
-<p>We also learned that a reward of £1,000 was
-offered for any information that would lead to our
-capture. A few months later this offer was increased
-to £10,000. Nobody earned it nor indeed tried to
-earn it, except a few members of the R.I.C. They
-failed, and most of them never tried a second time.</p>
-
-<p>These are the plain, unvarnished facts concerning
-the first shots fired after the Insurrection of 1916.
-These shots were the first of a series that were to
-bring Ireland’s name once more before the world,
-and to make the nations look on in admiration at
-Ireland’s fight for freedom.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_50"></a>[50]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_VIII">CHAPTER VIII.<br>
-<span class="smaller">HELPED BY THE BRITISH.</span></h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>We spent two nights in Mrs. Tobin’s house.
-Then we went to Ned McGrath’s, of Tincurry, and
-from there we were taken by Ned to Gorman’s, of
-Burncourt Castle. We then arranged to go to
-Ryan’s of Tubrid, and sent on word that they might
-expect us. But after sending word we changed our
-minds and did not go to Tubrid; and lucky it was
-for us—or for somebody else. Just at the time we
-had expected to be there the house was surrounded
-by eight peelers, and Ryan himself was arrested.</p>
-
-<p>We decided to go on to Mitchelstown in County
-Cork, at the other end of the Galtees. We spent
-a night in O’Brien’s, of Ballagh, and while we were
-there a strange thing occurred. We were sleeping
-upstairs when strange voices aroused us. We looked
-out and saw several peelers just entering the house.
-We at once got ready for a fight, expecting to see
-them mounting the stairs at any moment. But they
-never came. In a few minutes they took their<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_51"></a>[51]</span>
-departure. Then we learned that the object of their
-visit was to ascertain if the owner of the house had
-paid the licence for his dogs.</p>
-
-<p>Finally we reached Mitchelstown where we met
-Christie Ryan, who welcomed us and gave us the
-shelter of his house. While we were there we saw
-eight armed policemen pass the door. They
-were guarding a little packet of blasting powder.
-Evidently the Soloheadbeg affair had taught them
-to take no chances, and now they had quadrupled
-the escort.</p>
-
-<p>Later we came across into East Limerick, where
-Ned O’Brien, of Galbally, put us up, and then we
-travelled farther to the Maloneys, of Lackelly,
-the scene of a great battle with the British two
-years later. At Lackelly we stayed about a week.</p>
-
-<p>But you must understand our position all this
-time since the affair at Soloheadbeg. We were still
-within a radius of ten miles of the scene. Police and
-military were scouring the countryside for us,
-searching houses, ditches and woods. The clergy,
-the public and the press had all condemned our
-action. Our only consoling thought was that so
-were the men of ’98, and the Fenians of ’67, and
-then the men of 1916 condemned in their day, and
-we knew that as the cause of these men had been
-vindicated, so too would our cause when the scales
-fell from the people’s eyes. At this time, however,
-scarce a word would be heard in our defence. Our<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_52"></a>[52]</span>
-point of view was not even to be listened to. The
-people had voted for a Republic, but now they
-seemed to have abandoned us who tried to bring
-that Republic nearer, and who had taken them at
-their word.</p>
-
-<p>Our former friends shunned us. They preferred
-the drawing-room as their battle ground, and the
-political resolution rather than the gun as their
-weapon. We had heard the gospel of freedom
-preached to us; we believed in it, we wanted to be
-free, and we were prepared to give our lives as proof
-of the faith that was in us. But those who preached
-the gospel were not prepared to practise it.</p>
-
-<p>Even from the Irish Volunteers or the Irish
-Republican Army, as it has now come to be called,
-we got no support. Ned O’Brien and James Scanlan
-of Galbally, Paddy Ryan of Doon, and Davy Burke
-of Emly, certainly stood by us; but they were the
-exceptions.</p>
-
-<p>When the news of the Soloheadbeg affair became
-public, a meeting was actually summoned in
-Tipperary town by a man who should have been
-our friend. His purpose was to dissociate Sinn
-Fein from the incident, and to denounce us for our
-action. The meeting was, however, called off by
-another prominent man. A local clergyman in a
-sermon, in which he denounced us as murderers,
-said that it used to be the custom to say, “Where
-Tipperary leads Ireland follows,” but he hoped this<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_53"></a>[53]</span>
-would not be so in the case of Soloheadbeg, the
-men responsible for which would, he said, go to
-their graves with the brand of Cain on their foreheads.
-Such were the things said about us, but we
-kept on our course.</p>
-
-<p>In many places we were refused shelter on a
-night that one would not put out a dog. I remember
-on one occasion we were sitting in a farmhouse by
-the fireside when a loud knock was made at the
-door. It was dark, and the farmer did not care to
-open without knowing who was outside.</p>
-
-<p>“Who’s there?” he demanded.</p>
-
-<p>“Police!” came the prompt reply.</p>
-
-<p>Simultaneously we drew our revolvers. The door
-was opened, and a young neighbouring farmer
-entered, laughing heartily at his attempted joke.
-Before we could put away our guns the owner of
-the house observed them. At once his attitude
-towards us changed. He informed us point blank
-that he would not permit men with guns to stay
-under his roof. It was bitterly cold, but we had to
-go out into one of the outhouses for the night. So
-chilled were we there that we had to drive in some
-of the cows to keep us warm.</p>
-
-<p>We had to keep tramping from parish to parish
-without a penny in our pockets. Our clothes and
-boots were almost worn out, and we had no changes.
-Many whom we thought we could trust would not
-let us sleep even in their cattle byres.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_54"></a>[54]</span></p>
-
-<p>When we reached the village of Dono, in County
-Limerick—still only seven miles from Soloheadbeg—we
-again met with Seumas Robinson, and I
-need hardly say that our joy at the reunion was unbounded.
-Although it was only a few weeks since
-we parted after the fight at Soloheadbeg, we all
-felt like brothers meeting after years of separation.
-When we met we continued our night’s march linked
-arm in arm.</p>
-
-<p>While we were in this neighbourhood Paddy
-Ryan, a well-known local merchant and an old
-worker in the cause of freedom, proved a staunch
-friend to us. With Seumas again one of our band
-we discussed the outlook and the chances of winning
-over the people to engage in “one good stand-up
-fight” against the old enemy. We then drafted a
-proclamation ordering all the enemy forces out of
-South Tipperary. We sent it on to Dublin, but both
-An Dail and General Headquarters refused their
-consent to let us go ahead. We never found out
-their reason for doing so. Ours was the only
-logical position.</p>
-
-<p>Withholding their support was a bad blow
-enough—but what was our horror when we found
-that someone had actually worked up a plan to ship
-us away to America! We were not consulted at
-all, but calmly told to be ready to sail in a couple
-of days. It was surely a sugar-coated pill! A
-deportation order in disguise, issued from the very<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_55"></a>[55]</span>
-source that should, if consistent, get behind us in
-the war. We refused to leave Ireland. We told
-them that we were not afraid to die, but would prefer
-to live for Ireland. To leave Ireland would be like
-an admission that we were criminals, or that we were
-cowards. Now, more than ever we declared that our
-place was in Ireland, and Ireland’s fight would have
-to be made by Irishmen on the hills and at the cross-roads
-in Ireland, not with printer’s ink in America,
-or in any other country. This was apparently
-regarded as a breach of discipline. We were
-members of an organised body and should obey our
-superior officers. They persisted in their plan of
-sending us away, and we, just as obstinately,
-refused to leave. At length we won, but only on
-condition that we should remain away in some
-remote part of the country. We felt that we could
-very soon overcome that difficulty too.</p>
-
-<p>While these little quibbles were going on between
-G.H.Q. and ourselves we were suffering intensely.
-The cold weather and the weary, aimless travelling
-around were very trying on us. We could not get
-a horse to carry us even a journey of a few miles.
-We had to trudge from field to field, sometimes in
-one direction, sometimes in another. At last human
-nature began to assert itself. Why should we be
-treated so? Was not the sky as fair in one place as
-in another?</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_56"></a>[56]</span></p>
-
-<p>From Doon we went to Upperchurch, in the north
-of Tipperary. There we spent a few days with
-Patrick Kinnane, one of a family of famous Irish
-athletes; our next resting-place we decided would
-be Meagher’s of Annfield. We sent on word that
-they might expect us to arrive at half-past seven
-in the evening, when it would be quite dark. The
-four of us, accompanied by Patrick Kinnane, walked
-along the road, chatting and enjoying the cool
-spring air. We must have taken our time along the
-way, for Treacy looked at his watch and reminded
-us that we were overdue, as it was now nearly eight
-o’clock. Suddenly in the distance we saw something
-white fluttering in the darkness. We halted. It
-was a signal by a girl who was trying to attract our
-attention.</p>
-
-<p>The four of us dropped into a place of concealment
-behind a thick hedge. The girl saw us and
-approached along the road. As she passed the spot
-in which she had seen us hide she whispered the
-words:—</p>
-
-<p>“The peelers are inside, raiding!”</p>
-
-<p>She was one of the Misses Meagher who had
-slipped out unnoticed by the police to give warning,
-knowing the road by which we would come.</p>
-
-<p>From our point of vantage we waited until we
-saw the forces of the British law depart to their<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_57"></a>[57]</span>
-barracks. Then we proceeded on our way, and
-entered the house they had been raiding, where we
-enjoyed a pleasant tea.</p>
-
-<p>From Meagher’s we came south again to Leahy’s
-of Boherlahan, the famous family of Tipperary
-hurlers. After that we went to Donnelly’s, of
-Nodstown, in the same district, where we held a
-meeting of our Brigade Council on a Sunday
-evening. With our colleagues we discussed plans
-for more active operations, and produced the
-proclamation we had drawn up ordering all British
-armed forces to leave South Tipperary under
-penalty of death. Although Headquarters had
-refused their sanction we decided to publish it.
-About the end of February it was posted up in
-several parts of the county. The newspapers
-published it with mocking headlines. It seemed a
-tall order no doubt at the time, but subsequent
-events showed that we saw further ahead than
-either the newspapers or our own Headquarters
-gave us credit for.</p>
-
-<p>After that meeting we decided to return northwards
-towards Creany, sending word ahead as we
-always did. We sent a message to Patrick Kinnane
-to meet us with a car, and started our long tramp
-in the dismal night.</p>
-
-<p>At Upperchurch we were met by Kinnane,
-Doherty and Patrick Dwyer, and we headed for
-Murphy’s house at Creany. It was three o’clock in<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_58"></a>[58]</span>
-the morning when we reached our destination.
-Seldom did we suffer more than that night from
-cold and exposure. The weather was harsh, even
-for February, and the district was wild and mountainous.</p>
-
-<p>When we arrived at Murphy’s house we were
-ravenously hungry. Murphy was a great character.
-He was locally known as “the Stationmaster”—why,
-I don’t know, for the nearest railway station
-was fifteen miles from his house. He was preparing
-a great meal of smoked ham and eggs for us. So
-hungry was Hogan that instinctively, and half
-unconsciously, he began to eat the raw ham as it
-was being put on the frying pan. In a few minutes
-he was seriously ill, and we thought he was going
-to die. He soon revived, but for weeks afterwards
-he was far from well. His illness at this time was
-very unfortunate for us, because we had made up
-our minds, in spite of Headquarters’ orders, that we
-would try to get to Dublin, as we could no longer
-endure the misery of our existence.</p>
-
-<p>With that purpose we went from Creany to the
-Falls of Donass, that most glorious and picturesque
-spot on the Shannon just across the Limerick
-border from North Tipperary. Then we parted with
-Robinson and Treacy, who started on their perilous
-journey to Dublin, while I remained behind with
-Hogan until he would be himself again. They arrived
-in Dublin safely, and were welcomed by a few<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_59"></a>[59]</span>
-sympathetic friends. A full and accurate description
-of each one of us, with the reward offered for information
-that might lead to our capture, appeared
-every week in the <i>Hue and Cry</i>, the official police
-gazette, and so it was no easy thing for them either
-to travel to the city, or to get about when they had
-arrived there.</p>
-
-<p>Meantime Hogan and I could not stay long in
-the district round the Keeper Mountains. But
-Tommy McInerney came out from Limerick
-with a motor car, accompanied by Tim Ryan.
-McInerney was the man who drove the ill-fated
-motor car which went to meet Roger Casement on
-Good Friday of 1916, when the car ran over a cliff
-in Kerry, and two of the occupants were drowned,
-McInerney himself escaping.</p>
-
-<p>Tim Ryan knew of a friendly priest in West
-Limerick who would give us shelter, and we started
-on our journey to meet one of the truest friends we
-ever made—a certain sagairt whose praises I should
-like to sound here, but who does not wish his name
-to be made known. Sean Hogan sat in front with
-McInerney, who was driving, Ryan and I being in
-the back.</p>
-
-<p>For a time our journey was uneventful until we
-approached Limerick City. We were suddenly confronted
-by lorry loads of soldiers dashing along in
-the direction of Tipperary. We knew they were on
-some big round up. We did not know then, though<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_60"></a>[60]</span>
-we found out later, that they had received information
-that we were lying in a certain hiding place, and
-scores of troops with armoured cars were being
-rushed to the scene.</p>
-
-<p>Never since we left Soloheadbeg did we feel in
-such a tight corner. One flash of suspicion on the
-part of a single officer of the party would have ruined
-us. At that time we knew that more than one
-British soldier, even privates, had fond hopes of
-earning the reward for our capture, and many of
-them had been at great pains to study our descriptions.
-Besides, it was comparatively easy for them
-then, in the spring of 1919, for we were then the
-only “much wanted men,” as the newspapers
-described us.</p>
-
-<p>An apparently endless line of lorries approached
-us—every soldier armed to the teeth, every lorry
-equipped with a machine gun. The smallest show
-of concern on our part meant our death warrant:
-the slightest sign of fear or anxiety would betray us.
-And there was no turning back. To attempt such
-a thing would be an open challenge by three men
-to several hundred soldiers. Coolness and bluff were
-our only hope.</p>
-
-<p>We passed the first twenty lorries without turning
-a hair. We just looked at the troops with that gaze
-of curiosity mingled with admiration that one might
-expect from any loyal citizen watching his gallant
-protectors go by. We had passed the greater part<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_61"></a>[61]</span>
-of the convoy, and were beginning to feel more at
-our ease, when suddenly rounding a corner we were
-confronted by a sentry with rifle upraised and
-called on to “’alt.” Our driver at once put on the
-brakes and pulled up.</p>
-
-<p>We now realised why the other braves had
-allowed us to pass unchallenged. We had been led
-into an ambush—permitted to get right into the
-middle of the convoy, so that we had not a dog’s
-chance of escaping. It was a cunning trap, but we
-would show them how Irishmen can die rather than
-surrender. It was all up with us, but we would sell
-our lives as dearly as we could.</p>
-
-<p>I pulled my gun. For a fraction of a second I
-fingered it fondly under the rug rapidly deciding
-where I should send my bullets with best effect. I
-had my finger on the trigger ready to raise my
-arm to fire when an officer dashed up.</p>
-
-<p>“Sorry for delaying you, gentlemen,” he
-shouted.</p>
-
-<p>This did not look like an ambush. I gently
-lowered my gun from view, and waited for his next
-words.</p>
-
-<p>He was the captain in charge of the party.
-“Two of the ‘beastly’ cars, you know, have
-broken down,” he explained, “and ’twas awfully
-unfortunate, don’t you know, but the traffic was
-almost completely blocked.” He apologised profusely
-for the delay, but he feared there was not<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_62"></a>[62]</span>
-enough room for our car to pass. “’twas jolly
-rotten,” but he thought we should have to get out
-and walk.</p>
-
-<p>By this time I had quite recovered my composure.
-I told him politely but firmly that we had an
-important business appointment to keep, and that
-any further delay might mean serious loss to us.
-Besides, I said, we had travelled far, and a long
-motor journey was not good for rheumatics, and we
-were far too tired to walk.</p>
-
-<p>I think he was really impressed by my protest.
-At that stage British officers regarded an Irishman
-who could travel in a motor car as a person of
-importance who might get a “question raised in
-the House,” if treated rudely. A year or two later
-I know what he would have said to any Irishman
-met on the road.</p>
-
-<p>He suddenly turned to his men, ordered three or
-four of them to drop their rifles and push us in our
-car for about two hundred yards till we had passed
-the broken-down lorries, and could take the middle
-of the road again.</p>
-
-<p>Never did I feel more inclined to laugh. Here
-was a section of the British Army actually going
-out of its way to save us the trouble of walking,
-while the same army was day and night searching
-the countryside for us. What a pretty heading it
-would have been for the <i>Morning Post</i>—“Wanted
-Gunmen aided and abetted by the British Army!”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_63"></a>[63]</span></p>
-
-<p>We were more profuse in our thanks to the
-soldiers, assured them they need not push our car
-any further, and were very sorry to have them put
-to so much trouble. A moment later we waved them
-good-bye, and were dashing along the road to
-Foynes. I can assure you that the speed of our car
-was tested for the next quarter of an hour in case
-by any chance the obliging soldiers might get
-suspicious, and come after us to make enquiries.
-But Sean and I laughed heartily when we had left
-them behind. It was the first time since we had
-become outlaws that the British helped us to
-escape; it was not the last, for more than once I
-had reason to feel grateful to their stupidity in
-helping me out of difficulties when they little knew
-who I was.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_64"></a>[64]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_IX">CHAPTER IX.<br>
-<span class="smaller">OUR RETURN TO SOLOHEADBEG.</span></h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>That evening we reached our destination—the
-house of the priest to whom I have already referred.
-Here we got a right hearty welcome. No trouble
-was spared to make us feel happy and cheerful.
-The housekeeper—Molly—was like a mother to
-us. She was a bit of a dictator, too, where dictation
-was for our good. When she had given us a good
-hearty meal she ordered both of us to bed, where
-we remained for two whole days. Can you wonder
-that we felt loth to leave the blankets, with memories
-of newspapers, dirty straw and damp hay still fresh
-in our minds?</p>
-
-<p>After two days’ rest I felt fit and active again,
-but Hogan was still far from well. We can never
-forget Molly’s kindness during this time. No
-trouble was too great for her to make us comfortable.
-I believe it was her kindness and good cookery
-that really brought us to. And she was always
-good-humoured and cheerful. It was a tonic to
-hear her merry laugh, her banter and her bright<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_65"></a>[65]</span>
-homely talk. It was all so different to what we had
-been accustomed to for months. Up to this the
-people who spoke to us at all never raised their
-voices above a whisper. Sometimes we had to laugh
-when we saw the caution they exercised before
-giving any sign that they recognised us. Whenever
-we met an acquaintance on the road he looked
-behind, to the right and to the left, before saluting
-us. Many of them, I suppose, were afraid that if
-we were caught soon after meeting them they might
-lie under suspicion, and there is nothing an Irishman
-fears more than to be thought an informer.</p>
-
-<p>It was amusing to observe the frightened look
-that came into people’s eyes when they recognised
-us. Of course, there was often a good reason for
-their fright, for we were often several weeks without
-making the acquaintance of a razor. But one is
-not particular about personal beauty when there is
-an army at one’s heels, and ten thousand pounds on
-one’s head.</p>
-
-<p>No wonder then that Molly’s good nature and
-good humour were such a tonic to us. And she was
-brave as well as kind. She would inspire us with
-hope when everything looked black. She was
-unshaken in her conviction that no harm would come
-to us; that God, as she said, would save us from
-our enemies. She always kept a lamp burning before<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_66"></a>[66]</span>
-the image of the Sacred Heart, in intercession for
-our welfare, and I am sure that many a decade of
-her beads she said for us too.</p>
-
-<p>But if Molly was a brick the priest was a thousand
-bricks. Like Molly, he never counted the cost of
-“harbouring outlaws.” We were welcome to his
-roof and to his table as long as we cared to stay,
-and everything that his house held, or that he could
-command, was at our service. We certainly enjoyed
-our stay at ⸺, and would have liked to prolong
-it, but it was not safe to stay over-long in the same
-district, and we felt it was not fair to our host.
-Moreover, we wanted to be on the move to try what
-we could be doing to put more life into the cause.
-After a stay of a few weeks in this place we went
-on to Rathkeale.</p>
-
-<p>Here for the first time I met Sean Finn—as fine
-a type of brave and chivalrous Irishman as ever
-lived. He was then but a mere youth, but he had
-been elected Commandant of his Battalion. Imbued
-with a passionate desire to strike a blow for the old
-land he was brave almost to rashness. But, alas!
-for Ireland, he fell in his first battle with the enemy
-about a year and a half later. My highest tribute
-to the memory of this gallant soldier of Ireland!</p>
-
-<p>We did not stay long in Rathkeale. We were
-restless, and longing for action. We were anxious,
-too, to know how Sean Treacy and Seumas
-Robinson were faring in Dublin. At this time we<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_67"></a>[67]</span>
-saw the newspapers every day, and we knew that
-they had so far escaped. At last, we got into
-communication with them and arranged to meet
-them again. We felt that the fates would have the
-four of us joined hands again, and stand or fall
-together. So Sean Hogan and I worked our way
-from West Limerick back towards the eastern end
-of the county, to the borders of South Tipperary.
-Once more we found ourselves in a place where we
-had already received shelter and hospitality—at
-Lackelly, near Emly. We were thus within six or
-seven miles of Soloheadbeg again, and within a few
-miles of the spot where a few weeks later we were
-to have our next most exciting and dramatic adventure—Knocklong.</p>
-
-<p>At Lackelly we met Treacy and Robinson once
-more. We felt like a group of schoolboys on a
-holiday. Somehow when the four of us were
-together all the dark clouds seemed to scatter. We
-forgot we were hunted outlaws with a heavy price on
-our heads, and when we met we talked and joked
-long into the night, and exchanged our experiences
-and our adventures since we had parted. Treacy
-and Robinson had gone about Dublin freely and
-openly, and had quite a pleasant time. We, on our
-part, tried to make them jealous by telling them of
-our great time at the priest’s house, and were able
-to boast of being helped by the British soldiers on
-our way to that place.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_68"></a>[68]</span></p>
-
-<p>Seumas was able to retort with an equally
-amusing experience. It seems that on their way
-from Tipperary to Dublin the car broke down just
-at Maryboro’ Jail, and immediately several soldiers
-rushed to their assistance to get it started again. In
-Dublin, too, they had many adventures, but these
-I cannot go into.</p>
-
-<p>Meantime, the police and military were still busy
-searching the whole county of Tipperary for us,
-and digging up gardens and bogs in search of the
-missing explosives. They watched our haunts, and
-raided every place we were ever known to frequent.
-In spite of the difficulties this state of things created,
-the four of us determined that it was useless to
-remain inactive. The encounter at Soloheadbeg
-stirred the country, and showed the Volunteers what
-could be done, but our absence might nullify these
-effects. The three months that had passed since
-then seemed to us to have been wasted. The I.R.A.
-was still only a name. In theory there was a fairly
-good organisation. Every county had its Brigade
-and its Battalions, and arms were not altogether
-lacking, but of what use, we asked ourselves, are
-men who are soldiers only in name, and of guns that
-are oiled and cleaned but never fired? The men
-were not wanting in courage, but they needed more
-initiative. At that time all they could do was go to
-jail. All over the country men were allowing themselves<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_69"></a>[69]</span>
-to be arrested and imprisoned for drilling or
-carrying arms, but they never seemed to think of
-using the arms rather than go to jail.</p>
-
-<p>We made up our minds when we met at Lackelly
-that this business of going to jail and becoming
-cheap heroes must stop. We wanted a real army,
-not a hollow mockery. Even if such an army numbered
-a few score only, it would be far better than
-the present organisation. We thought Soloheadbeg
-would have been followed by active operations all
-over the country, but now it was becoming a mere
-memory.</p>
-
-<p>In this frame of mind, and with these resolutions
-we procured four bicycles and headed straight for
-Donohill—back to the very scene of our first battle,
-back into the middle of the military net that martial
-law had drawn round the whole county. Donohill is
-about two miles north of the Soloheadbeg quarry,
-and our route took us by the very road where we
-waited so long for the enemy, and where we at last
-met them. It was our first journey past the scene
-since January 21st, and you can picture our feelings
-as we saw the familiar hill once more and the turn
-of the road where the peelers appeared. We dismounted
-and lingered for a while in the neighbourhood.
-I am sure many of the people around never
-expected to lay eyes on us again, for in the old days<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_70"></a>[70]</span>
-the usual thing for men in our position to do was to
-clear away to America. But our work was in Ireland,
-and we were going to see it through to the end.</p>
-
-<p>At Donohill we appeared to the Horan family
-like men who had come back from the grave. When
-they realised we were not ghosts, they gave us a
-typical Irish welcome, and we joked and laughed
-long into the night. They didn’t forget to keep
-somebody on the look-out by the road to make sure
-we would not be surprised. With the Horans we
-stayed till the following night.</p>
-
-<p>My own house was only half a mile away, and,
-needless to remark, I took the opportunity to see
-my mother. It was a great surprise for her, but a
-very welcome one. During my period on the run I
-dare not even send her a card, for it would bring her
-endless annoyance from the enemy, and probably
-give them useful information, for they never scrupled
-to open letters going through the post. Poor
-woman! She was very brave and in the best of
-spirits, in spite of the fact that her little home was
-often raided and ransacked three times in twenty-four
-hours, in the early dawn, and in the dead of
-night. It gave me great courage to see her and to
-talk to her again. But I should not delay long, and
-I bade her good-bye again, taking with me her warm
-blessing as I left.</p>
-
-<p>The dear old soul has suffered much for the crime
-of having taught her sons their duty to their country.<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_71"></a>[71]</span>
-Even the house over her head was looted and
-burned, and her hens and chickens had to pay the
-price of English hate, for they were bayoneted by
-the Black and Tans. Through all her trials she
-never lost heart, and would always have her jibe at
-the enemy. Once when the British came and asked
-if her son was in, she sarcastically asked them if
-they would venture under the same roof with him.
-On another occasion in reply to the same question
-she told them I was upstairs, and invited them to
-enter. Their response to the invitation was a precipitate
-retreat to seek cover.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_72"></a>[72]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_X">CHAPTER X.<br>
-<span class="smaller">SEAN HOGAN CAPTURED.</span></h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>From Donohill we went to Rossmore, and then
-on to Rosegreen, and finally into Clonmel—the
-Headquarters of the R.I.C. for South Tipperary,
-and a large garrison town. We spent several days in
-that district, and were not idle. We met the local
-officers of the I.R.A.—they belonged to our
-brigade—and found out what plans they had. We
-did our best to induce them to get things moving
-more rapidly, and to get on with the real serious
-work.</p>
-
-<p>One morning while in Clonmel district I had an
-unusual adventure, not very exciting in its own
-way, but one that I feared was going to prove more
-than exciting for me. As I was cycling up Mockler’s
-Hill at 2 o’clock in the morning, when it was still
-pitch dark, a cyclist coming in the opposite direction
-rode right into me. I got the full force of his handle-bars
-over the heart. I was thrown helplessly to the
-ground, and vomited a quantity of blood. I thought
-I was going to die. The prospect of such an inglorious<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_73"></a>[73]</span>
-end did not improve me, nor hasten my
-recovery. To be killed in action by an enemy bullet
-was a fate I did not at all dread; but I strongly
-objected to being killed by the handle-bars of an
-ordinary, inoffensive push-bicycle, and, to make
-things worse, I pictured myself being identified by
-the R.I.C. and kicked into an even worse condition
-than that in which the cyclist left me. However,
-my recovery was more rapid than I hoped for. I
-have always had a bad habit of pulling myself together
-very quickly. In a short time I was able to
-mount my bicycle again, and ride to my destination.</p>
-
-<p>On the 10th of May, 1919, we retraced our steps
-to the village of Rossmore. It was now almost four
-months since the affair at Soloheadbeg. During that
-time we had been sleeping where and when we got
-the chance; sometimes in a barn, sometimes in a
-cattle-shed, and very seldom in bed. Our health
-was not any the worse of our hardships. I suppose
-with time one grows hardened. Even this night
-when we got to Rossmore we were feeling fit and
-game, although we had been four nights without
-any rest. Still, we could do with a few hours’ sleep.
-Somebody we met mentioned casually to us that
-there was a dance that night in Eamon O’Duibhir’s
-house in Ballagh, only a short distance away. We
-forgot about our weariness; we forgot about our
-danger. We were young, and had grown<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_74"></a>[74]</span>
-accustomed by now to taking risks, and it was long
-since we had had the pleasure of a dance or a
-ceilidhe.</p>
-
-<p>Without a second thought we faced for Ballagh.
-Soon we were in the thick of the night’s fun. It
-felt glorious to be back again, even for one night,
-in the atmosphere of light-hearted gaiety. For
-nearly two years I had not mingled with a crowd,
-and here I was now in the midst of a typical
-Tipperary party. The music was great, and the
-supper and refreshments were even better. For
-once we forgot the dark clouds over us; we laughed
-and talked and danced in the reels and in the sets
-with the lads and the lassies—in the middle of the
-Martial Law area, and at a time when probably a
-dozen British raiding parties were breaking in doors
-in cottages and farmhouses looking for us.</p>
-
-<p>Of course, the boys and girls all knew us. They,
-like so many others before and after, had only to
-slip out, any one of them, go to the nearest police
-barracks, not two miles away, and earn a thousand
-pounds by saying where we were. But they never
-dreamed of such a thing. Neither did we ever dream
-of suspecting any one in the party, or in any other
-party of Irish-Irelanders. Every one of them would
-cut off his hand before he would touch that Saxon
-gold. Irishmen have many faults, but very, very
-few informers are bred amongst them.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_75"></a>[75]</span></p>
-
-<p>We danced all through the night, and in the early
-hours of the morning I returned with a few of the
-boys to Rossmore. The other three did not come
-with me; they stayed on for a few more dances, but
-we had arranged to meet at O’Keeffe’s, of
-Glenough, where we would have a right good sleep.
-Shortly after I arrived there Sean Treacy and
-Seamus Robinson put in an appearance. Sean
-Hogan did not come with them, but none of us felt
-a bit uneasy. He had two days to go before he
-reached his eighteenth birthday, but we knew he
-was well able to look after himself.</p>
-
-<p>The three of us were about as tired as we could
-be. What with our five nights without sleep, and
-the fatigue of a night’s dancing, we could have
-slept, as Sean said, on a bed of briars. The sight
-of the cosy bed that had been made ready for us
-almost made us sleep before we turned into it.</p>
-
-<p>I think Sean Treacy had not finished his rosary
-before I fell asleep. The next sound I heard was
-the voice of Patrick Kinnane. It seemed very far
-off. He was speaking to me I knew, but my eyes
-refused to open. Then I was brought to my senses.
-His words lifted me clean out of the bed; I realised
-the full meaning of his early intrusion: Hogan had
-been captured by the Peelers!</p>
-
-<p>It would have been very easy for us to believe
-that “J.J.,” as we called him—his name was John
-Joseph—had been shot. But to think he was<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_76"></a>[76]</span>
-arrested! I would not believe it. Was Kinnane
-joking? I turned to Sean Treacy, for he too was
-on his feet by now, and I read the truth in his face.</p>
-
-<p>I would have given a fortune for a few hours more
-of sleep. I never felt so tired and weary in my life.
-Robinson and Treacy were just as bad. But the
-thought of “J.J.” in the enemy’s clutches brought
-us quickly to our senses. Without a moment’s
-hesitation we made our decision. Our faces rather
-than our words conveyed to one another what was
-in our minds. We must rescue Hogan, or die in
-the attempt, and we knew that had any one of us
-been in Hogan’s position his decision would have
-been the same.</p>
-
-<p>Quickly we got what information there was of his
-capture. He left the dance soon after us. Before
-he had gone far he was surrounded by ten stalwart
-policemen. He carried his gun, of course, as we
-all did, but he never got a chance to use it. It was
-not until a year later that the British invented the
-happy trick of shooting prisoners “while attempting
-to escape.” If that fashion had then existed “J.J.”
-would not be with us to-day, nor would there
-have been much use in planning to rescue him that
-night.</p>
-
-<p>Our first trouble was to locate him. At that time
-murders of innocent people had not yet come into
-fashion, but Martial Law made people more careful,
-and few ventured out late at night or early in the<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_77"></a>[77]</span>
-morning because of the certainty of being held up
-and questioned and probably arrested by the
-British, who patrolled the roads at all hours of the
-night and day. Hence we found on our first enquiry
-that no one had seen whither Hogan’s escort had
-departed. They might have faced for any one of
-half a dozen garrisons—Thurles, Tipperary, or
-Cashel, for instance. To be thus left in ignorance
-of where to lay our plans was almost maddening,
-and we knew that every hour that passed made the
-danger greater, and that he would soon be removed
-to a place beyond our reach. Gladly, I believe,
-would any one of the three of us have taken the
-place of our youngest comrade. Now that he was
-gone from us we suddenly discovered all his excellent
-points of character, though we were never in
-the habit of paying him compliments while he was
-with us.</p>
-
-<p>We searched and enquired everywhere. We sent
-messengers on bicycles in all likely directions to
-endeavour to pick up a trail. But his captors had
-got too big a start. We were almost in despair when
-at last we got on the scent: we traced him to
-Thurles police barracks.</p>
-
-<p>To attempt to rescue him from that place
-would have been worse than madness. It would
-have been as easy to storm the gates of hell.
-Thurles is a fairly large town, and had a big garrison
-of both police and military. The barrack was<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_78"></a>[78]</span>
-strongly fortified, and the peelers were always on
-the alert. Their positions made alertness essential.
-They were in the middle of an area that was soon
-to become the centre of active warfare, and they
-were on the main road from Dublin to Cork. There
-was never the slightest hope of rushing the barracks
-or of effecting an entrance by a ruse, and besides,
-we knew that the presence of Sean Hogan in their
-stronghold would make them all the more careful,
-for they knew he was one of the four men
-wanted for the attack at Soloheadbeg. The bits of
-information they had picked up, and our disappearance
-from the locality made it certain to them from
-the first day that we were in that adventure.</p>
-
-<p>But there was one gleam of hope. We knew he
-would not be kept long in Thurles. Prisoners were
-only kept in these local stations for a day or two
-while the preliminary enquiries and remands were
-being gone through. Then they were transferred
-to one of the largest prisons—Mountjoy, Cork,
-Maryboro’, Dundalk or Belfast. In the case of
-Tipperary men, and indeed men from all over
-Munster, Cork was generally the destination. The
-odds were ten to one that in a day or two Sean
-Hogan would be taken by train from Thurles to
-Cork.</p>
-
-<p>Our plans were quickly completed. We would
-go to Emly, intercept the escort, hold up the train
-and rescue our comrade. We chose Emly for many<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_79"></a>[79]</span>
-reasons. It was a small station, and there were no
-soldiers convenient; the police we did not
-particularly mind. It was in the heart of a district
-with which we were familiar, and in which we had
-many friends. It almost touched the borders of
-three counties, and consequently increased our
-chances of evading pursuit, since the enemy would
-not easily discover whether we retreated to the
-mountains, to North Cork, to South Tipperary,
-or to East Limerick. Above all, we had faith in
-many of the boys from the neighbouring village of
-Galbally.</p>
-
-<p>But holding up a train and making arrangements
-for the removal of our rescued companion, and for
-our own escape, are not operations that can be
-carried out by three men. We needed help; we
-must get reinforcements. We at once secured the
-services of a special Volunteer despatch-rider; for,
-naturally, neither telegrams nor telephones were to
-be thought of. To trust these means of communication
-would be the same as to send the British word
-of our plans. Our first care was to send full details
-of our plans to the Acting Commandant of the
-Tipperary town Battalion, with orders to send us
-the reinforcements. Emly would be only seven
-miles, less than an hour’s cycle run, from Tipperary
-town.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_80"></a>[80]</span></p>
-
-<p>Hurriedly we decided on our course of action,
-and made our preparations. Ned Reilly and the
-O’Keeffe brothers gave us every help in laying our
-plans before we left Thurles.</p>
-
-<p>Having completed these arrangements we left the
-town of Thurles at 11 o’clock on the morning of
-May 12th, 1919. Our hearts were sad, but we
-still had hopes, and our blood was boiling with anger,
-anxiety and excitement.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp48" id="illus05" style="max-width: 28.125em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/illus05.jpg" alt="">
- <p class="caption">J. J. HOGAN.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>Mounted on our bicycles the three of us faced
-for Emly. Except for the hour’s sleep after the
-dance we had now been five nights without a rest.
-In the ordinary course Emly would have been only
-some thirty miles from us, but for obvious reasons
-we had to avoid the main roads, and could not pass
-near Tipperary town. We covered nearly fifty miles
-on that journey, over rough and uneven roads. It
-was one of the toughest rides we ever did. The
-journeys that Sean Treacy and I had done to and
-from Dublin were less wearisome. As we approached
-Donohill, Seumas Robinson’s bicycle was put out of
-action. We had neither the time nor the means to
-try to repair it on the roadside, but we had faithful
-friends. Patrick O’Dwyer, of Donohill, whose
-wife was a first cousin of Sean Hogan’s, put a new
-bicycle at our disposal, and we resumed our journey.
-Our fatigue was telling on us. We could have fallen
-off the bicycles and slept by the roadside, but the
-excitement and our sense of loyalty to our comrade<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_81"></a>[81]</span>
-kept up our strength. At Oola we actually fell
-asleep on our bicycles, but again we bestirred ourselves,
-and on we went doggedly, up hill and down
-dale with our teeth set and our minds fixed on rescue
-or death. We made a detour to the right, through
-the Martial Law area, and over the border into
-County Limerick, through the historic village of
-Cullen, and on to Ballyneety, past the ruins of
-the old castle, on the very same road that Patrick
-Sarsfield took on that moonlight night three hundred
-and thirty years before, when his sabre brought
-terror to Dutch William’s troops. It was a strange
-coincidence that we who now rode on a similar
-errand of death or glory were Tipperary outlaws,
-just as was Galloping Hogan, the man who made
-Sarsfield’s exploit possible that night. And we were
-going to rescue another Tipperary outlaw of the
-same name and clan.</p>
-
-<p>While Sean Treacy was reminding us of these
-pages of history—for he loved his Irish history—we
-were interrupted by a dull thud, and looking round
-we saw that poor Robinson had fallen off his bicycle
-and was fast asleep by the roadside. We had to
-keep moving, time was precious, and the three of
-us mounted again and reached Emly at half-past
-three on the morning of May 13th. On the way we
-had stopped once or twice to complete our plans,
-and to perfect our intelligence arrangements. Once<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_82"></a>[82]</span>
-we got a rude shock when a bomb dropped from
-Robinson’s pocket, and for a moment we thought
-we were being attacked.</p>
-
-<p>At Lackelly we called upon our old friends, the
-Maloneys, and right heartily we were welcomed.
-When we were discussing our plans, while enjoying
-a warm and much needed breakfast, May Maloney
-offered her services in any way she could help, and
-gladly we accepted her offer. She became our
-despatch rider for the occasion, and I do not know
-how we could have got along without her help. It
-was she who went to Thurles that morning, and
-sent us word that Hogan was still there. The
-Maloneys’ house, by the way, was later destroyed
-by the Black and Tans, and both May Maloney and
-her brother Dan were imprisoned during the recent
-war.</p>
-
-<p>By 10 o’clock on the morning of May 13th, we
-had completed all arrangements for the rescue of
-Sean Hogan.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_83"></a>[83]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XI">CHAPTER XI.<br>
-<span class="smaller">THE RESCUE AT KNOCKLONG.</span></h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>As I have said, we arrived at Emly at 3.30 a.m.
-The first train on which the prisoner might come
-was not due till noon. When all was in readiness a
-few hours before noon we waited eagerly for the
-arrival of the men from Tipperary town in response
-to our request. As the hour approached we grew
-anxious and restive. The minutes grew into hours.
-Eagerly our eyes scanned the road from Tipperary,
-but no cyclist appeared. What had happened? We
-could not let ourselves believe that the help we
-needed so badly was not at hand. Eleven o’clock—still
-no reinforcements. The minutes travelled all
-too fast now. Half-past eleven came, and still no
-sign. And the train was due at 12!</p>
-
-<p>But we were not going to let Sean Hogan be
-taken away without a fight. We knew that the
-escort, armed with rifles, bayonets and revolvers,
-would consist of four to eight policemen, but it was
-possible that other policemen or soldiers would be<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_84"></a>[84]</span>
-on the same train. We could only fail. At 12
-o’clock the three of us rushed up to the station just
-as the engine steamed into the platform.</p>
-
-<p>In my hurry I dashed right into an old woman at
-the entrance. To save her I had to throw my arms
-around her. The two of us were swung round and
-round by the force of the collision, and I finished
-what must have looked like a dance by falling
-heavily to the ground. Unfortunately, there was no
-time for explanations or apologies, and I don’t know
-whether the poor woman ever heard yet the
-explanation of the collision. Before she could even
-see my face, I was up again and racing along the
-platform with my finger all the time on the trigger
-of the revolver.</p>
-
-<p>But there was no prisoner! We were sadly disappointed.
-In a sense, too, we felt a little relieved
-for there would be still time to seek help before the
-next train was due. But waiting is always the
-hardest part of any fight; suspense is more severe
-than action.</p>
-
-<p>As we returned crestfallen to our resting-place,
-after scanning every carriage, our pill was made
-more bitter by the thought that the Tipperary men
-had failed us. Our minds searched for other help.
-We thought of the old Galtee Battalion, the boys
-from the mountain districts, from Galbally and
-Ballylanders. Their Battalion we knew had lately
-been suspended by Headquarters. But we knew,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_85"></a>[85]</span>
-too, that their hearts were right, and their hands
-strong and daring. They would not turn a deaf ear
-to a call like ours.</p>
-
-<p>The next train was not due from Thurles till
-7 o’clock in the evening. We sent word to the boys
-of the Galtee Battalion, told them our errand and
-the danger of the work that was to be tackled.
-Within an hour the reply came. Five of their men
-would join us at 5 o’clock. Never before had we got
-such a heartening message.</p>
-
-<p>The men were as good as their word, and they
-came before their time. At 4.45 p.m. they arrived,
-Eamon (Ned) O’Brien, James Scanlon, J. J.
-O’Brien, Sean Lynch, and poor Martin Foley, who
-was hanged in Mountjoy Jail exactly two years later
-for his part in the rescue. With him was hanged
-poor Maher, who knew nothing in the world about
-the incident for which he was hanged. But they
-gave their lives gladly for Ireland, and the brave
-words of their last message from the foot of the
-gallows will keep their memory for ever fresh in the
-hearts of Irish patriots. May they rest in peace!</p>
-
-<p>We were now eight strong, five of us armed with
-revolvers and three unarmed. After a consultation
-we decided on a slight change of plan. Sean Treacy,
-Seumas Robinson, Ned O’Brien and myself cycled
-on to Knocklong, the next station, about three
-miles south of Emly. We selected Knocklong because,
-except Emly, all the other stations were<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_86"></a>[86]</span>
-held by strong British forces, but this being only a
-wayside one, and a couple of miles distant from a
-police barrack, was comparatively safe for us. If
-this attempt failed we had plans to motor to Blarney,
-where we could again intercept the escort party.
-The other four men we sent to Emly station with
-instructions to board the train without arousing
-suspicion, to find out what carriage our comrade was
-in. In that way they could give us the hint as soon
-as Knocklong was reached, and no time need be
-lost in getting to the rescue.</p>
-
-<p>We reached Knocklong just as the train’s
-departure from Emly was signalled. We walked up
-the platform looking as cool and unconcerned as we
-could, but with our guns gripped tightly in our
-hands. Little did the people who awaited the train
-that evening think that they were soon to be
-witnesses of a drama for which a film-producer
-would have given a fortune. In the distance we saw
-the smoke of the engine rise into the sky. Another
-minute and the train was pulling into the platform.
-At the same moment another train on the opposite
-platform came in from Cork direction. It was only
-the next day we learned that the second train contained
-a company of armed British troops for
-Dublin. There they remained within a few feet of
-the struggle for life or death that ensued. I never<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_87"></a>[87]</span>
-learned why they took no part in the struggle.
-Perhaps it was too late when they realised what was
-afoot.</p>
-
-<p>Our train had not yet come to a standstill when
-the signal for which we waited was given us by two
-different parties. In accordance with the arrangements
-made in Thurles the previous day a member
-of the I.R.A. Secret Service boarded the train after
-the prisoner, and was at the window to give us the
-signal. Our men were at their window, too, not
-knowing about the other man.</p>
-
-<p>There was not a moment to be lost. The train
-would delay only a minute, and we had not thought
-it necessary to hold up the driver. A slight motion
-of the hand from our colleagues indicated the
-carriage where we would find our man.</p>
-
-<p>It was a long corridor carriage divided into about
-a dozen small compartments, each shut off from
-the others, and a passage running alongside the
-whole way. Our Galtee men were in the passage.
-In one of the compartments we saw Sean Hogan.
-He sat in the middle of the seat handcuffed, and
-facing the engine. Beside him sat a sergeant of
-the police, on the other side a constable. On the
-opposite seat were two other constables—all four
-fully armed.</p>
-
-<p>Sean Treacy was, by arrangement, to take
-charge of the attack. He gave the word. Within
-five seconds of the arrival of the train we were<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_88"></a>[88]</span>
-rushing along the corridor and bursting into the
-prisoner’s compartment with our guns drawn, and
-with the order, “Hands up!” “Hands up!”
-Only a moment before, as we heard later, Sergeant
-Wallace had viciously struck his prisoner with the
-sarcastic query, “Where are Breen and Treacy
-now?” His query was answered; Breen and Treacy
-were at his service.</p>
-
-<p>As we burst in the door of the compartment, the
-police quickly realised our purpose. Constable
-Enright had his revolver drawn and pointed at the
-prisoner’s ear. Orders had been given the escort to
-shoot the prisoner dead if any attempt were made
-to rescue him. A fraction of a second saved Sean
-Hogan. It was his life or the Constable’s. The
-policeman was in the act of pulling his trigger when
-he was himself shot through the heart—death being
-instantaneous.</p>
-
-<p>And now ensued an episode in comparison with
-which a Wild West show would grow pale. The
-passengers realised our object. In a moment panic
-reigned. My most vivid recollection of that scene
-is the figure of a soldier-passenger, dressed in
-England’s khaki uniform; but under that uniform
-there beat an Irish heart. I shall never forget the
-triumphant smile on his face as he waved his hat
-and shouted, “Up the Republic!”</p>
-
-<p>I had little time for studying the passengers.
-That first shot prevented the escort from murdering<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_89"></a>[89]</span>
-their prisoner, and it was the first shot in a grim
-battle that was to end in the death of two and the
-wounding of four. With the first shot one of the
-policemen literally dashed himself through the
-window of the train, roaring like a wild bull. We
-never saw him again, but I heard that he ran
-through the country like a maniac and reported the
-fight in a very incoherent manner at Emly police
-barrack next morning.</p>
-
-<p>Constable Enright was dead, so that there
-remained Sergeant Wallace and Constable Reilly.
-A fierce and rapid exchange of shots followed.
-Constable Reilly lay stiff on the floor. We thought
-he was dead, but we soon found he was only shamming.</p>
-
-<p>Sergeant Wallace fought to the end. A braver
-man I have never seen in the ranks of the enemy.
-Several times we called on him to surrender, but
-he never answered, even when deserted by his men.
-The confusion and panic were indescribable.
-Cramped as we were for space, we were in danger
-not only from the bullets of the police, but also from
-those of our own men. And all the time we were
-struggling to push out our handcuffed comrade.</p>
-
-<p>We handed out our comrade in safety. Meanwhile
-Sergeant Wallace had also struggled on to
-the platform. I looked around me. I knew I was<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_90"></a>[90]</span>
-wounded, but, in the excitement, I could not know
-where or how seriously, though I knew it was in
-the region of the lung.</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly I realised that Treacy, Ned O’Brien
-and Scanlon were also wounded, and we were the
-only four with arms. Blood was streaming from all
-of us. The other three had lost their guns in the
-fight. I alone was in a position to fight, and I had
-more than the plucky sergeant to face, for Constable
-Reilly, who had shammed death a moment ago,
-was now out on the platform firing continuously from
-his rifle. A second bullet now found its mark in
-me. I was shot in the right arm. If Constable
-Reilly had been as cool as the old sergeant one of
-us would never have escaped alive. He saw my
-revolver drop from my wounded hand—and he saw
-me pick it up again. If he had been quick he
-would have dashed my brains out before I got the
-chance to do so. I had always prepared for such an
-emergency as this. I had practised so that I was
-as good a marksman with my left hand as with my
-right. I fired again, and at Reilly, and when he saw
-me level my gun he turned and fled down the platform.
-Meantime the Sergeant had collapsed on the
-platform, and victory was ours. Reilly escaped
-because I was blinded with blood and unable to
-take steady aim; but I made sure that he would
-not turn again, while the rest of my comrades carried
-Hogan off in safety.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_91"></a>[91]</span></p>
-
-<p>We left the dead Constable and the dying
-Sergeant at Knocklong Station. The people had
-fled in terror from the platform, and many of the
-passengers had jumped wildly from the train. Even
-the engine driver, who did not apparently hear the
-first shots, was about to start the train after the
-usual delay while the battle was still in progress,
-when a girl told him there was a battle going on.
-The same girl also states that she later saw Reilly
-praying near the station.</p>
-
-<p>Late that evening the dead body of Enright was
-taken in the train to Kilmallock, as was also
-Sergeant Wallace who lived until the following
-afternoon.</p>
-
-<p>At the inquest afterwards there was of course
-nobody but Reilly to give his version of the fight.
-One of the jurors boldly remarked to the police:
-“You are simply trying to paint your own story in
-your own way.” The police witnesses were not
-allowed by their superiors to answer any important
-questions calculated to show that we would not have
-shot their men if they had surrendered.</p>
-
-<p>The inquest was also noteworthy for the fact that
-the jury not only refused to bring in a verdict of
-murder, but spoke out. I quote the newspaper of
-22nd May:—“Condemning the arrest of respectable
-persons, and exasperating the people, and
-called for Self-Determination for Ireland, and
-blamed the Government for exposing the police to<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_92"></a>[92]</span>
-danger.” Our efforts were having their effect. The
-plain people were realising that ours was a fight for
-Irish Freedom. They realised too that we had no
-enmity against the police as such, if they confined
-themselves to the work of ordinary police; but when
-they became spies and soldiers in the pay of
-England we had to treat them accordingly.</p>
-
-<p>This is the true story of Knocklong, condemned
-as it was at the time by archbishop, priests and
-press—the same people who, two years later,
-would have treated us as heroes and loudly boasted
-of “the freedom we had won.” Time works
-wonders!</p>
-
-<p>The heroes of the fight were Sean Treacy and
-the two O’Briens. In the next chapter I must tell
-of our equally exciting escape from the scene, and
-the story our rescued comrade had to tell when we
-clasped his hand again.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_93"></a>[93]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XII">CHAPTER XII.<br>
-<span class="smaller">OUR ESCAPE FROM KNOCKLONG.</span></h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Before describing our escape from Knocklong
-and the adventures which ensued, I must pause to
-outline the experiences of our comrade, Sean
-Hogan, since his arrest a few days before. They
-throw an interesting sidelight on the methods of
-the Peelers, though at that period these methods
-were not so cold-blooded and barbarous as they
-became within a year.</p>
-
-<p>When the dance concluded that morning at
-Ballagh, and when the rest of us had gone on to
-O’Keeffe’s for a sleep, Sean Hogan went up the
-road with Brigid O’Keeffe to Meagher’s, of Annfield.
-This was the same Meagher family at whose
-house we had had such a narrow escape a few
-months before, when the girl’s waving handkerchief
-warned us of danger. Miss O’Keeffe was a cousin
-of the Meaghers, and she had decided to go up to
-their house for breakfast.</p>
-
-<p>So sleepy was Sean that he actually fell asleep
-at the table. When breakfast was finished he took
-off his belt and revolver and lay down for a rest on<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_94"></a>[94]</span>
-a sofa. Mr. Meagher and his two daughters were
-at this time busy about the farmyard preparing to
-send the milk to the creamery.</p>
-
-<p>Sean was suddenly roused from his sleep by the
-warning shout: “The police are coming up the
-road!” He jumped to his feet, put on his belt, and
-went to the door, revolver in hand.</p>
-
-<p>The police had been seen a good distance off by
-the Meaghers, but Sean could not see them from
-the house. Assuming that they were coming from
-the north side he ran from the house in the opposite
-direction, along a field which is much lower than
-the level of the road. When he had got to the end
-of the field he thought he was now out of danger,
-put away his revolver, and jumped on to the road—into
-the arms of six policemen. They had, as a
-matter of fact, been coming from the south, and
-had got a full view of him as he ran along the field
-from the house.</p>
-
-<p>Sean was at once handcuffed and his revolver
-seized. His captors marched him back the road to
-Meagher’s, just as another section of the police
-raiders came out the door, having hurriedly searched
-the house. They did not recognise Sean, and he refused
-to give his name. Just as he was being removed
-Miss O’Keeffe came and shook hands with him,
-saying, “Goodbye, Sean.” That was the only
-part of his name they knew. They apparently took
-her to be one of the Meagher family, for had they<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_95"></a>[95]</span>
-recognised her as one of the O’Keeffes they would
-probably have come down the road to search her
-own house, where we were at the time.</p>
-
-<p>Sergeant Wallace was in charge of the police
-party, and with him were Reilly and Ring amongst
-the others. They marched their prisoner to Roskeen
-Barracks, and at once sent word to Thurles that
-they had captured an armed man whose Christian
-name was Sean. A police van from Thurles soon
-arrived to escort their prisoner to that town, and
-one of the party recognised him as one of the much-wanted
-Soloheadbeg men.</p>
-
-<p>After his arrest one of the Meaghers ran down
-the road to Patrick Kinnane’s house, between
-Meagher’s and O’Keeffe’s, and asked him to
-convey word to the rest of us of Sean’s arrest.</p>
-
-<p>When Sean Hogan fell into their hands the
-Peelers adopted every subterfuge to get him to
-divulge information. First they tried to coax the
-information from him, for they saw he was but a
-mere boy. They failed in their efforts, and then
-their tactics changed. They struck him, and beat
-him unmercifully, but again they failed in their
-purpose; for if Sean Hogan was but a boy in years,
-he was a man in strength of character and loyalty
-to his comrades. Not a word would he tell even
-though they were to torture him to death.</p>
-
-<p>Then they tried still another plan. One of the
-policemen, pretending to be his friend and adviser,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_96"></a>[96]</span>
-told him quietly that he had been betrayed by Breen
-and Treacy, who, they said, were then on their way
-to London, having been granted a free pardon and
-a huge sum of money for the information they had
-given. This was followed by a straight hint that if
-Hogan would supplement the information by whatever
-knowledge he had of the organisation and its
-plans, he, too, would be well rewarded, and would
-find himself helped to leave the country instead of
-finding himself on the way to the gallows. But
-J. J. knew his old comrades too well to think for a
-moment that they had betrayed or deserted him.
-All the threats and cajolery of the Peelers were in
-vain. He refused to answer their question, and in
-the end, did not pretend to hear them.</p>
-
-<p>At last he was put on board the train for Cork
-Jail on the evening of the 13th May. Thurles is
-only about 30 miles from Knocklong, and by the
-time that station was reached history was once more
-to repeat itself. The night before when I rode by
-Ballyneety my mind had gone back to the days of
-Sarsfield; to the historic episode of the destruction
-of King William’s troop train. There was no story
-I loved more as a boy. It was a tale of daring and
-of dramatic triumph, and I pictured the dismay of
-the English troops whose password was “Sarsfield,”
-when in response to their challenge came
-the grim reply, “Sarsfield—and Sarsfield is the
-man!” Often when I was a boy I dreamed of how<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_97"></a>[97]</span>
-proud I would have been, were I with Sarsfield’s
-little band that night riding out from Limerick to
-strike terror into the hearts of the invaders.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp100" id="illus06" style="max-width: 43.75em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/illus06.jpg" alt="">
- <p class="caption">RAILWAY STATION, KNOCKLONG.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>On the train from Thurles to Knocklong Sergeant
-Wallace never ceased taunting Hogan with his
-plight. Repeatedly on the way he asked with savage
-mockery, “Where is Breen now?” and to add to
-the unhappiness of his helpless prisoner he accompanied
-each question with a prick of his bayonet.
-These are some of the things the world did not
-know, when it looked upon us for a long time as
-cold-blooded murderers. Many of our men can tell
-such tales, and produce their own bodies as the
-evidence, just as poor Hogan’s condition testified
-to us when we rescued him.</p>
-
-<p>Even as the train steamed into Knocklong,
-Wallace once more repeated his derisive question—“Where
-are Breen and Treacy now? They sold
-you to get you hanged.” Ere he had finished his
-question Breen and Treacy supplied him with the
-answer—an answer which he did not expect, and
-one which debarred him from further promotion in
-this world.</p>
-
-<p>And now to resume my narrative. When the last
-shot had been fired, and when Constable Reilly had
-fled from the scene, we moved from the platform.
-The people were terror-stricken. Many had fled in
-terror from the station. Others had taken shelter
-by the walls and the gatepiers. A few who were too<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_98"></a>[98]</span>
-dumfounded to take flight looked at us in amazement.
-None dared to approach us, and I am not
-surprised, for never before had old Galteemore
-looked down on such a strange party at a hitherto
-quiet and peaceful country station. There were
-nine of us all told, one a handcuffed prisoner and
-four of us wounded and bespattered with the
-blood of ourselves and our enemies.</p>
-
-<p>I was no longer able to walk, and I realised now
-that my last shot had been fired from my revolver,
-and that it might at any moment be found highly
-desirable to have it reloaded, but my right arm was
-dead and I could not reload. I looked around me.
-Outside the station I saw a motor car evidently
-waiting for somebody who was to come from the
-train. With my empty revolver raised in my left
-hand I held up the car. I think my appearance was
-enough to inspire any Christian with terror, not to
-speak of levelling my gun. A fit of dizziness,
-probably the effects of my wounds and loss of blood,
-had come over me on the platform, as I made for
-the gate, and I had fallen heavily against the wall,
-and blood was gushing from my head. I could
-scarcely walk. I groped my way along. The people
-around me ran at the very sight of me, many of
-them shrieking. At last somebody came to my
-assistance. He was dressed in khaki—an Irishman
-in England’s army! The very irony of it makes me
-smile to-day. I think he was the same man who had<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_99"></a>[99]</span>
-shouted “Up the Republic” on the train, though
-I am not sure, for some people told me afterwards
-that there was an American soldier also in khaki at
-the station that evening—I believe, too, that the
-soldier who cheered for the Republic was afterwards
-courtmartialled by his officers—but whoever he was
-that helped me, if his eyes catch these words, let
-him accept my thanks; I forgot to show him my
-gratitude at the time.</p>
-
-<p>Leaning on his arm I struggled from the station
-premises on to the road. He half linked and half
-carried me for I was now growing weaker every
-moment. Probably I was loosing my senses too, for
-I forgot all about using the motor car I had held
-up, and I left it behind.</p>
-
-<p>The rest of the party were outside on the road.
-With a butcher’s knife, procured from a man named
-Walsh, they broke the handcuffs that bound Sean
-Hogan, and he was once more a free man. The
-unwounded men took charge of him and brought
-him to a place of safety.</p>
-
-<p>The other four of us—Ned O’Brien, Treacy,
-Scanlon and I—faced for Shanahan’s. I scarcely
-remember that journey; it was growing dark, and
-we did not know the road well. I was losing blood
-all the time. It must have taken us hours to get to
-the house. We were all weak. In a field on the way<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_100"></a>[100]</span>
-we met some lads from the neighbourhood. They
-came to our assistance and helped us to reach our
-destination.</p>
-
-<p>I was at once put to bed, and the priest and
-doctor were sent for. Both soon arrived. Dr.
-Hennessy, of Galbally, was very kind to me, but
-both priest and doctor regarded my case as hopeless.
-I was told that I had only about twenty-four
-hours to live, as the bullet had gone right through
-my body piercing the lung, and I had lost an
-enormous quantity of blood. That news was
-cheerless enough, but I was not even to get the
-twenty-four hours to die in peace.</p>
-
-<p>When I arrived at Shanahan’s my comrades had
-at once mobilised an armed guard under a chap
-named Clancy, of Cush, Knocklong. I was not to
-be permitted to fall into the hands of the British
-alive. Scouts were sent out to watch all the
-approaches to the house. We knew that the country
-would be swept with columns of troops and police.
-All through the night—as I learned later—reinforcements
-were rushed to the neighbourhood, and the
-police garrisons were strengthened at Doon, Oola,
-Galbally, and all the local villages and towns. For
-days afterwards a house to house search was made
-in that part of East Limerick and South Tipperary,
-and even the graveyards were inspected for fresh<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_101"></a>[101]</span>
-graves, as the newspapers reported that “two of
-the attackers were believed to have been mortally
-wounded.”</p>
-
-<p>Nor can I help recalling at this stage an incident
-that happened on that memorable evening. I was
-told afterwards on the best authority. Four policemen
-from Elton, a few miles from Knocklong, heard
-the firing at the station, and took to their heels back
-to their barracks. There they remained, and with
-the door locked, until County Inspector Egan
-arrived in a motor car and broke it in, shouting,
-“You cowards! Here you are hiding, while four
-of our men are shot, and the murderers at large!”</p>
-
-<p>But a few hours after my arrival at Shanahan’s,
-when the priest and doctor had attended me, our
-scouts rushed in with word that the enemy raiding
-parties were hot on our heels. A hurried council of
-war was held. My comrades procured a motor car
-and carried me off once more, without even taking
-time to say a prayer for the man who was to die
-next day. They drove me right through the town
-of Kilmallock, and I did not know till the next
-afternoon that we had actually passed the R.I.C.
-barracks where the dead Constable Enright and the
-dying sergeant had been removed from Knocklong.
-But there was no other means of escape—we had
-to get out of the net that was closing round Knocklong.
-We took our chance, and luck favoured us.
-My comrades fully realised the seriousness of the<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_102"></a>[102]</span>
-situation and the risks they were taking in motoring
-through the town of Kilmallock, but I was blissfully
-unconscious of everything save the fact that I was
-soon to “cross the Jordan.” Our boys always believed
-that he who puts his hand to the plough must
-not turn back. They never knew what “going back”
-meant. Their guiding spirit was “On, always on.”
-That was the spirit that carried them through the
-most glorious fight in Irish history. It is the spirit
-that will carry them to the end.</p>
-
-<p>When I woke up next day I was once more in
-West Limerick, under the care of Sean Finn.</p>
-
-<p>Let me pause again to tell you the sequel to the
-Knocklong rescue. All of us who took part were
-either already on the run, or had to get on the
-run henceforth, except Sean Lynch and J. J.
-O’Brien, who returned to their business. Both of
-them afterwards joined Dinny Lacy’s famous South
-Tipperary column and fought all through the Black
-and Tan war. Ned O’Brien and Scanlon had shortly
-afterwards to escape to America, as their health
-was affected. They are now back in Ireland.</p>
-
-<p>A year later a brother of Scanlon’s was shot dead
-by the British in Limerick City while a prisoner in
-their hands. After the rescue several arrests were
-made by the British on suspicion. All, except three,
-were eventually released; but poor Martin Foley
-and Maher, after being held in prison for nearly
-two years, were hanged in Dublin, on June 6th,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_103"></a>[103]</span>
-1921—a month before the truce. The third
-prisoner, an ex-soldier (British), was tried but
-acquitted.</p>
-
-<p>In West Limerick my comrades and I received
-refuge and hospitality. Sean Finn was kindness
-personified, and indeed all around him were equally
-good to us. Especially kind and good-natured
-were the Sheehans, Keanes, Longs, Duffys and
-Kennedys; but our good times were not to last long.
-The enemy was once more on our track. We learned
-of all his movements from our Secret Service, for
-you must understand that no matter where we went
-it was necessary for us to keep in touch with our
-Intelligence Department.</p>
-
-<p>We moved farther west, on towards the Kerry
-border. Even here we found the trail was too hot,
-and we had to cross the border into Kerry itself.
-By this time I was well on the road to recovery.
-Then, as at a later stage, I acquired the habit of
-breaking all medical precedents, and insisting on
-living when, according to all the rules of the game,
-I should have died. By the time I got to Kerry I
-was even able to walk a little, though I needed
-some support. But I could not walk far. This was
-a greater drawback to us, because the English
-troops were so busy scouring the countryside for us,
-day and night, that we dare not think of using
-motor cars or vehicles of any kind, the roads being
-out of bounds to us.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_104"></a>[104]</span></p>
-
-<p>One bright feature always lightened our load.
-It was Sean Treacy’s sense of humour. No matter
-how dark the outlook Sean would have his little
-joke, and we had to laugh with him. At Knocklong
-he had been shot through the teeth and mouth, and
-for a long time afterwards his mouth was very
-painful. At the time I was still suffering severely
-from my wound through the lung and body. Hence
-the difficulties for both of us for satisfying our
-appetites. “Dan,” said Sean to me, “I wish I
-had your big head for half an hour. I am frightfully
-hungry, but I can’t eat. You can eat all right, but
-you won’t.” Another night on a different occasion
-we were cycling through Cullen to Tipperary. This
-was a very dangerous district for us, because it was
-in the Martial Law area, and was only a few miles
-either from Soloheadbeg or Knocklong. Besides,
-being near our native district, we always ran the risk
-of being seen and known by too many people.
-Suddenly while we were riding with all speed Sean
-asked us to pull up. We were somewhat surprised,
-because we knew how much any delay might mean
-for all of us, but we dismounted. It was raining like
-the very deluge at the same time. Sean turned to
-each one of us in turn and asked us solemnly for a
-pin. Each of us said we had no such commodity,
-the truth being that nobody wished to open his coat
-on such a night.</p>
-
-<p>“What do you want a pin for?” I asked him.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_105"></a>[105]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Well,” he replied, “I’m afraid my tie isn’t
-hanging straight!”</p>
-
-<p>I never felt so much inclined to give my old
-comrade a punch. I am sure it was the same with
-the others; but we had to laugh as we mounted and
-rode ahead making remarks which were none too
-complimentary about some people’s conceit. Such
-little incidents helped us on our road, and often
-helped to scatter the gloom that surrounded us.</p>
-
-<p>But to resume our story. In Kerry we remained
-for some days, occasionally amusing ourselves by
-reading the many grotesque accounts that were
-printed of the Knocklong rescue. Day after day too
-we read of the denunciation of our terrible crime (of
-saving our young comrade), by priests, bishops and
-politicians. We read the King’s message of sympathy
-to the relatives of his poor hirelings, and
-also Lord French’s. Most of the Kerry people with
-whom we came in contact were very kind to us;
-above all, we can never forget the O’Connors, the
-Hickeys and the Ahearns.</p>
-
-<p>After our stay in Kerry we returned to County
-Limerick, keeping along the banks of the Shannon
-all the time. Our wounds were by this time healing
-rapidly, and we were feeling strong again. We
-used to go in for a dip nearly every day, and we
-fished quite a good deal. We had to be doing
-something. None of us could ever stand a day of
-inactivity.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_106"></a>[106]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XIII">CHAPTER XIII.<br>
-<span class="smaller">MANY CLOSE SHAVES.</span></h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>One day while we were still in West Limerick we
-had what was probably our narrowest escape after
-the Knocklong affair. In was in June, 1919. Sheer
-luck drove us half a mile outside a great encircling
-movement made to capture us.</p>
-
-<p>This was the sixth great attempt by the enemy
-to net us, and each time they engaged thousands of
-troops—to catch four of us. They knew well by
-now that each of the four of us would offer armed
-resistance, and that if luck was at all favourable
-many of them would fall never to rise, before they
-got us dead or alive. Liberal rewards were now
-offered publicly and privately for any information
-concerning our movements. Our descriptions
-were published broadcast, and even dropped from
-military aeroplanes, with the promise of British gold
-for anyone that would inform on us. It was a special
-duty for every policeman in Ireland, and every
-intelligence officer in the British army of occupation
-to learn our description. About this time, too, the
-British Government was perfecting its Secret<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_107"></a>[107]</span>
-Service machinery in Ireland. There had always
-been a costly Secret Service organisation maintained
-for generations; but it was not dangerous
-work, relating mainly to the activities of harmless
-politicians. Now, however, the work was getting
-more dangerous. Besides, our Secret Service was
-now becoming a thing to be reckoned with; Dublin
-Castle had to bestir itself. As we well knew, the
-officials there were time and again severely
-reprimanded for their failure to catch us. They
-always replied that the people would give no information,
-that informers were very few and very
-cautious, and that Scotland Yard might be asked to
-give some help. They hinted at the same time that
-a few Irishmen living in England might be
-approached to undertake Secret Service work, as
-very few could now be got in Ireland.</p>
-
-<p>It was in the summer of this year that the British
-Government therefore reorganised its Secret Service
-in Ireland, relying mainly on ex-soldiers of Irish
-birth. The newspapers of the time can tell how
-many score of them paid the price of their treachery
-during the ensuing two years. We found them all
-out in one way or another. If one reason more than
-another accounts for the success of the I.R.A., it
-is that we met and broke their Secret Service at
-every move, until in the end there was no such thing
-in practice as a British Intelligence Corps.</p>
-
-<p>One word more on this subject. I know that<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_108"></a>[108]</span>
-many people at the time were surprised at the
-number of men who were found with the label on
-their dead bodies—“Spies beware—executed by
-the I.R.A.” Some people wondered if any mistakes
-were made, if any of these men were executed
-without sufficient evidence. I can say that of the
-cases that came under my knowledge there was
-always evidence enough to convince the most
-scrupulous. We made no mistakes, unless indeed
-we allowed many to escape against whom there was
-ample evidence, though we gave them the benefit
-of the slightest doubt.</p>
-
-<p>But the “Knocklong Gang,” as I believe we
-were sometimes called, always outwitted the spies
-and the battalions sent to round them up. Often, I
-know, they got fairly good information about us. At
-this time to which I have referred—June, 1919—for
-instance, it is probably true that they knew we
-were sometimes in West Limerick or North Kerry,
-near the mouth of the Shannon. After that big raid,
-which we so narrowly missed, we deemed it wise to
-change our quarters once more—and we crossed
-into East Clare, still hugging the banks of the
-Shannon. We kept ourselves fit by plenty of
-exercise, mostly swimming, for we had an idea that
-a good stroke in the water might at some time or
-other help us in getting out of a tight corner. Nobody
-could say that we did not live the healthy life
-of primitive men at this time. Many a day we enjoyed<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_109"></a>[109]</span>
-ten or twelve hours of a glorious summer sunbath.
-One day while in Clare we were basking
-beside the Shannon when a boat manned by police
-passed right beside us. We took no particular
-notice of it at the time, thinking the whole thing but
-a mere coincidence. When we got back to the
-house in which we were staying that evening we
-learned to our surprise that the boat was part of a
-search party that had got on our trail once more.
-They never suspected who we were, so that once
-more our recklessness had saved us—or them?</p>
-
-<p>Probably the police had their eyes searching
-round the corners of rocks, or peering under bushes
-where they expected we should be hiding. It would
-amaze them to know we were often within earshot
-of their own barracks. It is a positive fact that often
-a single brick alone separated us from a police
-garrison, and more than once we were interested
-spectators watching from a window lorries laden
-with troops going out in search of us.</p>
-
-<p>There is another possible explanation of such
-incidents as that on the Shannon. I am sure that
-more than one policeman whom we met on a
-country road suspected who we were; but these
-Peelers often considered discretion the better part
-of valour. We were never asked to produce visiting
-cards. Many a policeman in such circumstances
-would feel convinced that he would not be serving<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_110"></a>[110]</span>
-his wife and family by attempting to arrest us. I’m
-not saying he was wrong either.</p>
-
-<p>In a short time Clare became too hot for us. The
-Brennan Brothers were not on the best of terms
-with the British garrisons in that county, and finally
-relations became so strained that the British proclaimed
-Martial Law there too. Martial Law and
-ourselves were never very good friends; perhaps it
-was that we knew each other too well. Anyhow, we
-crossed the Shannon once more, and this time found
-ourselves in North Tipperary.</p>
-
-<p>It was at the house of a family called Whelehan
-that I first came in contact with Ernie O’Malley.
-Whelehans were very kind to us. While I was there
-“Widger” Meagher and Frank McGrath—both
-famous athletes, and the latter Brigade Commandant
-of the I.R.A. in North Tipperary—visited
-us.</p>
-
-<p>We spent a while in Mid. and South Tipperary
-too. At this time money was one of our great needs.
-Many, we knew, would gladly give it to us, but it
-was not easy to get in touch with the right people.
-The people we met most were, like ourselves, on
-the run and on the rocks.</p>
-
-<p>Eamon O Duibhir, of Ballagh, in whose house,
-you will remember, the dance was the night Sean
-Hogan was captured, was a good friend to us, and
-supplied us with money. Once we had to sleep in
-an old castle—Castle Blake, near Rockwell College.<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_111"></a>[111]</span>
-This old ruined castle was later a good friend to
-many of the boys on the run, as it had a kind of
-a secret apartment. At an early stage in the Civil
-War it was the scene of a sad tragedy when two
-Republicans—Theo English, of Tipperary, and
-Mick Summers—were surprised by Free State
-troops, and killed in the encounter which followed.</p>
-
-<p>At last we got restive again. The country showed
-signs of following our example, but at this time the
-signs were few—an odd attack on a police barrack
-and the capture of a rifle or two from a soldier here
-and there. We felt the time had come for more
-energetic and general action. We knew we could
-not remain any way safe within Tipperary or over
-the border of Offaly. We discussed our position
-time and again, and always agreed we could not
-continue the life we were now living. To escape
-being shipped or exiled to America by those who
-should have stood by us, we had to avoid Dublin,
-and to remain in some remote part of the country.
-We were no longer content to accept this condition.
-We wanted to know how exactly the country stood,
-how we stood, and how the whole Volunteer Army
-stood. At last Sean Treacy and I, leaving
-Robinson and Hogan in North Tipperary, cycled
-straight into Dublin. We had no adventure on the
-way. At Maynooth we called on Donal Buckley,
-a member of Dail Eireann, and a man who had
-walked to Dublin to take part in the Rising of 1916.<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_112"></a>[112]</span>
-He proved as good as his record. His house was
-put at our disposal, and we stayed three or four
-days there, though he tried to keep us longer.</p>
-
-<p>In Dublin we headed for Phil Shanahan’s again.
-Every Tipperary man who was on the run, or who
-wanted a good dinner, faced for Phil’s. Later we
-met Mick Collins, then Adjutant-General of the
-Irish Volunteers. We had a long discussion and we
-spoke plainly. Finally Mick undertook to arrange
-that we should stay in Dublin. With this assurance
-we mounted our bicycles again, and rode back to
-the country for Seumas Robinson and Sean Hogan.</p>
-
-<p>At this time I was dressed as a priest. That was
-not an uncommon disguise at the time. The Peelers
-and soldiers probably suspected that a good many
-of the priests they saw travelling knew more about
-guns than Theology, but seldom held any of them
-up. They were not then at open war with men and
-women, priests and children. There would be too
-much of a National uproar if a priest was arrested,
-and as the old Peelers were still overwhelmingly
-Catholic they gave suspicious-looking priests the
-benefit of the doubt. Next year they not only
-arrested priests, but imprisoned several, and murdered
-three of them.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp48" id="illus07" style="max-width: 28.125em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/illus07.jpg" alt="">
- <p class="caption">SEAMUS ROBINSON.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>On this occasion when I reached Maynooth I
-discovered my back tyre was badly punctured. I
-did not think it becoming my clerical dignity to
-mend the puncture myself, and besides I had no<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_113"></a>[113]</span>
-patience with that kind of work; so I wheeled my
-machine to a local cycle mechanic’s shop and asked
-him to repair it at once. Apparently he was a man
-who believed in making every customer take his
-turn, for he told me he could not do the job for
-a few hours. I pointed out to him that I was going
-on urgent business, but it was all no use. Finally
-he advised me to go to the College—Maynooth
-College, the world’s greatest college for the training
-of Catholic priests—where they would easily
-get someone to repair it. In my rage at this refusal
-I forgot for a moment that I was in the garb of a
-minister of peace and goodwill. I told that cycle
-mechanic what I thought of him in language more
-forcible than priestly, and I am sure the poor man
-was amazed and shocked at the liberties which
-present-day clerics take with the English language.
-He was still staring at me in amazement when I
-wheeled my wounded bicycle from the door.</p>
-
-<p>I had no desire to visit the College. Amongst
-the students I would find many friends willing to
-help me, but I was afraid the President and the
-Professors might not be too well pleased to find
-a gunman masquerading as a clergyman, and I
-doubted if I would be able to play the part and
-pretend I was a priest. I need hardly say I was no
-master of Latin, and I always associated priests
-with that language.</p>
-
-<p>Still, I had to get the puncture mended. In a<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_114"></a>[114]</span>
-fit of bravado I turned towards the police barracks.
-At the door I met a policeman who raised his hat
-to me, and with a show of dignity that would have
-done credit to an archbishop I acknowledged his
-sign of respect.</p>
-
-<p>I told him my difficulties. Could he help me with
-the puncture? “To be sure, Father,” he replied,
-“I can get you all that you want in no time; and
-if your Reverence won’t mind I’ll give you a hand
-at the job.”</p>
-
-<p>In two minutes the whole garrison were out
-tripping over one another in their eagerness to get
-solution and patches and the other necessaries.
-Inside the door I could see dozens of printed notices
-and official documents pasted on the walls.
-Amongst them, I have no doubt, was an elaborate
-description of Dan Breen, and a promise of a huge
-reward for his capture.</p>
-
-<p>When the job was finished I thanked the Peelers
-most profusely for their kindness and rode away.
-I suppose it was discourteous of me not to have left
-my card with the sergeant.</p>
-
-<p>That night I reached the borders of Tipperary
-and Offaly and met the others. A few days later
-all four of us were safely settled in Dublin, which
-was to be our new headquarters for months to come.
-Within a few weeks we were planning to arouse the
-world by shooting the very head of the British
-Government in Ireland.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_115"></a>[115]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XIV">CHAPTER XIV.<br>
-<span class="smaller">ON THE TRAIL OF LORD FRENCH.</span></h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>When we got to Dublin in the Autumn of 1919,
-there were many signs that the war with the British
-was soon to develop. Any good judge of the
-situation at the time could have foreseen the intensive
-guerilla struggle that was to ensue for a
-year and a half. Raids for arms were becoming
-more numerous, and attacks on police patrols were
-by no means rare. But open warfare had not yet
-developed. British soldiers and police could go
-about with comparative safety. Our great danger
-while in Dublin was from the “G” men, Dublin’s
-Scotland Yard. These were the detective branch
-of the Dublin Metropolitan Police, paid by the ratepayers
-of Dublin to track down criminals, but now
-mainly employed on political or military work. So
-far from devoting their attentions to the criminal
-classes we knew that many of them actually made
-use of criminals as “touts” or “spotters” to
-shadow men, or to get information. In the Autumn
-of 1919 the “G” men, of whom there were a few<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_116"></a>[116]</span>
-score all told, were principally engaged in assisting
-and guiding the British military in midnight raids on
-the homes of Sinn Feiners, or in raids to seize Sinn
-Fein literature. They even made their way into
-Sinn Fein gatherings to take a note of the speeches,
-and though many of them were known by appearance
-to almost every person in Dublin they were not
-afraid, for at that time they seldom got more than
-a hiding if identified. Day after day one read in
-the papers of raids on the houses of inoffensive
-people who never handled firearms in their lives.
-It was this form of petty tyranny that goaded many
-into action. Boys and girls, not to speak of men
-and women, were imprisoned for such offences as
-having a copy of an Irish song. It was more than
-flesh and blood could stand.</p>
-
-<p>Towards the end of the year several notoriously
-obnoxious “G” men were shot dead or wounded
-in the streets, and in every case their assailants got
-safely away. Every other means of bringing these
-men to their senses, or making them realise that
-they were playing the part of spies and traitors had
-been tried but failed. As a result of the wholesale
-attacks made upon them it was in the end found
-impossible for them to live in their homes, or even
-to venture on the streets, and they took up their
-abode in Dublin Castle, whence they issued forth
-now and again to accompany raiding parties of
-armed troops. Many of them too resigned when<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_117"></a>[117]</span>
-things became too hot for them. I must say, however
-that a small number who did not resign were
-never molested, because they confined themselves
-solely to their ordinary work of arresting criminals.
-These men had an understanding with our side that
-they could go about their work provided they never
-indulged in political activities, or assisted the
-military. A few others, who remained in the force,
-afterwards joined our Secret Service, and gave invaluable
-assistance in the way of official documents
-and information that they were in a position to
-obtain. For obvious reasons I cannot go into details
-on these matters.</p>
-
-<p>When the four of us from Tipperary had become
-almost settled down in Dublin, and knew the city
-well, we were soon kept busy, as we wanted to be.
-Now and again a “G” man got on our track,
-but we soon dealt with him. We walked about
-Dublin quite freely and without any disguise. It
-was a common trick on the part of the R.I.C. to
-send a man who knew us up from County Tipperary
-for a few days in the hope of seeing us. These men
-soon learned sense. They returned home as quickly
-as they could, for it would not serve their health to
-get too close on our heels. Probably too a few of
-them who may have chanced to see us from time
-to time had wisdom enough not to know us.</p>
-
-<p>We had many good friends in Dublin. Phil
-Shanahan’s was a great haunt of ours, and one of<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_118"></a>[118]</span>
-the most amusing recollections I have of that time
-is a conversation I had there one evening with a
-D.M.P. man who, of course, had no notion who I
-was. He discussed the political situation with me
-very confidentially, even the Soloheadbeg and
-Knocklong affairs. He was in complete agreement
-with the Sinn Feiners—he guessed I was one—but
-he couldn’t agree to the taking of life. I think I
-gave the poor man the impression that my views
-were the same as his own.</p>
-
-<p>Ryan’s, of the Monument Creamery, in Parnell
-street, and Seumas Kirwan’s were also open houses
-to us, besides many others that I will mention in
-the course of my narrative. Of course we frequently
-met kindred spirits like Dick McKee and Peadar
-Clancy and Tom Keogh, for at that time the
-number of active gunmen ready for any risk in the
-country’s cause was small. Many of those who later
-proved their mettle did not get the chance at that
-time, principally because those who were in favour
-of active measures were few and far between. The
-attitude of the Headquarters’ Staff of the I.R.A.
-I shall have occasion to refer to very soon.</p>
-
-<p>In the autumn my comrades and I had long and
-serious discussions about the policy of shooting
-policemen and soldiers. We felt it was not enough
-in itself. They, we argued, were but the tools of
-higher men. Their loss did not trouble England
-very much, for she could always get more dupes.<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_119"></a>[119]</span>
-Why, we asked ourselves, should we not strike at
-the very heads of the British Government in
-Ireland? It would arouse the world more to take
-an interest in Ireland’s case; it would strike terror
-into the hearts of English statesmen, and it would
-prove more effective in helping to make British Rule
-in Ireland impossible. England could carry on all
-right with a few policemen less; it would be more
-difficult to carry on without a Lord Lieutenant.
-Besides, there were thousands of policemen; but
-there were only a few who might become Lord
-Lieutenant, and they would think twice of taking
-the job if they had to risk being shot.</p>
-
-<p>As a result of these discussions we finally decided
-to make preparations for an attack on Lord French,
-the Lord Lieutenant himself. Brave and trusted
-men to whom we communicated our plans readily
-agreed.</p>
-
-<p>For three long months we watched, planned and
-waited for him. We suffered many bitter disappointments
-waiting. He was very rarely seen about now
-and was always accompanied by a heavy escort.
-Great secrecy was observed about his movements,
-though our Secret Service kept us well posted.
-Even the public functions usually patronised by
-Viceroys were rarely attended by Lord French.
-There were many reasons for that, which do not
-concern my story.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_120"></a>[120]</span></p>
-
-<p>He little knew what narrow escapes he had
-during these three months. Twice or three times
-we missed him by a street—the altering of his route
-by one corner. That, by the way, was a frequent
-plan of his—to change his journey from the original
-programme. It was a trick to upset any plans made
-against him on the strength of information supplied
-from inside. It showed what little trust he had in
-those around him. On one occasion we missed him
-by barely one minute.</p>
-
-<p>During those three months, the last months of
-1919, we had no less than twelve different ambushes
-planned to intercept him. But on each one of the
-twelve occasions he either failed to come or arrived
-too late or too early for our purpose. These plans
-were connected with affairs of the city—public
-functions, or visits to private houses. We were
-naturally hampered, because we could not afford to
-hang around a particular spot too long—our movements
-would lead to suspicion, and probably to a
-sudden swoop by the military.</p>
-
-<p>The first occasion that we were lying in wait
-Mick Collins was with us. So was Tom MacCurtain,
-Commandant of the 1st Cork (City) Brigade, who,
-in March of the following year, when he was Lord
-Mayor of Cork, was murdered in his own home
-by the police. Poor Dick McKee was also there.
-He was then Commandant of the Dublin Brigade,
-and never believed in asking his men to take risks<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_121"></a>[121]</span>
-he was not prepared to take himself. Dick was
-murdered together with Peadar Clancy, while a
-prisoner in the hands of the British a year later.</p>
-
-<p>On another occasion I remember vainly waiting
-with Peadar Clancy for two hours outside the door
-of a Merrion Square doctor whom French
-occasionally visited. On November 11th, the
-Anniversary of the Armistice, the Lord Lieutenant
-was to attend a banquet in Trinity College. We
-had every hope of intercepting him that night. Our
-plan was to bomb his car as he passed Grattan
-Bridge, for we knew the very hour he was due to
-travel along the quays from the Viceregal Lodge to
-the College.</p>
-
-<p>So certain were we that everything would work
-out according to plan that some of our men in the
-vicinity of the Bridge, within a hundred yards of
-Dublin Castle, had actually drawn and thrown away
-the pins from their bombs. It was a bitterly cold
-night, and there they stood with their fingers
-pressed on the springs of the cold metal ready to
-release the bombs. But he never came. For almost
-two hours our men had to endure the agony of
-holding the springs of the bombs, and in the end
-they had to make their escape as best they could,
-still gripping the cold bombs.</p>
-
-<p>A fortnight later French was expected at the
-Castle, and of course his journey would take him
-across the same bridge. We knew of the arrangements,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_122"></a>[122]</span>
-and again took up our positions. The
-weather was bitterly cold. It was in the
-early forenoon, and suddenly snow began to
-fall. But we did not mind the snow. The
-job we were bent upon was too serious to be
-interfered with by such trifles. Some of us paced
-the bridge in the blinding snow, and wondered were
-we to be disappointed again, for the hour fixed for
-his arrival had passed. While we were on the bridge
-a friend who recognised us passed, and, evidently
-realising that we were on some job remarked with
-pointed sarcasm, “That’s a most convenient spot
-you are taking shelter from the snow!” His words
-brought us to a sense of our position. Anybody in
-the shops round the bridge would have suspected
-us at once. As there seemed no use in waiting any
-longer we went off. Five minutes later lorry loads
-of military swooped down on the bridge, and held
-up and searched everyone in the neighbourhood.
-Detectives who had been posted near the entrance
-to Dublin Castle had seen us on the bridge, and at
-once telephoned to the Viceregal Lodge, with the
-result that French cancelled his appointment, and
-the troops came instead. We had just got away in
-time. Another instance of our luck!</p>
-
-<p>On all these occasions our information about
-Lord French’s arrangements was absolutely reliable.<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_123"></a>[123]</span>
-No doubt he often changed his plans at the
-last moment, fearing that our sources of knowledge
-were as sound as indeed they always proved.</p>
-
-<p>Personal reasons, which do not concern me, also
-often caused his plans to be altered, while of course
-the advice of touts and spies had its effect. It
-certainly was an eloquent commentary on British
-rule in Ireland that the head of the Government
-carried his life in his hands whenever he ventured
-through the streets of the capital. As everybody
-knew, he was wise enough to venture out only as
-seldom as he could, even when accompanied by a
-huge escort; though I have no reason to think that
-personally he was not a brave man.</p>
-
-<p>At last when our patience was almost exhausted,
-we got information that gave us hope of achieving
-our purpose. It was in December, 1919. The
-newspapers of these days seldom gave any information
-at all regarding the Viceroy’s movements.
-Even when he crossed to England occasionally the
-newspapers were not informed until he was safely
-back in Phoenix Park. They were not encouraged
-to trace his movements. Sometimes, however, the
-newspapers were supplied with information intended
-deliberately to mislead the public in general, and
-the I.R.A. in particular. At the time of which I
-speak the Irish newspapers had informed their<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_124"></a>[124]</span>
-readers that Lord French was away out of the
-country. I think they actually stated that he was
-cruising somewhere in the North Sea.</p>
-
-<p>We knew better. He was, as a matter of fact,
-enjoying himself with a select house party of male
-and female intimates, at his country residence,
-French Park, Co. Roscommon. We knew a good
-deal more about Lord French’s life than the public
-ever suspected; but my purpose is not to give a
-history of the Viceroy’s private affairs, except in
-so far as they concern my narrative. Sufficient to
-say that on this occasion we knew every member of
-the select few at French Park, Boyle.</p>
-
-<p>Frenchpark is a remote country district. While
-the Lord Lieutenant was in occupation the house
-was garrisoned by a strong force. But that garrison
-we felt we could easily overpower did we so desire.
-The situation of the house too would favour our
-escape when we had accomplished our object. We
-would have no difficulty in covering the journey
-from Dublin to Roscommon, and we believed we
-would get back almost as easily. We could readily
-go by roads which would avoid the towns, for it
-is a much easier matter for wanted men to go from
-Dublin to the West than it would be, say, to go
-South or North.</p>
-
-<p>Why, then, it may be asked, with all the circumstances
-in our favour did we not attempt to shoot
-Lord French when he was in Roscommon?</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_125"></a>[125]</span></p>
-
-<p>The answer is simple. We knew he would be
-returning to Dublin on a particular date, and we
-decided to attack him almost at his own door, and
-beside the city. Why? Because what we had in
-mind was the effect such an incident would create.
-Against the old soldier himself we had no personal
-spite, but he was the head of the alien Government
-that held our country in bondage, and we knew that
-his death would arouse the world to interest itself
-in our fight for freedom. His name was known
-throughout the world. The Phoenix Park was as
-well known to the world as Hyde Park. Think then
-of the sensation that would be created when this
-man, a Field Marshal of the British Army, and
-head of the Government in Ireland, was shot dead
-at the gate of the Phoenix Park, in the capital
-of the country he was supposed to rule, and within
-a stone’s throw of half a dozen of England’s military
-garrisons—at a spot where within five minutes
-could be mustered twenty thousand British troops,
-with every implement of modern warfare. The risk
-to ourselves was greater, but the moral effect
-would be worth the price. The world would sit up
-and say: “The men who have done this are no
-cowards; their country must have a grievance;
-what is it?” That is the result on which we
-reckoned, and our reasons for finally deciding to
-plan our coup for Ashtown. I shall describe (in
-the next chapter) our attack, and its many sequels.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_126"></a>[126]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XV">CHAPTER XV.<br>
-<span class="smaller">THE BATTLE OF ASHTOWN.</span></h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Lord French was due to arrive back in the
-Viceregal Lodge on Friday, 19th December, 1919.
-That arrangement was kept a dead secret, and even
-the higher officials in the Lodge and in Dublin
-Castle were unaware of his plans. But we were
-well aware of the arrangement. The time has not
-yet come when the source of our information may
-be disclosed.</p>
-
-<p>We not only knew the day but the hour. Further,
-we knew that when Lord French returned by the
-Midland Railway he would not travel into the
-terminus of that line (Broadstone Station) in the
-city, but would alight at the little wayside station
-of Ash town. So we laid our plans.</p>
-
-<p>Ashtown is about four English miles from the
-centre of the city, but only about two miles from the
-northern residential quarter. You travel to it along
-the main road that leads from Dublin to the Northwest
-of Ireland, one of the best trunk roads in the
-country, passing in a straight line into the heart of<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_127"></a>[127]</span>
-Meath, through Navan, Kells, Cavan, and on to
-Enniskillen. About two and a half miles after you
-leave the tramway line you come to Ashtown. The
-station itself is not on the main road—it is about
-two hundred yards down on a little by-road to the
-right. There is no village of Ashtown; the district
-has fewer houses than probably any other place so
-near the city. There seems to have been no reason
-for making a station there except, perhaps, for
-loading and unloading horses for racing and hunting.</p>
-
-<p>To most people Ashtown simply means one
-house—Kelly’s publichouse, commonly known as
-the “Half-way House.” It stands just at the
-cross-roads where you turn to your right off the
-main road to go to the station. That little by-road,
-which, as I have said, leads on the right hand side
-to the railway, cuts across the main road almost at
-right angles and leads on the left to the Phoenix
-Park and to Castleknock. Thus when one travels
-out from the city and stands at the cross-roads
-beside the Half-way House one is within two
-hundred yards of the station on the right, and within
-one hundred yards of the Phoenix Park gate on the
-left. At this gate there then stood a Police Barrack,
-where three or four D.M.P. men used to be
-stationed, but the barrack was closed a few days
-before our adventure. A quarter of a mile inside
-the gate was the Viceregal Lodge.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_128"></a>[128]</span></p>
-
-<p>Of houses there were very few in the vicinity.
-The only one near the Half-way House was the
-residence of Mr. Peard, the owner of the Park
-Racecourse which adjoins the main road. On the
-city side of Ashtown there were several institutions—such
-as orphanages and convents—the nearest
-being the famous Deaf and Dumb Institute kept
-by the Christian Brothers. Away to the right of
-the railway is the famous Dunsink Observatory.</p>
-
-<p>I have thought it necessary to describe the spot
-in this detail, because even to Dublin people the
-Ashtown district is comparatively unfamiliar.</p>
-
-<p>The special train in which the Viceroy was to
-return was due to arrive at Ashtown at 11.40 a.m.
-Half an hour before that our party had arrived on
-the scene. We had started from Fleming’s, in
-Drumcondra, that morning, and at Mrs. Martin
-Conlan’s, of Phibsboro’, I had stopped for a cup
-of tea. There were eleven of us all told in the
-exploit—namely, Mick McDonnell, Tom Keogh
-(later a Free State Officer killed in the Civil War);
-Martin Savage (killed that day); Sean Treacy
-(killed in action in Talbot Street, Dublin, ten months
-later); Seumas Robinson, Sean Hogan, Paddy
-Daly (later a Major-General in the Free State
-Army); Vincent Byrne, Tom Kilkoyne, Joe
-Leonard and myself.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp48" id="illus08" style="max-width: 28.125em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/illus08.jpg" alt="">
- <p class="caption">MARTIN SAVAGE.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>We cycled out the main road—the Cabra Road—going
-in pairs at different intervals so as not to<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_129"></a>[129]</span>
-arouse suspicion. We left our bicycles outside
-Kelly’s, for at any hour of the day it was not unusual
-to see a dozen bicycles outside that tavern
-while the owners are refreshing themselves within.
-We knew every inch of the locality, every bush and
-turn, every nook and corner. As a further advantage
-we knew the exact order in which Lord French
-and his escort always travelled.</p>
-
-<p>We knew we would arouse suspicion were we to
-wait on the roadside, so according as our men
-arrived they entered the tavern. Inside were a few
-of the local labourers and farmhands. Our appearance
-in pairs did not seem to create any suspicion,
-especially as the local people were not at all aware
-that Lord French was to pass the spot in a short
-time. In the publichouse while drinking our bottles
-of minerals we indicated to any who might be
-listening that our meeting was purely accidental.
-We talked about cattle and paddocks and grazing
-and many things except politics. But even in this
-fictitious conversation we had to be careful, for the
-men who were in the shop knew farming from A to
-Z, while some of our men knew very little about that
-industry.</p>
-
-<p>While we were talking about all these things for
-the benefit of our audience we were beginning to
-get anxious now that the time was drawing near.
-More than one of us glanced at his watch from time<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_130"></a>[130]</span>
-to time, and our eyes were busy all the time watching
-the cross-road, for from the shop we had a clear
-view of everyone who passed either on the main
-road or on the road to the Park. The first sign
-of activity we saw was a large D.M.P. man coming
-from the direction of the Park Gate. He evidently
-knew who was to arrive, for he took up a position
-near the cross-road to control any traffic that might
-come that way. His spear-pointed helmet, his
-shining buttons and his spotless boots, not to speak
-of the care with which he pulled down his tunic
-under his belt, all indicated that he felt called upon
-to make an impressive display. We did not trouble
-very much about the poor man, though he had a
-revolver holster by his side and no doubt it was not
-empty.</p>
-
-<p>A few minutes before the arrival of the train four
-military lorries, with troops armed with rifles, drove
-down from the Park Gate, passed the Half-way
-House and pulled up to take their positions near the
-station. In addition we knew that several armed
-D.M.P. men would be lining the route from the
-Park Gate to the Viceregal Lodge.</p>
-
-<p>Now we had of course made all our arrangements
-days in advance. Nothing was left to the last
-moment. Our plan was to concentrate our principal
-attack on the second car in the convoy. That was<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_131"></a>[131]</span>
-the car in which Lord French always travelled. Outside
-Kelly’s there was a heavy farm cart lying.
-Tom Keogh, Martin Savage and I were to push
-this at the last moment right across the road, thus
-blocking the passage of French’s car, for the road
-is too narrow to allow two cars to travel abreast,
-and the heavy farm cart would compel them to slow
-down. At the same moment the other members of
-our party were to open their deadly attack on the
-Lord Lieutenant’s car with bombs and grenades,
-and then rely on their revolvers to deal with the
-military guard.</p>
-
-<p>Sharp to time we heard the whistle of the railway
-engine as the train steamed into Ashtown. But we
-never moved. We had two or three minutes more,
-and a false step half a second too soon might upset
-our whole plan. Then we heard the motor engines
-throbbing. The party was about to move off from
-the station. We stepped out to the cross-road. Our
-men quietly took up their positions. Tom Keogh,
-Martin Savage and I were beside the farm cart that
-we were to use as an obstruction. It was time to get
-it in motion.</p>
-
-<p>I caught hold of the cart and began to push it
-round the corner. It was a heavy cart, far heavier
-than we thought, for, needless to say, we had not
-had a rehearsal of the act, nor had we judged the
-weight of the cart otherwise than with our eyes.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_132"></a>[132]</span></p>
-
-<p>I pushed it round the corner on to the narrow
-road leading from the station. Suddenly I heard
-a voice addressing me. It was the voice of the
-D.M.P. man whose presence we had ignored.</p>
-
-<p>“You cannot go down there for a while,” he
-remarked. “His Excellency is to pass along here
-in a few seconds.”</p>
-
-<p>Now, I knew that His Excellency was due, much
-better than the Constable did. However, I could
-not explain to him that I had an appointment with
-His Excellency. Time was pressing. I tried to
-ignore the policeman. He evidently thought I was
-too stupid for this world. He went on protesting
-to me and explaining how necessary it was to have
-the road clear for His Excellency’s cars.</p>
-
-<p>The amazing thing, when I afterwards came to
-think of it, was that he was apparently too dense to
-notice that I had two guns in my hands. If he did
-I’m sure he would have taken out his notebook and
-asked me for my name and address, for it was
-illegal to carry arms.</p>
-
-<p>I did not want to use my gun so soon. In the
-first place I had no wish to hurt the poor man, and
-secondly, I knew that to fire a shot now would be
-fatal to our plans, as it would at once attract the
-attention and suspicion of the escort, who were now
-in their cars a hundred paces from us.</p>
-
-<p>I did the only thing I could in the circumstances.
-I shouted at him—I threatened him and finally told<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_133"></a>[133]</span>
-him if he didn’t clear out of our way I would smash
-him up. But it was no use. Even then the policeman
-did not realise the position. He still kept on
-talking.</p>
-
-<p>And while we stood there, wasting moments that
-were precious, our comrades were wondering what
-was wrong. One of our men who had been allotted a
-position on the ditch that ran along the road apparently
-realised the situation. Without considering
-how he was threatening our whole scheme, not to
-speak of endangering the lives of three of us who
-were standing by the cart, he drew the pin from
-his grenade and hurled the missile straight at the
-policeman’s head. Now any one of the three of us
-could easily have settled with the obstructionist with
-perfect safety to ourselves, but we had no desire
-to kill the poor man, and in any case we feared
-that a single shot would prevent Lord French from
-coming up to us from the station. He could, for
-instance, if he suspected an ambush have sent his
-escort ahead to clear the road, or he could have
-gone right into Broadstone Station, in the city, and
-so upset everything.</p>
-
-<p>The policeman was struck on the head with the
-bomb and the weapon burst at my side without
-doing serious injury to any of us beyond the fact
-that the force of the explosion threw us violently
-to the ground. McLoughlin, the policeman, was
-not seriously injured. The rest of us quickly recovered<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_134"></a>[134]</span>
-from our shock, and we had no time now
-to bother about the policeman, for at that moment
-the motor cycle despatch rider (or scout, as he
-really was) who always rode forty or fifty yards
-ahead of the Viceroy’s party dashed by us from the
-station. A second later comes the first motor and
-we dash right in front of it opening fire on the
-occupants. Our fire is at once returned, and so
-close are we to the enemy that a new hat I had
-just bought is shot right off my head. It was a
-close shave, but my usual luck was with me that
-day. So fast was the car travelling that we had no
-time even to glance at the occupants, nor indeed
-were we greatly concerned with them, for our real
-object was to frighten that car into such speed that
-it would quickly seek safety in flight while we would
-hurl all our force against the second car, the one
-in which we knew Lord French always travelled.</p>
-
-<p>Our cart had not completely blocked the road
-when the first motor sped by—we did not intend it
-to. Another dash to pull the cart right across the
-road and the second car is upon us. From every
-position held by our little party our concentrated
-attack opens and the air is rent with rapid revolver
-fire and bursting bombs and hand grenades. But
-it is by no means a one-sided battle. The enemy
-has his machine-gun and rifles in action, and there
-we stand a target for him on the roadside while we
-still pour volley after volley into car No. 2. The<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_135"></a>[135]</span>
-three of us near the cart are now in a double peril.
-The enemy’s bullets whistle round us and his
-grenades burst at our feet, but so close are we to
-our objective that we must also run the gauntlet
-from the bombs which our own men are hurling
-from the ditch.</p>
-
-<p>With our smoking guns still spitting fire at the
-occupants of the car we back behind the cart,
-seeking what little cover it affords from the enemy’s
-hail of bullets. Another second and the cart is
-being riddled and the splinters from its shafts are
-flying round us. But our work must be accomplished
-and the fight must be kept up. Suddenly
-to our dismay another enemy car is rushing towards
-us from the opposite direction. We are now in
-greater danger than ever for we are trapped between
-two fires. I felt a bullet pierce my left leg, but I
-had no time to examine the wound though I
-reckoned the bullet had passed through. The
-British had by this time about a dozen rifles and a
-machine gun in action; but the marksmen’s nerves
-must have failed them, otherwise we could never
-have stood up so long against them. One man,
-however, gets his mark and poor Martin Savage
-falls into my arms, shot through the body. Poor
-chap! How light-heartedly he had been singing
-and reciting poems about Ireland and the glory of
-dying for one’s country, as we rode out to Ashtown<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_136"></a>[136]</span>
-only an hour ago. And he is breathing his last in
-my arms, dying as he would have wished to die—by
-an English bullet.</p>
-
-<p>All the time the bullets were whizzing by and the
-enemy’s fire seemed to be growing more intense.
-I laid my dying comrade down on the roadside.
-His lips were moving as if he had a last message to
-give me. I stooped and put my ear to his face and
-catch the words spoken slowly and painfully but
-distinctly: “I’m done, Dan, but carry on!”
-Never can I forget that picture of my bleeding
-pallid comrade as he lay on the road at Ashtown
-that December day while bullets hopped around like
-hailstones striking everything but me at whom they
-were aimed.</p>
-
-<p>But it was no time for weeping over the dead.
-Martin Savage had given his life in the cause for
-which he had lived—the cause for which he had
-shouldered his gun three years before when as a
-lad of eighteen he had done his bit in Easter Week,
-1916. But for the rest of us the duty was to live
-for Ireland—to carry on.</p>
-
-<p>Tom Keogh had now got back to cover. I
-looked around to see where were my chances of
-escape. There seemed none. The blood is
-streaming from my wounded leg and the enemy’s
-fire is fierce and rapid whilst ours has eased off,
-because our grenades are gone, many of our revolvers
-are empty and one of our men is dead.<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_137"></a>[137]</span>
-Amidst a hail of bullets I dashed for shelter of
-Kelly’s house round the corner and got there in
-safety.</p>
-
-<p>My gun speaks again. The enemy is silent. The
-khaki warriors have suddenly fled for the safety of
-the Park, followed by the whole Viceregal party.</p>
-
-<p>We were now left in possession of the field of
-battle and with us were the wreck of the second
-car, its driver McEvoy whom we had wounded and
-captured in the fray, the wounded D.M.P. man,
-Constable O’Loughlin, and the dead body of our
-gallant comrade Martin Savage. We released our
-prisoner McEvoy. By a strange irony of fate his
-path crossed mine three years later, in April, 1923.
-I was then a prisoner in the hands of the Free State
-troops in Limerick Jail. McEvoy was there, an
-officer in the prison.</p>
-
-<p>That December day in 1919, as we hurriedly
-surveyed the ground at Ashtown we were convinced
-we had achieved our purpose and had shot Lord
-French. Now our next and most urgent concern
-was to return to the city, for we knew that within
-half an hour Ashtown and the country for miles
-around it would be swarming with British troops.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_138"></a>[138]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XVI">CHAPTER XVI.<br>
-<span class="smaller">OUR ESCAPE FROM ASHTOWN.</span></h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>The ten of us now held a hurried Council of War
-at the cross-road of Ashtown. Nine of our party
-had escaped without a scratch: Martin Savage was
-dead and I was wounded and bleeding profusely.
-We had routed the whole body of British soldiers
-with their rifles, their machine gun, and their
-armour-plated car, and we had killed the Lord
-Lieutenant.</p>
-
-<p>We carried poor Martin’s body into Kelly’s
-shop. It was all we could do. We knew the enemy
-would soon return with reinforcements and take
-possession of all that was left of that gallant soldier,
-but it would be suicidal to attempt to remove it to
-the city. The terror-stricken occupants of the
-Half-way House looked on in amazement and in
-silence.</p>
-
-<p>With a prayer for the soul of our departed
-comrade we mounted our bicycles and faced for
-the city. We had scarcely started when Seumas
-Robinson found that his bicycle was broken and<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_139"></a>[139]</span>
-useless for the journey. Jumping on the back of
-Sean Treacy’s machine he balanced himself with
-one foot on the step and held on to Sean’s broad
-shoulders. But with two men on a bicycle speed
-is slow, and never were we in greater need of a
-speedy return to safety. In our dilemma we espied
-a cyclist approaching us from the city. He was
-walking and wheeling his bicycle, evidently having
-alighted when he heard the battle in progress. In
-war most things are fair and the temporary seizure
-of his machine was not against our rules. Robinson
-had his gun still in his hand. Jumping from the step
-he presented his revolver at the stranger and ordered
-him to hand over his bicycle. The order was
-complied with. We always liked to cause as little
-trouble as possible to civilians and even in our haste
-that afternoon Seumas did not forget his duty to
-the owner of the bicycle. He assured him that if he
-called to the Gresham Hotel that evening his
-machine would be forthcoming. I do not know
-whether the man ever got his bicycle; I hope he
-did. Anyhow it was left near the door of the hotel
-that same evening as Seumas had promised.</p>
-
-<p>We returned to the city safely. I was now feeling
-weak from the loss of blood, and went at once to
-Mrs. Toomey’s house on Phibsboro’ Road, on the
-north side of the city, and one of the first streets
-one meets in the city when returning straight from
-Ashtown. I believe the police and military later<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_140"></a>[140]</span>
-that day traced my blood-stains from Ashtown along
-the Cabra Road, but fortunately they lost the trail
-near the city. Mrs. Toomey was very kind to me.
-I was at once put to bed and a doctor was sent for.
-I was attended by Dr. J. M. Ryan, then famous as
-the Captain of an All-Ireland hurling team. A
-doctor from the Mater Hospital, which was only
-a few hundred yards from my resting-place also
-attended me.</p>
-
-<p>That evening Dublin rang with the newsboys’
-cry of “Attack on the Lord Lieutenant—Sensational
-fight at Ashtown—One of the Attackers shot
-dead!” And then I got a shock that almost drove
-me mad. Lord French had escaped unhurt!</p>
-
-<p>It was true. We had failed. For the first time
-the Viceroy had travelled not in the second car but
-in the first. The car which we had scarcely bothered
-about and which we had only wanted to frighten off
-actually bore safely away the man we wanted. The
-news made my wound worse. I never liked half
-done jobs, and here we had not even half done our
-work. Sean Treacy took the disappointment
-philosophically. His motto was always to make
-the best of things. His consolation to me was,
-“You can’t always have Knocklongs, Dan.”</p>
-
-<p>We never got another chance of shooting Lord
-French. He retired completely from public life. He
-scarcely ever appeared in public afterwards. Even<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_141"></a>[141]</span>
-when he went to England armoured cars patrolled
-the roads to the mail boat, and armed detectives
-surrounded him, even to London. His movements
-were kept a close secret and disclosed to the Press
-many days later.</p>
-
-<p>Had we been in a position to use rifles that day
-we could easily have made sure of shooting him
-from Kelly’s house, but at that time our only means
-of travelling to the spot was by bicycle, for
-practically no motor cars were in use. This was
-due to the fact that a few months previously the
-British had made an order that every motor-driver
-should have a special permit from the military,
-bearing not only his name but his description and a
-photograph, like a passport. The order was to
-prevent the I.R.A. from using motor cars for
-getting about, especially for night attacks.
-Naturally, the only men likely to get permits from
-the British would be those who could prove their
-“loyalty” and were therefore not likely to assist
-us or to run the risk of giving us a car. The Motor
-Drivers’ Union resenting this degrading condition
-met the order by refusing to apply for permits and
-by declaring a general strike all over the country.
-Hence as we could not get motors to travel to
-Ashtown we had no means of concealing rifles as
-we naturally could not strap them on bicycles.
-However, I must say I am glad now that Lord<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_142"></a>[142]</span>
-French escaped. He was only doing his duty by
-his adopted country, the Nation or the Empire
-which had given him wealth, title and honours.</p>
-
-<p>Let me pause to recount some sequels to the
-Ashtown attack. Church and Press denounced us
-in unmeasured terms, but the public were more
-guarded in their condemnation; slowly the country
-was beginning to realise that we meant war with
-England until, to quote the words of O’Donovan
-Rossa, “she was stricken to her knees or we were
-stricken to our graves.” For the most part then,
-while the press and the clergy uttered bitter denunciations
-the public remained silent. It was the
-turning point. They were judging the situation. In
-private discussions many defended our standpoint.
-In public there was, of course, no means of doing
-so. The great majority of our countrymen were
-taking their bearings; they were perhaps shocked
-at the daring force tactics, but they were beginning
-to realise that we meant business, and that it was
-their duty to stand by us.</p>
-
-<p>The morning following the attack the <i>Irish
-Independent</i> published a leading article in which we
-were all referred to as “assassins.” The article
-was plentifully sprinkled with such terms as
-“criminal folly,” “outrage,” “murder,” and so
-on, and this was the very paper which depended for
-its whole income on the support of the people who
-had voted for the establishment of an Irish<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_143"></a>[143]</span>
-Republic. It had not even the sense of fair play,
-not to speak of decency, to wait until the inquest
-had been held and until Martin Savage had been
-laid to rest, to express its views. The other Dublin
-papers we did not mind. The <i>Irish Times</i> was
-openly and avowedly a British organ, and the
-<i>Freeman’s Journal</i> was beneath the contempt of
-any decent Irishman. But we could not allow a
-paper that pretended to be Irish and independent
-to stab our dead comrade in the back.</p>
-
-<p>At the time I was, of course, confined to bed as
-the result of my wounds and had no direct part in
-what followed. I believe some of the boys favoured
-the shooting of the Editor. Finally, another course
-was adopted. It was decided to suppress the paper.
-At 9 o’clock on Sunday night twenty or thirty of
-our men in charge of Peadar Clancy entered the
-building and held up the staff with revolvers. They
-then informed the Editor that his machinery was
-to be dismantled, and proceeding to the works department
-they smashed the linotypes with sledges,
-leaving the place in such a condition that it was
-hoped no paper would appear for some time. With
-the assistance of the other Dublin printing offices,
-however, the <i>Independent</i> was able to get a paper
-out as usual next day. However, we had taught
-the paper a lesson, and in a way we were glad that
-nobody was thrown out of work as many of the
-staff were I.R.A. men. Never afterwards did the<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_144"></a>[144]</span>
-<i>Independent</i>, or any other Dublin newspaper, refer
-to any I.R.A. men as murderers or assassins, and
-I must say that soon afterwards the <i>Independent</i>
-was of much service in exposing British atrocities,
-even though it never supported our fighting policy.
-The proprietors got £16,000 compensation for the
-raid.</p>
-
-<p>After the inquest on Martin Savage his body was
-handed over to his relatives. The clergy refused to
-have his body allowed into any church in Dublin,
-and the night before its removal to his native
-Ballisodare, County Sligo, it lay all night at the
-Broadstone Station attended only by a faithful
-few. But the funeral the next day was the greatest
-tribute ever paid to an Irishman in the West. The
-cortege was several miles long, and the Parish
-Priest attended and recited the last prayers, while
-the R.I.C., with the chivalry characteristic of them,
-surrounded the graveyard with their guns and
-bayonets. However, I suppose that was the best
-tribute they could pay to a gallant soldier, even
-though they did not intend it.</p>
-
-<p>One other matter I must refer to here and then
-I proceed with my narrative:</p>
-
-<p>It may be asked why Martin Savage’s body was
-allowed to leave Dublin without receiving from the
-capital the last mark of respect which his sacrifice
-deserved. The answer is simple. The Government
-of the Republic, Dail Eireann, did not wish to<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_145"></a>[145]</span>
-associate itself directly with our actions. Without
-going into details which might involve the names of
-many prominent men, some living, some dead, I
-wish to emphasise here and now that neither then
-nor at any later stage did Dail Eireann accept
-responsibility for the war against the British.
-Why, I do not know, nor do I wish to enter into
-any controversy on the attitude of the Dail. I can
-only say what was later publicly admitted both in
-the second Republican Dail and in the Free State
-Dail (General Mulcahy, December, 1923), that
-the I.R.A. was left to carry on the war on its own
-initiative, on its own resources, without either
-approval or disapproval from the Government of
-the Republic. It is well that this fact should be
-known to future generations.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp48" id="illus09" style="max-width: 28.125em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/illus09.jpg" alt="">
- <p class="caption">GENERAL LIAM LYNCH.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>It was amusing to read the newspaper versions
-of the Ashtown attack for days afterwards. At the
-inquest on Martin Savage it was stated that the
-“assailants fled and were pursued.” I almost
-roared laughing when I read this and pictured the
-British soldiers’ precipitate flight for the cover of
-the Phoenix Park wall. It was very strange indeed
-that we managed to reach Dublin on our bicycles if
-we were pursued by men provided not only with
-rifles and machine guns but with motor cars. Another
-imaginative writer described a tree by the
-roadside which had been specially clipped to form
-a look-out point for one of our men. Just imagine<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_146"></a>[146]</span>
-the military genius of anyone who would send a
-man up on a tree to see a train that he could see
-from the road, or to become a sure target for enemy
-rifles!</p>
-
-<p>At the inquest too the Crown Counsel refused to
-disclose the name of the lady who was in the car
-with Lord French.</p>
-
-<p>Lord French, by the way, travelled in mufti that
-day—so it was stated at the inquest. Perhaps that
-is why we did not recognise him in the first car. I
-also learned from the inquest story that Detective
-Sergeant Hally, who was wounded by our fire, was
-a countryman of my own, hailing from Carrick-on-Suir.</p>
-
-<p>After a few days in the house of Mrs. Toomey
-at Phibsboro’, I was taken across to the south side
-of the city to No. 13 Grantham Street—the house
-of Mrs. Malone. Three months previously I had
-paid my first visit to this house. It happened in
-this way:</p>
-
-<p>On 8th September, 1919, Seumas Robinson and
-I were in difficulties to find a place to sleep; we
-went to Phil Shanahan’s, where we had met Sam
-Fahy, brother of Frank Fahy, T.D. We had
-known Sam well in Tipperary, where he spent some
-years, though at this time he was on the run like
-ourselves. We told him our trouble, and he at
-once gave us the latchkey of a friend’s house in
-Grantham Street and told us the number, assuring<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_147"></a>[147]</span>
-us that men on the run need never want for shelter
-while that house was there. Mrs. Malone, he said,
-was the woman’s name, and she could be trusted
-with any secret. She had lost a son, Michael, in
-the Insurrection of Easter Week.</p>
-
-<p>Seumas and myself then went from Phibsboro on
-our way to Grantham Street. To make matters
-worse we had forgotten the number of the house.
-Fortunately it is not a large street, and at the first
-house we knocked we were directed to Mrs.
-Malone’s. We were made feel quite at home
-immediately. They were all very kind to us—Mr.
-and Mrs. Malone and the Misses Malone. We
-stayed for the night, and next morning we learned
-that the family had only four days previously suffered
-the loss of one of their daughters.</p>
-
-<p>From that day we became close friends with the
-Malone family. We brought Treacy and Hogan
-there soon afterwards and introduced them to the
-family. Both of the girls—Brighid and Aine—were
-active members of the Cumann na mBan, and were
-always anxious to help us. They carried all our
-despatches and messages and even helped in removing
-munitions to Kingsbridge Station. You
-must understand that we were always in search of
-revolvers or rifles or ammunition to buy or to
-capture. Any that fell into our hands we always
-sent to our Brigade in South Tipperary. The
-stuff was needed very badly there, and there were<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_148"></a>[148]</span>
-far less chances of getting it than there were in
-Dublin. Very often we sent on munitions by train,
-in boxes labelled “Tea” or “Wines,” or some
-other commodity that the person to whom they were
-addressed was accustomed to receive. Of course,
-we always had our arrangements made at the other
-end so that the goods would be received by a
-merchant who was himself an I.R.A. man or by
-one of his assistants.</p>
-
-<p>Only a few days before the Ashtown fight I had
-been joking with Aine Malone and telling her they
-would have to nurse me if I was wounded. I little
-thought that my joke of December, 1919, would
-come true, and that I would be installed in
-Grantham Street in the care of the Malones. The
-wound in my leg proved more serious than I expected,
-and my head too was painful. For three
-whole months I was laid up, scarcely able to move
-about at all. I am not so sure that I felt any way
-anxious to get away from my surroundings. Everyone
-was kind to me. Peadar Clancy came to see
-me and gave me the news nearly every day. I have
-fond, if sad, memories of pleasant hours spent with
-Peadar as he chatted or read for me. Dick McKee
-and Sean Treacy and Hogan were all kind too, and
-came to see me regularly. Peadar and Dick and
-Sean Treacy alas were not to see another Christmas.
-But I know they died smiling and happy.</p>
-
-<p>Apart from my good and thoughtful comrades<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_149"></a>[149]</span>
-there was an even stronger reason which made me
-think little of the pain and the indoor confinement.
-That was my kindest and ever attentive nurse—then
-Brighid Malone—now my wife. Few people
-have the good fortune to be nursed through sickness
-by their future wives whose presence counts for
-more than all that medical skill can give. But the
-story of our marriage a year and a half later, in
-circumstances that a fiction writer would discredit
-as too far-fetched for any Wild West novel, I
-must reserve for its proper place in a later chapter.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_150"></a>[150]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XVII">CHAPTER XVII.<br>
-<span class="smaller">FROM TARA TO TIPPERARY.</span></h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>At the opening of 1920 I had plenty of leisure,
-while my wound was healing, to review the year
-that had passed.</p>
-
-<p>Soloheadbeg had borne fruit. The best tribute
-was that contained in the official statistics that
-were now issued from time to time by the British
-Government regarding “Crime in Ireland.”
-Crime as such was, of course, almost unknown in
-Ireland until the arrival of the Black and Tans.
-When the British Government used the word
-“crime” in reference to Ireland it generally meant
-active operations against the Army of Occupation.
-So it was solemnly announced to the world at the
-beginning of 1920 that during 1919 scores of
-attacks had been made on British troops or police,
-hundreds of raids for arms had been carried out and
-a dozen policemen (that is, armed spies) had been
-shot dead. If the British Government thought the
-publication of these statistics would make us repent
-of our actions and shed our patriotism it had miscalculated.<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_151"></a>[151]</span>
-The only effect was to make us more
-determined that there would be a much bigger
-record of such “crimes” to be compiled at the
-end of 1920. And we kept our resolution!</p>
-
-<p>In these statistics England took good care not
-to record her own acts of warfare against the civilian
-population in the same period. She did not tell
-that Dail Eireann, the elected representative
-Government of Ireland, had been proclaimed an
-illegal assembly, and its schemes for developing the
-country’s industries declared criminal activities.
-She did not tell the world that the Gaelic League,
-Cumann na mBan, the Irish Volunteers and Fianna
-Eireann (the Irish Boy Scouts) had been similarly
-declared illegal bodies. Nor did she tell of the
-midnight raids and robberies officially carried out
-against peaceable citizens by her troops. In a word,
-to quote an expression used by Arthur Griffith at
-the time, she had “proclaimed the whole Irish
-nation as an illegal assembly.”</p>
-
-<p>But lest I should give an unfair picture of the
-time to the reader unacquainted with Irish events,
-I must in fairness mention a few things that the
-English forces in Ireland had not <i>yet</i> done. They
-had not imposed curfew; they had not murdered
-men in their beds; they had not burned and bombed
-towns and villages; they had not shot prisoners
-“for attempting to escape”; they had not<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_152"></a>[152]</span>
-executed prisoners of war, murdered priests and
-outraged women.</p>
-
-<p>I emphasise the fact that they had not done these
-things in 1919, because they were guilty of every
-one of these crimes during the year that was now
-beginning. In order to follow my narrative it is well
-to bear this fact in mind, for I may not have occasion
-to mention these developments of British policy
-unless they directly bear upon my story.</p>
-
-<p>Indeed while I was yet in Dublin in the home of
-the Malones, the first Curfew Order was issued.
-In an encounter with a few I.R.A. men after midnight
-in February, 1920, a policeman was shot dead
-in Grafton Street. The British at once issued an
-order making it a criminal offence for any civilian
-to be out-of-doors between midnight and 5 a.m.
-Within a few months that Order was extended to
-most towns and cities in the south of Ireland; not
-only extended but made more severe. For instance
-at one time no one was allowed to leave his house
-in Limerick after 7 p.m. In Cork the hour was 4
-p.m. for a while. It then became customary for the
-British to clear the streets with volley after volley
-of rifle fire, scores of men, women and children
-being murdered in this way during 1920 and 1921.
-Incidently these curfew regulations gave the
-Government’s murder gang a free field, for no
-civilian would be about to see them shooting or
-looting during the Curfew hours.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_153"></a>[153]</span></p>
-
-<p>In the early spring of 1920 I dragged myself
-away from my pleasant surroundings in Grantham
-Street, and traversing the fair plains of Fingal. I
-went to spend a month in royal Meath, at the foot
-of the Hill of Tara. It was my first stay in royal
-Meath, the garden of Ireland’s kings in the days
-of her greatness. The first day I climbed the hill—I
-stayed for an hour on its summit, living in the
-past, in spiritual association with the warriors of
-old, and wondering if ever again our land would
-see the day when her sons and daughters would have
-shaken the shackles of slavery from their limbs and
-have flung their flag proudly to the breeze, defiant
-and free. There is little now on the Hill to tell of
-those days of our greatness. No men crowd its
-summit; tradition says that the curse of a saint
-from my own county brought about the ruin and
-decay of Tara. But the great Banquet Hall could
-still be traced where the High Kings received
-homage from their vassals and bestowed hospitality
-upon their subjects. But a little cross on the
-summit marks the “Croppies’ Grave,” where
-“many a Saxon foeman fell, and many an Irish
-soldier true”—the last resting place of the dauntless
-few who struck a blow for Ireland in ’98, and
-fell with their face to the enemy. And I knelt on
-the green sward of the deserted palace and prayed
-that the Croppies’ sacrifice might not be in vain;
-that their dream might come true even in our<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_154"></a>[154]</span>
-generation, and that I might be given strength and
-courage to speed the day.</p>
-
-<p>There on the sod hallowed by the footsteps of
-Ireland’s warrior saints and kings of peace I
-realised for the first time the full meaning of that
-little poem of Moore’s, with its pathetic appeal
-that always grips the Irish heart and dims the
-patriot’s eye.</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
- <div class="verse indent0">“Let Erin remember the days of old</div>
- <div class="verse indent0">Ere her faithless sons betrayed her!”</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>And then my eyes wandered over the plains at
-my feet—richer than my own Golden Vale. Here
-and there I saw a stately mansion or a castle; but
-I knew that these were not the homes of the clansmen
-of our kings, but the fortresses of those who
-had deprived them of their heritage. Of farm houses
-there were none; a labourer’s cottage here and
-there marked the home of the Gaels who had
-survived—to be the hewers of wood and drawers of
-water. I searched the countryside for the men that
-this fair land should have raised; but the roads were
-deserted; the bullock had replaced the king and the
-peasant. And I asked myself did Providence ordain
-that Meath should be the home of the bullock to
-feed the conquering Saxon. No! It could not be.
-It was the old curse, the old blight of the foreigner.</p>
-
-<p>Many a day afterwards I wandered along the
-plains of Meath, thinking and planning and<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_155"></a>[155]</span>
-dreaming of the happy land it might be if only
-we were allowed to work out our own destiny as
-God would have us. I often walked for three or
-four hours without meeting a human being. Here
-and there a lovely mansion; around it the gatelodge
-of the serf, the winding avenue, the silent
-trees and the green fields with the bullock as their
-ruler. Landlordism, worked as the willing instrument
-of English rule, had wrought this desolation.
-And I renewed my resolve to do my share in
-bringing about the change that must come.</p>
-
-<p>I spent pleasant, if uneventful days, with Joseph
-Dardis and with Dr. Lynch and Tom Carton, of
-Stamullen, and also with Vincent Purfield, of
-Balbriggan. From them all I received the same
-genial hospitality that so many had already shown
-me. Thank God, England has not yet deprived us
-of our spirit of kindness and hospitality.</p>
-
-<p>The summer was now approaching. I was feeling
-strong and fit again. I was anxious to be doing
-something. The war was developing and I could
-not be idle. I felt I had no right to remain any
-longer out of the fray. Some of the things I had
-read in the papers had made my blood boil again.
-Tom MacCurtain, Lord Mayor of Cork, who had
-been with us but five or six months previously lying
-in wait for Lord French, had been murdered in his
-home in the presence of his wife. In Thurles two
-or three similar murders had been committed by<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_156"></a>[156]</span>
-the British. They were but the first of a hundred
-such murders to be committed within a year by
-British forces, all connived at or directly inspired
-by the highest officials in the land.</p>
-
-<p>I resolved to be up and doing. I returned to
-Dublin. There I met some of the boys and urged
-an intensive guerilla campaign. Dick McKee and
-Peadar Clancy enthusiastically supported my views
-and favoured my “on with the war” policy.</p>
-
-<p>As I have already explained, our own policy was
-all the time “unofficial.” Neither Dail Eireann
-nor General Headquarters of the I.R.A. had sanctioned
-it or accepted responsibility. Mick Collins,
-I must say, seemed to favour it. He always
-promised to continue to push our war policy in the
-“proper quarters,” and it must be remembered that
-he was then not only on the G.H.Q. staff but was
-Finance Minister in Dail Eireann. I have already
-recounted how he was with us on one occasion
-towards the end of 1919, when we had prepared to
-ambush Lord French, but the Lord Lieutenant disappointed
-us.</p>
-
-<p>The truth is that our war policy was not popular.
-The military authorities did not seem to want it.
-The political wing certainly did not want it, and
-more than one T.D. strongly denounced it in
-private; though it was part of our good fortune to
-be able always to conceal our differences from the
-enemy—until after the Truce. The Press, of<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_157"></a>[157]</span>
-course, denounced our campaign, though since a
-lesson had been taught the <i>Independent</i> the newspapers
-had learned that “discretion was the better
-part of valour,” especially in the use of certain
-words like “murder,” and “outrage.” The words
-“shootings” and “tragedies” became very
-popular with the newspapers after the attack on the
-<i>Independent</i>.</p>
-
-<p>The public did not want the war. They forgot
-that it was their vote at the 1918 General Election
-that had led to the formal establishment of the
-Republic. They only knew that attacks on police
-meant more severe martial law, worse curfew, more
-arrests and compensation for policemen’s widows.
-Evidently many thought at that time that liberty
-was a thing to be got for nothing. I must say,
-however, that as the war developed in intensity
-towards the end of 1920 and the beginning of 1921
-the vast majority of the people stood with us, and
-cheerfully took their share of the risks and hardships.</p>
-
-<p>I did not intend to stay long in Dublin. I wanted
-to get back to Tipperary. I felt that things were
-too quiet there. The boys were all right, they were
-game for anything; all they wanted was to be told
-what to do. So Sean Treacy and I once more cycled
-that hundred miles journey, and I found myself
-back in Tipperary after an absence of nearly twelve
-months.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_158"></a>[158]</span></p>
-
-<p>This time we had a new plan. We decided to
-embark upon a campaign of a kind then scarcely
-known in the struggle, but one that was soon to
-show the world that there was no longer any doubt
-that Ireland was in a state of open war.</p>
-
-<p>(In the next chapter I shall describe that new
-campaign.)</p>
-
-<hr class="tb">
-
-<p>Before dealing with the events which followed
-my return to Tipperary I must tell of an incident
-that almost ended my career as a gunman.</p>
-
-<p>Seumas Robinson and I had been spending a few
-days with Vincent Purfield at Balbriggan, where I
-had often had such a happy time. That was during
-Holy Week, 1920, and we decided to go to Dublin
-for Easter. We started from Balbriggan in a motor
-driven by Vincent himself on Good Friday, April
-2nd, 1920.</p>
-
-<p>Now the British authorities in Ireland were always
-under the impression that the Sinn Feiners would
-always do something every Easter to celebrate the
-anniversary of the 1916 Insurrection. As a matter
-of fact we usually did, but we were always disobliging
-enough to do just the thing they never expected,
-and at that time they were taken most by surprise.
-Anyhow, in preparation for the “annual rising,”
-as people sarcastically spoke of the thing which the
-Government expected, the military always let us<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_159"></a>[159]</span>
-know that they were not to be taken by surprise.
-For years they used to erect barricades at all the
-roads leading into Dublin, and place military outposts
-who searched every car and pedestrian passing
-in or out of the city during the few days before and
-after Easter. Having thus done their duty by the
-Empire they usually removed their barricades after
-a few days.</p>
-
-<p>When we left Balbriggan that morning we forgot
-all about this annual manœuvre of the British,
-otherwise I need hardly say we should have spent
-Easter with Vincent in Balbriggan. We had a
-pleasant journey until we arrived within a few miles
-of the city, about half a mile beyond the tram
-terminus at Whitehall. On rounding a corner we
-suddenly came face to face with a military lorry
-travelling towards us. The lorry slowed down
-apparently to pull up and search our car, but we
-looked so innocent and harmless that the officer
-ordered his car to proceed. We proceeded on our
-way and laughed heartily, while congratulating
-ourselves on our good luck. But our good fortune
-was short-lived. The noise of the military lorry had
-scarcely died away when half a mile further on
-towards the city we heard a sharp order to “Halt!”</p>
-
-<p>Straight ahead of us, just at the tramway
-terminus was a military barricade, a score of
-soldiers, with their rifles gripped in a business-like
-way, while an officer was stepping towards us,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_160"></a>[160]</span>
-dangling his revolver. Now, I thought, my hour
-had come. There is no escape this time.</p>
-
-<p>Vincent kept as cool as a cucumber; not one of
-us betrayed the slightest concern and the car drove
-right to the barricade before it slowed down.</p>
-
-<p>I stepped out of the car and walked straight to
-the officer with an angry scowl and demanded the
-meaning of this.</p>
-
-<p>“I must search your car,” was the curt reply.</p>
-
-<p>Then I thought it was better to try civility. I
-told him we had no objection to being searched,
-but assured him that any delay would be serious to
-us, as we were in a hurry to reach the city on
-important business. He hesitated for a moment.
-Then he waved to the soldiers to clear the way.</p>
-
-<p>“Very well!” he said, “you may go ahead.”</p>
-
-<p>“Thank you,” I nodded to him, entered the car
-and we drove on.</p>
-
-<p>I could not have afforded to allow either the car
-or ourselves to be searched. Had he attempted to
-do so, it would have been his last piece of military
-activity. Probably we would never have escaped
-ourselves had he forced me to pull my gun, but
-there was no other way out of it.</p>
-
-<p>Our motor car was the only vehicle that entered
-or left Dublin without being searched during those
-five days.</p>
-
-<p>The same bluff as had carried Sean Hogan and
-myself out of a similar difficulty near Limerick a<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_161"></a>[161]</span>
-year before now proved successful at Whitehall,
-within a few hundred yards of the house where,
-seven months later, I was to have my biggest
-fight for life—at Drumcondra.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_162"></a>[162]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XVIII">CHAPTER XVIII.<br>
-<span class="smaller">THE BARRACK ATTACKS</span></h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Our new plan for more active operations against
-the British was, in short, to attack them in their
-strongholds—the police barracks throughout the
-country. The peelers were now far too cautious to
-patrol the roads. They seldom if ever ventured any
-distance from their barracks. We could not meet
-them in the open. But if the mountain would not
-come to Mohammed, there was only the other thing
-to be done. We had got to go to the police and
-attack them on their own grounds.</p>
-
-<p>At this time, in the spring of 1920, they were
-rapidly evacuating all outlying barracks in small
-places where there was a danger that the garrison
-could be cut off or surprised. They were concentrating
-on the larger barracks where the garrisons
-were strengthened and the buildings strongly
-fortified with steel shutters and barbed wire
-entanglements. It was at this time that the I.R.A.
-carried out its most intensive simultaneous series of
-operations. In one night no less than about a<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_163"></a>[163]</span>
-thousand vacated police barracks were burned to
-the ground—the operations extending to every
-county in Ireland. In this way we prevented any
-possibility that those barracks would ever again be
-occupied by the enemy. A thousand links of the
-British military chain had been severed.</p>
-
-<p>At this time the peelers had abandoned all
-pretence of being a police force. They were openly
-and avowedly a military force not attempting to
-suppress crime but holding the country by brute
-force for England. When the R.I.C. uniforms disappeared
-from a village our I.R.A. police promptly
-took over the duties that they should have
-discharged, and right well they did it. The robber
-and the housebreaker soon learned to have for the
-I.R.A. a wholesome respect he never had for the
-R.I.C.</p>
-
-<p>If any reader unacquainted with events in Ireland
-at that time thinks it incredible that a police force
-like the R.I.C. should have been so shameless as to
-allow criminals a free hand I hope I shall convince
-him by two simple facts. The first is that in cases
-where our men were found to have arrested men for
-robbery or other forms of crime, the practice of the
-British was to have the criminal released and protected
-and to have the I.R.A. men sent to jail.
-The newspaper files with accounts of courts-martial
-on our men on such charges bear out my statement.
-The second fact, though never revealed in the<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_164"></a>[164]</span>
-newspapers, did not come under my personal
-notice, but I have it from I.R.A. men concerned.
-In County Meath a most cold-blooded murder was
-committed by an ex-British soldier. The R.I.C.
-had clear evidence that he was guilty. They arrested
-him, but did they try him? No! They released
-him and advised him to leave the country before he
-fell into the hands of the I.R.A. But he was
-arrested by the I.R.A. men within five minutes of
-his release, and later paid the penalty of his crime.</p>
-
-<p>At this time too the Black and Tans appeared on
-the scene. A great many are still in doubt as to
-how they got this name, so it is as well to explain.</p>
-
-<p>The force was recruited by Sir Hamar Greenwood’s
-instructions early in 1920 to swell the ranks
-of the R.I.C. and to replace the Irishmen who had
-resigned from that force in disgust. Greenwood
-wanted thousands of recruits for carrying out the
-policy of terrorism which had been decided upon.
-He could not get them in Ireland. Even in England
-he found it hard to get any decent men to come
-on such work. Hence his force was recruited mainly
-from the lower classes of English ex-soldiers, many
-of them being known criminals or ex-convicts.
-They arrived in Ireland in such numbers that the
-R.I.C. could not possibly equip half of them in the
-recognised dark blue uniform. There were some
-black tunics to be had and some black trousers, also
-some black caps. The military came to their assistance<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_165"></a>[165]</span>
-with a supply of khaki. Every man was given
-some portion of the black uniform to show he was
-nominally a policeman, but the main portion of the
-outfit was khaki. When these irregular forces first
-took up duty in the South you can imagine their
-grotesque appearance—one man being all in khaki
-except for a black cap, another all in khaki except
-for black trousers, and so on, none of them being
-either completely in black or completely in khaki.</p>
-
-<p>Our Irish people have a sense of humour, and they
-have always been noted for their happy knack of
-giving appropriate nick-names. In the district which
-surrounds Knocklong—South Tipperary and East
-Limerick the name <i>Black and Tan</i> was born. For
-generations there had been in that district a famous
-pack of hounds known as the “Black and Tans.” Is
-it surprising that the people soon saw how like the
-new force was to their hounds, not only in colour
-but in other respects? Such is the origin of a name
-that will survive in all languages for terrorism, loot
-and murder.</p>
-
-<p>These changes to which I have referred had
-taken place in our native county during our
-absence. We decided at once to open a series of
-attacks on police barracks.</p>
-
-<p>Attacks on police barracks had been going on in
-various parts of the South on a small scale for
-months. The first case in which the garrison was
-captured was at Araglen, on the borders of Cork<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_166"></a>[166]</span>
-and Limerick, near the southern end of the Galtees.
-The attack was carried out by Liam Lynch, who
-was killed during the Civil War early in 1923, while
-he was Chief of Staff of the I.R.A.</p>
-
-<p>Liam Lynch, as the struggle developed in
-intensity proved himself the finest officer in Ireland
-to control and handle a brigade or division. He
-and Sean Moylan made an admirable combination
-and their successes against the British were amazing.
-Tom Barry was, I think, the best leader of a
-flying column.</p>
-
-<p>I first met Liam Lynch at the Autumn of 1919.
-We were introduced by Tom Hunter, then
-Republican Deputy for Cork and Peadar Clancy’s
-partner in business in Dublin. Lynch was at that
-time very much on the run, like myself. On September
-7th, he had carried out a daring coup in
-Fermoy, disarming twelve soldiers who were going
-to church. In the struggle one of the British soldiers
-was killed and Liam himself was wounded. That
-incident is of historic importance by reason of the
-fact that it led to the first case of “reprisals”; for
-the night of the attack the British soldiers, led by
-some of their officers, wrecked and looted the
-principal shops in Fermoy.</p>
-
-<p>Liam Lynch was a soldier to his finger tips. He
-stood six feet in height and in his eye you read that
-he was born to be a leader of men. As gentle as a
-child he was a dauntless soldier, and commanded<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_167"></a>[167]</span>
-one of the best brigades in Ireland against the
-British.</p>
-
-<p>Shortly after the capture of Araglen Barracks by
-Liam Lynch, the next victory of the kind was gained
-by Michael Brennan, who seized all the arms and
-ammunition in a barrack in Clare. In this case the
-barrack was surrendered by Constable Buckley,
-who afterwards fought with the I.R.A. through the
-war, and was killed in Kerry while a prisoner during
-the Civil War. The next barracks that was captured
-by the I.R.A. was Ballylanders on the 28th April,
-1920, when three policemen were wounded and the
-barrack burned to the ground after the garrison had
-surrendered their arms to Sean Malone (<i>alias</i>
-“Forde”), who commanded in the attack.</p>
-
-<p>On our return to Tipperary we very soon carried
-out three attacks on police barracks, one of which
-surrendered to us after a five hours’ fight.</p>
-
-<p>The first barrack in Tipperary to surrender to
-the I.R.A. was Drangan. That was on June 4th,
-1920. Drangan is situated in the eastern end of the
-county, near the Kilkenny side. It is seven miles
-from Killenaule.</p>
-
-<p>Our usual procedure in these attacks—which
-always took place at night—was to mobilise 30 or
-40 I.R.A. men, and have trees felled across all the
-roads leading to the position. In that way we
-prevented, or at least delayed, assistance from
-arriving to help the besieged garrison. This blocking<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_168"></a>[168]</span>
-of the roads was carried out often for a five or ten
-mile radius. Often, too, we felled trees across the
-roads when we had no intention of attacking a
-position—merely to annoy and confuse the enemy.</p>
-
-<p>Having taken these precautions to ensure that
-no assistance could arrive to the garrison we also
-cut the telegraph and telephone wires. Then we
-quietly occupied a few houses in the front or rear
-of the barracks and opened our attack, while some
-of our men perhaps attempted to fire the building
-by means of petrol. Very often too the first hint we
-gave of our presence was the exploding of a mine
-at the door or the gable of the barrack in order to
-blow up the building or to make a breach. Sometimes
-these plans succeeded, sometimes they failed.</p>
-
-<p>The fight at Drangan was a prolonged affair.
-The officers who took part in the attack were Sean
-Treacy, Seumas Robinson, Ernie O’Malley, Sean
-Hogan and myself. Having first taken the usual
-steps of blocking the roads and cutting all wires,
-we quietly occupied a vacant house right in front
-of the barrack—why the police were so stupid as
-to leave it unguarded I cannot imagine. More of
-our men went to the back and took up positions for
-opening fire, while on the street in front we erected
-a small barricade. About midnight we opened the
-attack. After the first volley we ceased fire, and
-called on the defenders to surrender. We always
-did that, not only to spare their lives if possible, but<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_169"></a>[169]</span>
-also to spare our own supplies of ammunition which
-were never plentiful. But they refused to come out.
-We renewed the attack, with rifles, bombs, revolvers
-and shot-guns—our munitions were always
-necessarily of an assorted kind. The enemy replied
-hotly to our fire, but with no effect. Suddenly the
-sky was lighted up with Verey lights—rockets
-discharged by the garrison as a signal to
-neighbouring posts that they needed help. But we
-knew it would be long before assistance could pass
-our barriers. We continued the onslaught with
-renewed vigour from front and rear, and some of
-our men actually tore off the slates on the roof of
-the barrack. Daylight was breaking amidst cracking
-of rifles and the bursting of bombs when there was
-a sudden lull in the replying fire from the enemy.
-A moment later appeared from one of the windows
-a sharp blast of a whistle, and our men ceased fire.
-The order was shouted to the garrison to advance
-into the open. A minute later they were disarmed
-prisoners. We prepared for our return to safety
-before military reinforcements cut their way
-through. We marched our prisoners—two sergeants
-and six constables—to the outskirts of the
-village, released them and departed with our booty,
-not one of our men being wounded.</p>
-
-<p>The same night Cappawhite police barrack, also
-in Tipperary, was attacked by another party of
-I.R.A. men, but the garrison held their own.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_170"></a>[170]</span></p>
-
-<p>It was sometimes amusing to read the accounts
-of these attacks in the newspapers next day.
-Naturally none of our men ever told the true story,
-and the newspaper men had to rely mainly on the
-police version. The police, of course, had to make
-the best show possible in the eyes of their own
-superiors, and the newspaper men had to take their
-version, because they would need the information
-that friendly policemen could give them later on,
-and also because they might get a surprise midnight
-visit from the Black and Tan torturers if
-anything derogatory to the police was said. Hence
-it was that often when we had only 30 or 40 men
-on a job, with perhaps half a dozen rifles in all, the
-police would tell the public that the “number of
-attackers was estimated at 300, with several
-machine guns.” And often when not one of our
-men got a scratch it was reported that “several of
-the attackers were seen to fall, and it is believed
-three were shot dead.” There were times when we
-did suffer losses, but they never suspected it.</p>
-
-<p>Our next operation of the kind was away on the
-north-western side of the county in the mountainous
-districts of Hollyford. This also was a complete
-success, the same body of us being in charge of the
-operation. It must be remembered that at this
-time the number of men on the run was comparatively
-small, and we often had to rely upon men
-who were never suspected of taking part in these<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_171"></a>[171]</span>
-attacks, and who returned to their work before
-morning.</p>
-
-<p>Our next attack was not far from the same
-district—Rear Cross. Here we had a desperate
-battle, and were forced to retire without capturing
-the position. In this fight we had the assistance of
-some men from East Limerick Brigade, and the
-North Tipperary Brigade, but the South Tipperary
-boys carried out the main offensive under Sean
-Treacy and myself. The garrison, I must say, put
-up a brave defence, and used their hand-grenades
-with effect, Ernie O’Malley, Jim Gorman, Treacy
-and myself all being wounded by shrapnel. We
-succeeded in setting the building on fire, and I
-believe that several of the enemy were burned to
-death, while two others were shot.</p>
-
-<p>It was about this time—to be exact, on the night
-of May 27th—that the famous Kilmallock attack
-took place. I was not engaged on the occasion.
-This attack, carried out by Sean Malone (<i>alias</i>
-“Forde”) created a big sensation at the time. It
-was a prolonged battle lasting from midnight until
-7 o’clock in the morning. The barrack, which was
-regarded as being impregnable, was situated in the
-very heart of the town, and was occupied by one of
-the largest R.I.C. garrisons in the south. The
-I.R.A. occupied a hotel and several houses on the
-principal street, and actually pumped petrol from a
-hose on to the building. The barrack was burned<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_172"></a>[172]</span>
-to the ground, but our men had to cease the attack
-before the garrison was forced to surrender. One
-I.R.A. officer—Scully, of Kerry—was killed, two
-of the enemy were killed, and six of them wounded.
-The two policemen were burned to death in a room
-where they had been locked because they advised
-a surrender. The sergeant who commanded the
-garrison was promoted to the rank of District
-Inspector for his defence. He was shot dead in
-Listowel a few months later.</p>
-
-<p>The next big engagement in which we took part
-was the famous fight at Oola, the day Brigadier-General
-Lucas escaped. This sensational incident
-I must relate in the next chapter.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_173"></a>[173]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XIX">CHAPTER XIX.<br>
-<span class="smaller">CAPTURE AND ESCAPE OF GENERAL LUCAS.</span></h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>The capture of Brigadier-General Lucas was
-effected on June 26th, 1920, by Liam Lynch,
-George Power, and a few more of Lynch’s staff.
-General Lucas, who was stationed at Fermoy and
-commanded in that district, was accompanied by
-Colonel Danford, R.E., and Colonel Tyrell. Lynch
-and his comrades drove up in a motor car and surprised
-the three British officers at a place called
-Conna, near Castlelyons, seven or eight miles from
-Fermoy, where General Lucas had taken a fishing
-lodge. They were taken completely by surprise
-and removed to a waiting motor car. The original
-idea was to hold the General as a hostage to be
-exchanged for Bob Barton, T.D., who was then
-being treated as a criminal in an English prison,
-where he was undergoing a 10 years’ sentence for
-“sedition.”</p>
-
-<p>When Lynch had driven his prisoners for some
-distance they were conversing amongst themselves
-in Arabic. The purport of their conversation was<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_174"></a>[174]</span>
-made clear when, half an hour later, they suddenly
-attacked their captors. In a sharp melee which
-ensued Colonel Danford was wounded. Lynch
-thereupon sent a motor back to Fermoy military
-barracks by Tyrell, whom he also released, while
-Lucas was removed to a place of safety in the
-keeping of the I.R.A. The manner in which the
-English soldiers at Fermoy showed their appreciation
-of a generous foe who had released a wounded
-officer was to wreck the town next night—the
-second time within twelve months that Fermoy had
-been wrecked because of a successful exploit by
-Liam Lynch.</p>
-
-<p>Lucas himself was every inch a gentleman and
-a soldier. For five weeks he was a prisoner of the
-I.R.A., and during that time he was treated with
-the courtesy and kindness befitting his rank and
-character. Every facility was given him for communicating
-with his relatives, and he had every
-comfort that his captors—themselves “on the
-run” with their prisoner—could provide. To his
-credit be it said he acknowledged this later, though
-I believe he got into trouble with the British War
-Office.</p>
-
-<p>His last place of detention was a house in East
-Limerick. From there he made his escape on the
-night of July 29th, in circumstances which it is not
-in my province to narrate.</p>
-
-<p>Now, on the morning of July 30th, Sean Treacy<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_175"></a>[175]</span>
-and the rest of us had planned an ambush on the
-road between Limerick and Tipperary. At that
-time our men were creating much trouble for the
-enemy by holding up trains and mail cars to censor
-letters for information. In this way we got much
-valuable information from time to time, including
-evidence against local spies here and there. So
-serious a problem did we create for the British that
-they had to take special precautions to prevent
-military mails and despatches falling into our hands.
-For instance, the Limerick garrison adopted the
-plan of sending a special military escort by road to
-the Limerick Junction every morning to take the
-mails off the train there, and thus avoid possible
-raids on the 20 miles of the branch line from
-Limerick Junction to Limerick.</p>
-
-<p>We determined to ambush this party. The spot
-we selected was half a mile on the Tipperary side
-of the village of Oola. That would be about six
-miles from Tipperary town, fifteen from Limerick
-city and four from Soloheadbeg. Although we were
-on the main road from Limerick to Waterford we
-had a great stretch of country by which we could
-escape southwards, getting back towards East
-Limerick. The country is comparatively flat with
-good thick hedges of whitethorn as cover along the
-roadside.</p>
-
-<p>We expected the military car to arrive from
-Limerick about 10.30 a.m. A few minutes before<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_176"></a>[176]</span>
-that time we felled a tree across the road to block
-their path. Then we took up our positions, still
-well out of view, for it must be remembered that in
-the village of Oola itself, almost in view of our
-selected spot, there was a strong garrison of peelers,
-and on the other side of us, two miles away at the
-Limerick Junction, was another R.I.C. garrison.</p>
-
-<p>Sharp to time the military car came tearing along
-from Limerick. Just when they turned a corner
-and drove almost into the barracks we opened fire.
-Like a shot every man jumped from the car and
-took cover to reply to our men.</p>
-
-<p>A fierce encounter followed for half an hour. In
-the first minute two of the British dropped their
-rifles and rolled over dead, but the others continued
-to pour volley after volley in the direction from which
-our fire came. But we were in a difficulty. There
-were only seven of us there, and we had only ten
-rounds of ammunition per man.</p>
-
-<p>To add to our troubles we suddenly saw another
-military car arrive on the scene from the Limerick
-direction also. We had not calculated on that.
-These reinforcements must have arrived by accident,
-but with our limited supplies we could not continue
-to engage the whole party. We decided to retire.
-As we were retiring, still checking the enemy with
-an odd volley from the fields we saw a half a dozen
-R.I.C. men with rifles coming up from the village
-to give further help to the military. If we had had<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_177"></a>[177]</span>
-enough men or enough ammunition in the first
-instance we could, of course, have detailed a few
-men to feign an attack on the barracks so as to
-keep these fellows indoors; but we could not afford
-that, and so our plans miscarried.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp100" id="illus10" style="max-width: 43.75em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/illus10.jpg" alt="">
- <p class="caption">THE FLYING COLUMN IN TIPPERARY.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>We retired without losing a man or receiving a
-wound. The enemy had three dead and three
-wounded.</p>
-
-<p>Next morning we learned more than we knew
-while engaged in the attack. Brigadier-General
-Lucas was actually with the enemy forces. He had,
-as I said, escaped the previous night. He wandered
-all through the night through the fields not knowing
-exactly where he was and endeavouring in the first
-place to avoid any of our men who might have been
-sent in pursuit of him, and in the second place trying
-to get in touch with some of his own forces, police
-or military. On the morning of the ambush he
-arrived at the village of Pallas, three miles on the
-Limerick side of Oola, and evidently was picked up
-by the passing car.</p>
-
-<p>We, of course, did not recognise him. As a
-matter of fact we were not even aware of his escape.
-The whole thing was a mere coincidence, though the
-English newspapers next day splashed the story as
-an “attempt to recapture the General.” Perhaps
-it is as well we did not recognise him. Anyhow, we
-wish him luck, now that all is past.</p>
-
-<p>A few days after this engagement at Oola I<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_178"></a>[178]</span>
-returned to Dublin. For some time I was kept busy
-with minor activities. It was only then, too, that
-I found an opportunity of having removed from my
-body some of the bits of hand grenades with which
-I had been wounded at the attack on Rear Cross
-police barracks.</p>
-
-<p>This was in the autumn of 1920. We had now
-been a year and a half on the run with a price on
-our heads. But I was becoming more reckless.
-The war was going on with greater intensity every
-day. I saw that the struggle of the Irish people was
-taking the shape I had always hoped. The British
-soldiers and police, particularly the Black and Tans
-and the Auxiliaries—the latter were all ex-officers
-of the British Army, and were the garrison’s
-gentlemen murderers—were day and night looting
-shops, burning private houses, and murdering
-prisoners and torturing youths. But the more
-savage became their methods of repression the more
-determined the Irish people became to fight to the
-bitter end. Practically the whole country was now
-on our side, helping us with food and information
-when they could not give us more active assistance.
-Men who had not the same views as we had on
-active warfare were being driven into our ranks
-because if they stayed at home in their beds they
-would be murdered by the British in the dead of
-night. In fact, their only hope of safety was to
-get “on the run.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_179"></a>[179]</span></p>
-
-<p>If anybody not intimately acquainted with the
-events of that period thinks I am accusing the
-British too much I can only refer him to the Irish
-newspapers of the time. These newspapers were
-bitterly opposed to our policy and our methods, so
-they were not likely to exaggerate on our behalf.
-Moreover if they dared to suggest any charge that
-could not be sustained against the British they knew
-they would be at once suppressed. Yet, day after
-day for a year and a half these papers reported the
-murder of scores of prisoners, the shooting of men
-in their beds, the looting of towns and the burning
-of whole streets.</p>
-
-<p>The historian will yet calculate the millions of
-pounds worth of damage they committed and the
-hundreds of murders they perpetrated. It is a
-well-known fact that dozens of these Black and
-Tans have since committed suicide or gone mad
-because of the horrors for which they were responsible.</p>
-
-<p>And all this time the I.R.A. was every day
-becoming a vaster and more perfect military
-machine. My prophecy to Sean Treacy of 1918
-was being fulfilled. Once the fight for freedom
-started in earnest, as I had said, it was being kept
-up with renewed vigour.</p>
-
-<p>During this visit to Dublin I put a novel proposal
-before Headquarters, the adoption of which changed<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_180"></a>[180]</span>
-the whole nature of the struggle. I shall outline my
-proposal in the next chapter.</p>
-
-<p>Meantime I must here refer to my ever trusty
-friends, at whose houses my companions and I were
-ever welcome while in Dublin, even though torture
-and imprisonment would have been the fate of any
-under whose roof we might be known to shelter. I
-cannot recall them all now, but some I can never forget—Seumas
-Ryan, of The Monument Creamery;
-the Bolands, of Clontarf (Harry’s people); Seumas
-Kirwan, of Parnell Street (a Tipperary man); the
-Delaneys, of Heytesbury Street (now Seumas
-Robinson’s people-in-law); the Flemings, of Drumcondra;
-Mr. and Mrs. Duncan, of Irishtown;
-Seumas and Mrs. O’Doherty, of Connaught Street,
-(later my good friends in America); Martin Conlon
-and, of course, Phil Shanahan.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_181"></a>[181]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XX">CHAPTER XX.<br>
-<span class="smaller">ADVENTURES WITH THE MURDER GANG.</span></h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>The plan I put before Headquarters was the establishment
-of Flying Columns in every county, starting
-of course with Tipperary. My experience of
-ambushes and barrack attacks had convinced me
-that such a scheme would prove an immense
-success.</p>
-
-<p>Hitherto we had been relying very much on help
-from men who would take part in a barrack attack
-at night and be at their work in the shops next
-morning. That was awkward for many reasons. It
-meant first of all, that they could only help at night.
-Secondly it often meant that business might often
-prevent them from coming and so we could not rely
-upon them very much. The disappointment we
-suffered from the Tipperary town men at Knocklong
-showed what serious risks there were in counting on
-men you had not actually at hand. Besides, these
-part-time volunteers could not possibly have the
-training that was wanted; they could not go far
-from home and they lived in an atmosphere of peace
-rather than of war.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_182"></a>[182]</span></p>
-
-<p>We wanted full-time soldiers, to fight night or
-day, to be always at hand ready for any adventure
-and to devote proper time to training. They would
-be a mobile force striking at the enemy to-day in
-one district and next morning surprising him twenty
-or thirty miles away. Could we get this? We could.
-In addition to those few men who were permanently
-on the run—and that number was growing every day—there
-were scores ready to volunteer for whole-time
-active service in every county. Further, the
-tactics of the British in murdering men whom they
-suspected of being volunteers was making it
-impossible for any I.R.A. men to remain at home
-or at their ordinary work. We were being encumbered
-with hundreds of fellows who would only be
-in the way unless organised in proper military units
-acting under officers with discipline and daring.</p>
-
-<p>By such arguments we convinced the Headquarters
-Staff. The Flying Columns were organised
-and on them fell the brunt of the war for the
-remaining twelve months. Perhaps the most
-successful aspect of this system was that it enabled
-active counties like Tipperary and Cork to send
-columns from time to time into places like Kilkenny
-and Waterford, where, owing to the apathy of the
-locals, the British were having too quiet a time.</p>
-
-<p>During these autumn days of 1920 poor Dinny
-Lacy was constantly with me in Dublin, and many
-an exciting adventure we had together, dodging<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_183"></a>[183]</span>
-or defying “G” men, or spies who got on our
-trail.</p>
-
-<p>Dinny, whose name figured prominently in the
-events of 1920 to 1922, was born in Goldengarden,
-in the heart of Tipperary. He was educated in
-Donaskeigh School in the parish of the patriotic
-Father Matt Ryan, the “General of the Land
-War.” Dinny was a great sprinter and footballer;
-in fact he was an all-round man. His home was
-only about a mile from mine, and we knew each
-other from boyhood. He went to Tipperary town
-as a boy, and soon became his employer’s most
-trusted man as manager of a big coal and provision
-premises. He never smoked or drank and he was
-always extremely religious, and could be seen at
-Mass every morning in Tipperary. He was always
-a keen student of the Irish language and he became
-an enthusiastic Volunteer from the very start of that
-force. In Easter Week of 1916 he was one of the
-small band who answered the call to mobilise for
-action at Galbally, six miles from Tipperary, but
-the countermand sent him home, and like the rest
-of the men of Tipperary, he was given no chance
-of striking a blow that week.</p>
-
-<p>In the summer of 1916 he was one of the most
-enthusiastic in favouring the reorganisation of the
-Irish Volunteers as a fighting force. Modest and
-unassuming he was always on the look-out for a
-rifle or a revolver, and he spent all his own money<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_184"></a>[184]</span>
-in making such purchases. He gave everything,
-even his life, in the cause of freedom.</p>
-
-<p>During 1917 and 1918 I came into frequent contact
-with him again. He took part in the big fight at
-Kilmallock in May, 1920, and shortly afterwards
-he had to go on the run. Henceforth he became one
-of the most daring and successful fighters against
-the British. So much was he hated by the Black
-and Tans that they actually burned down the house
-in which he had lodged in Tipperary. Poor Dinny!
-He escaped the bullets of the English only to be
-killed by the Free Staters in an encounter in the
-Glen of Aherlow early in 1923.</p>
-
-<p>However, I must resume my story. I knew my
-days were numbered if I remained in Dublin. The
-British had spies and “touts” and “spotters”
-everywhere. They had promised liberal rewards
-for information, and were at this time making
-desperate efforts to restore their Secret Service and
-to match it against ours. Everywhere one saw the
-khaki and the guns and the lorries. It was quite a
-common thing for an ordinary pedestrian to be held
-up and searched by troops on the streets six or seven
-times in the one day. They jumped off lorries and
-searched and questioned passers-by. They boarded
-tramcars and searched every passenger. They
-surrounded whole blocks of buildings and remained
-for days with a cordon drawn around while every<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_185"></a>[185]</span>
-house was being searched from cellar to attic. All
-these things were not rare, but daily occurrences.</p>
-
-<p>At the same time people were brought to the
-Castle and tortured for information. Letters were
-opened in the post; hotel servants were bribed, and
-an elaborate and speedy system of telephonic code
-was arranged for the touts and spotters. Is it
-surprising that in such circumstances I was often
-hard-pressed to escape? I was being shadowed at
-every step and I knew it, but I always carried my
-gun strapped to my wrist, and concealed by the
-sleeve of my coat, ready to meet whoever challenged
-me.</p>
-
-<p>At last came an adventure which I thought would
-prove my last. I was standing one Friday night
-alone at the Henry Street corner of Nelson’s Pillar.
-I had arranged to spend the night at Carolan’s,
-between Drumcondra and Whitehall. The Whitehall
-car came along and I jumped on board, going
-on top. At once five men sprang on to the same
-car and came up the stairs at my heels. Two of
-them I immediately recognised as members of the
-Castle murder gang which had recently been
-organised by General Tudor, Commander of the
-notorious Auxiliaries. This murder gang consisted
-of a number of Irishmen and Englishmen who were
-instructed to shoot any prominent I.R.A. officer
-whenever they got the chance, whether he was a
-prisoner in their hands or in whatever way they got<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_186"></a>[186]</span>
-the chance. This, of course, was known to Sir
-Hamar Greenwood and had his approval, the members
-of the gang being not only specially paid, but
-assured that no matter what evidence was brought
-against them they would never even be tried. They
-did, as a matter of fact, succeed in murdering a
-good number of our men here and there through the
-country. One of the leaders of the gang was a
-Head Constable, who had served as an ordinary
-constable a few years previously in my own part
-of the country round Tipperary.</p>
-
-<p>The organisation of this murder gang was kept
-a close secret, even from military and police
-officials. We, of course, knew all about it from our
-own Secret Service. We knew most of the
-members’ names and the murders in which they
-had taken part. In addition, Headquarters had
-supplied photographs of some of them to our
-Brigades.</p>
-
-<p>So when I recognised two of the gang on the
-tramcar that night I did not need to be a Sherlock
-Holmes to make up my mind that their three companions
-were also of the same ilk. But it was not
-the history of the murder gang I was recounting
-when I realised my predicament. I was in a tight
-corner. To attempt to retreat from the car would
-be a plain invitation to them to open fire. Besides
-there was the bare possibility that their presence on
-the car was a mere coincidence. Perhaps they did<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_187"></a>[187]</span>
-not recognise me at all. Perhaps they were really
-on some other job.</p>
-
-<p>All these thoughts flashed through my mind in
-a mere fraction of the time they take to relate. I
-had to keep cool, to avoid betraying by the slightest
-sign that I was excited or panicky. There was
-nothing for it but the old game of coolness and
-bluff that had served me so well on the road to
-Foynes and at Whitehall a few months before.</p>
-
-<p>I sat down on the three-seater bench at the rear
-of the car, just at the top of the steps. Then I
-pulled out a packet of cigarettes and lit one.
-Immediately two of the gang sat on the same bench,
-one on each side of me. A third remained standing
-right opposite me gripping the railings. The other
-two went along the centre passage right to the front
-of the car. I never felt less comfortable in my life.
-I realised my danger, but saw no way out of it.</p>
-
-<p>Neither they nor I made any move. The car
-started on its journey, crowded with passengers who
-little realised the drama that was being played
-beside them. It was after 11 o’clock and everybody
-was hurrying home, for curfew was at 12, and no
-one dared to be out after that hour to become a
-target for a dozen bullets.</p>
-
-<p>As the car passed up Parnell Square I began to
-feel a little reassured. Often before I had had a
-pleasant journey with detectives and policemen who<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_188"></a>[188]</span>
-never recognised me. Perhaps my luck was not out
-yet.</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly both the man on my right and his
-companion on my left made a simultaneous move.
-Their right hands went back to their hip-pockets.
-They were pulling something out.</p>
-
-<p>Another second and I had pulled my gun. I had
-drawn first. They realised my purpose. In another
-second my three would-be murderers were rushing
-headlong down the stairs. I was at their heels with
-my revolver levelled. They sprang from the car on
-to the street and I jumped at their heels. Now
-came another moment of hesitation. Would they
-open fire?</p>
-
-<p>It was not a favourable spot to select for a duel.
-The streets were crowded with hurrying pedestrians.
-Soldiers or Auxiliaries might appear at any
-moment. If the three murder-men fired I had no
-alternative but to return. If they didn’t, I would
-not fire. But I could not afford to lose much time.
-There was only one more tram to pass to Whitehall
-and I had to get that or run the risk of being picked
-up by a curfew patrol.</p>
-
-<p>We were in the middle of Dorset Street, almost
-facing Gardiner Street Church. I tried a little ruse.
-I stepped on to the footpath and suddenly ran
-towards St. Joseph’s Terrace. But I ran only three
-or four paces. Then I stamped my feet on the
-pavement, making a noise as if I was on the double<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_189"></a>[189]</span>
-At my first move the three men who were a few
-yards ahead of me ran too. They turned quickly
-into the little avenue which runs parallel to St.
-Joseph’s Terrace. They had been deceived by my
-ruse and evidently ran to intercept me at the other
-end.</p>
-
-<p>While their running footsteps were still resounding
-on the pavement the last tram from the city
-appeared. I jumped on the platform as it passed,
-and left the murder gang behind, probably
-searching the side streets for me. What I can never
-understand is why their two companions who had
-come on the tram with them did not come in pursuit
-of me when I chased the other three from the car.
-Possibly loyalty to comrades was not part of their
-creed, if it involved danger.</p>
-
-<p>It was one of these five men, I found out, who
-later tracked us to “Fernside,” the night of the
-terrible fight there. I slept that night at Fleming’s,
-of Drumcondra. Next morning I told Sean Treacy
-of my adventure and he laughed heartily, consoling
-me with the remark that I could hardly escape much
-longer. However he regarded the incident in a
-more serious light later on when we discussed it.
-Finally we made up our minds that never again
-would either of us go out alone; that we would both
-go out together or both remain indoors. It seemed
-the natural compact to make now that the trail was<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_190"></a>[190]</span>
-getting hot, and since we had passed through so
-many dangers together.</p>
-
-<p>That Saturday morning we went out to Mrs.
-Fitzgerald’s in Hollybank Road, almost beside
-Fleming’s. Mrs. Fitzgerald was herself a Tipperary
-woman, and we had often before enjoyed the hospitality
-of her home. We were tired and sleepy that
-day so we spent most of the time in bed.</p>
-
-<p>The following day we went to Croke Park, the
-headquarters of the Gaelic Athletic Association,
-and only seven minutes’ walk from Hollybank
-Road. It had been our custom for many Sundays
-before that to visit Croke Park when we had nothing
-else to do. We generally had a game of cards—our
-favourite was “Forty-five”—with officials of the
-G.A.A. who might happen to be present, particularly
-Luke O’Toole (the Secretary of the
-Association), Andy Harty, and D. P. Walsh (both
-countymen of our own) and Alderman Nowlan,
-the President. They were all good friends of ours,
-and gave us many pleasant evenings in Luke’s
-house when the matches of the day had finished.</p>
-
-<p>I remember this Sunday well, because it indirectly
-led up to the fight at Drumcondra, strange though
-that may seem.</p>
-
-<p>The stakes were never high, but to men in the
-position of Sean and myself at the time a few
-shillings seemed like riches. The evening I speak
-of the game proved unusually exciting; the “kitty”<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_191"></a>[191]</span>
-or pool gradually grew to a nice sum, and I don’t
-mind admitting that I eyed it jealously as it grew.
-Luck favoured me—even in gambling! I won the
-pool, and seldom was money more welcome to my
-pocket.</p>
-
-<p>Now at this time our plans were not very definite.
-They were not altogether in our own making.
-Dinny Lacey had returned to Tipperary about a
-fortnight before, and we had promised to join him
-within a week. Contrary to our usual habit we had
-failed to keep our appointment, but the fault was
-not ours. It was due to the action of Headquarters.</p>
-
-<p>I have already referred plainly to the attitude
-Headquarters had adopted towards us and our
-campaign from the beginning, but at this time—the
-early Autumn of 1920—a change was noticeable.
-The war was going on even better than we
-expected. Our men were meeting and beating the
-British all through the south. The world was looking
-on in admiration at our struggle, and in spite of
-torture, burnings and lootings the people were
-standing by us. It was death for the man who dared
-to “harbour a rebel,” but hundreds of men and
-women were every night sheltering our Flying
-Columns. In spite of an Anglicised Press the people
-had realised that we were right, that their cause
-was ours, that Ireland could never have peace or
-prosperity until we had driven the British out of
-Ireland. In our delight at the change, Sean and I<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_192"></a>[192]</span>
-were becoming almost reckless. The hotter the
-fighting the better and more perfect the I.R.A.
-became as an organisation. Headquarters apparently
-realised that the rank and file were getting
-too far ahead of them, and they gradually began
-to take a kind of semi-official responsibility for our
-actions.</p>
-
-<p>In pursuance of this new policy, Headquarters
-had now actually planned a certain operation for us
-in Dublin, and it was for that reason we were unable
-to return to Tipperary as soon as we had arranged.</p>
-
-<p>But the plans never matured and we were still
-kept dallying round Dublin. Still we had something
-to cheer us up. I got a tip for a race—a “dead
-cert” that was to come off at a meeting in the
-Phoenix Park. Luckier still, I had now got the
-money I won at Croke Park, to make use of the
-information.</p>
-
-<p>All our worldly wealth went on the horse. And
-he won!</p>
-
-<p>Now for a little of the pleasures of lite that we
-could still enjoy. The money we now had, meant
-wealth to us. Of course I did not regard it as my
-personal property—it belonged to our little
-“Soviet.” Whatever we had we shared, and never
-were there more real communists than we. Before
-we could return to Tipperary we had now to spend
-this money. Any day might be our last in this world.
-A couple of bullets might make us depart at any<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_193"></a>[193]</span>
-moment without having made our wills, and the
-thought that annoyed us was the possibility that our
-few pounds might provide the Black and Tans with
-the wherewithal to drink our health when we were
-dead.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp48" id="illus11" style="max-width: 28.125em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/illus11.jpg" alt="">
- <p class="caption">DINNY LACEY.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>But we knew we had to be careful and more
-cautious than usual. The net was drawing round
-us. An incident that occurred at this time on the
-night of the 10th October, 1920, shows the dangers
-which surrounded us. Sean Treacy and I had
-decided to stay that night at the house of Seumas
-Kirwan, 49 Parnell Street. We had often stayed
-there before and had held several meetings there.
-Seumas was a Tipperary man himself and gave us
-the full run of his house. All his assistants and
-employees were I.R.A. men, and whenever we
-stayed there for the night they were fully armed.</p>
-
-<p>On this particular night we had just entered when
-a man rushed in at our heels and told Seumas that
-“the two men who had just come into the shop
-were shadowed by a spy.”</p>
-
-<p>Sean and I at once rushed into the street and the
-tout, who was standing near the door, ran for his
-life when he saw us. He was a good judge.</p>
-
-<p>We changed our plans and went elsewhere that
-night. Henceforth we knew that Kirwan’s would
-be a marked house, and I never stayed there again
-until the Truce period.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_194"></a>[194]</span></p>
-
-<p>The manner in which we were warned that night
-illustrates how loyal the people were to us. It was
-quite common to get friendly warnings from newsboys
-and orange-sellers who saw touts hanging
-about.</p>
-
-<p>Only a few days previously I had met a group
-of the Dublin Castle murder gang face to face in
-Talbot Street. We recognised each other simultaneously
-and drew our guns. They did not fire.
-I don’t know why. As I had no desire to engage a
-whole group unless forced into it I didn’t fire, but
-walked quietly away unmolested.</p>
-
-<p>But to return to the spending of our winnings on
-the horse. Our first little dissipation was to go to
-the pictures at La Scala Theatre, which had just
-been opened in O’Connell Street. That was on the
-afternoon of the 11th October, 1920. In the theatre
-we met the two Misses Fleming, of Drumcondra,
-with them was Mrs. O’Brien, wife of Eamon
-O’Brien, of Galbally, one of the men who had taken
-part in the rescue at Knocklong with us, and who
-was now in America. Mrs. O’Brien was not only
-delighted but astonished to meet us. I suppose it
-was somewhat of a surprise to her to meet in a
-picture house two men whom all the troops and
-police in Ireland had instructions to shoot at sight.
-We had grown used to taking these risks now, even
-though it was quite probable that not one in that
-audience that evening would get home without being<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_195"></a>[195]</span>
-held up and searched at the door, or in the street
-or in the tram.</p>
-
-<p>We left the theatre together. Just as we stepped
-into the street the first man I saw was one of the
-murder gang who had boarded the tram with me
-only a few nights before. I could make no mistake
-about him, for he was one of the two who sat on
-either side of me on the tram. I saw him first.
-Standing on the path and scrutinising the picture-goers
-as they emerged he was evidently pretending
-to be looking for a friend, but I guessed he was
-looking for me. It is quite possible, though I do
-not think it probable, that either he or some tout
-had seen Sean and myself.</p>
-
-<p>For a moment I felt tempted to draw my gun
-and shoot him on the spot. But I was between two
-of the girls and I did not want to alarm them.
-Besides if he had a confederate about, the return of
-fire might place the girls in danger. The five of
-us were facing for the Nelson Pillar to get a tram
-to Fleming’s house in Drumcondra, and as the
-Pillar is less than a hundred yards from the theatre
-I felt it safe enough to walk on. I said nothing to
-the others, nor did I look a second time at the
-Castle man. I knew he must have seen me, too,
-and I felt pretty certain that he was following us
-up in the crowd.</p>
-
-<p>Just as we approached the tram I stepped back
-to let the others get a few yards in advance of me.<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_196"></a>[196]</span>
-As I did so Kitty Fleming whispered, “there is a
-friend following.” Evidently she had seen him too.
-The girls were well trained to use their eyes in those
-days.</p>
-
-<p>Sean and the three girls stepped into the tram. I
-was at their heels. As I mounted the footboard I
-wheeled round sharply and faced my enemy. He
-read the message in my eye. Had he attempted to
-board the tram I would have riddled him on the
-spot. But he was quick to see my move, and he
-quietly slunk back from the tram and lost himself in
-the crowd as our car started for Drumcondra.</p>
-
-<p>At Fleming’s we discussed the incident over a
-cup of coffee. At times I was half sorry I had
-allowed him to escape with his life. Had I known
-as much when I stood on the footboard as I do
-now the Crown Forces would be one man the less
-that evening; for, as the sequel will show, that
-man or one of his touts must have boarded the
-next tram to Drumcondra, and got on our trail
-again that night.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_197"></a>[197]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXI">CHAPTER XXI.<br>
-<span class="smaller">THE DRUMCONDRA FIGHT.</span></h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>That night we left Fleming’s about 11 o’clock.
-In case we had been seen entering and were still
-being shadowed we left by the back. It was a bright
-moonlight night. From the back of the house we
-got out to Botanic Avenue. There Sean and I
-debated for a few minutes whether we should go
-round to our friend Mrs. Fitzgerald, in Hollybank
-Road, or go on to Professor Carolan’s, and we
-turned to the right and came up to the bridge over
-the Tolka. Curfew was at 12 o’clock, and the
-streets were already deserted. As we stood for a
-moment on the bridge to look round and listen we
-heard the rumbling in the distance of military lorries
-preparing to go on curfew patrol.</p>
-
-<p>From the bridge to Carolan’s is about seven
-minutes’ walk. It is the main road to Belfast, and
-a well-to-do residential quarter. On the left is the
-great Training College for National Teachers, and
-on the right, some distance back from the road, is
-another well-known institution—All Hallows Ecclesiastical
-College.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_198"></a>[198]</span></p>
-
-<p>We had a latchkey of Professor Carolan’s house,
-“Fernside.” It was one of the many latchkeys
-we had at the time, all given us by friends to whose
-houses we were welcome whenever we might wish
-to call at any hour.</p>
-
-<p>I had already stayed a few nights at “Fernside,”
-having been introduced to the family by Peter
-Fleming. I well remember how heartily I was
-received on that first occasion by the family, and
-how thoughtfully Mr. Carolan himself showed me
-over the whole house, and especially the back
-garden. He pointed out a low wall to me as the
-best means of escape in case of a raid. “I don’t
-expect you’ll need it,” he said, “but it is no harm
-to know your way about.” He was a kindly,
-lovable man whose clear earnest eyes would inspire
-one with confidence.</p>
-
-<p>The house is one of a type common enough in
-middle-class suburban districts in Dublin. It is a
-two-storeyed brick building of eight or nine apartments.
-There is a small plot in front facing the
-road, and on the left, as one enters, is a tradesman’s
-side door, leading to the back. Over this door it
-would be easily possible for an active man to climb
-into the yard.</p>
-
-<p>At the back there is a long garden, separated
-from the adjoining garden by a wall about seven
-feet high. Close up to the house, and almost under
-the window was a conservatory.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_199"></a>[199]</span></p>
-
-<p>Every time that we had availed ourselves of Mr.
-Carolan’s hospitality we had reached the house
-before 11 o’clock at night. On this occasion we did
-not arrive until about 11.30 p.m., and as there was
-no light to be seen we concluded the family had
-retired, and we let ourselves in as noiselessly as
-possible, making our way to the bedroom which
-had been reserved for us on the second floor at the
-back, overlooking the conservatory. It is certain,
-of course, that no member of the family was aware
-of our presence in the house that night.</p>
-
-<p>We went to bed almost at once, both of us sleeping
-together. Still we did not feel very sleepy and
-for a while we chatted about our plans for the future
-and our return to Tipperary. Then our conversation
-lagged. My mind became possessed of a strange
-presentiment. Perhaps it was the after-effects of
-my few recent adventures with the murder gang.
-I tried to sleep, but for once sleep would not come.
-Sean, too, was still awake, though not inclined to
-talk.</p>
-
-<p>I felt half inclined to tell him of the queer feeling
-that had come over me, but he was himself the
-first to speak:</p>
-
-<p>“Dan,” he said, “do you find any queer feeling
-coming over you? I can’t sleep. Can you?”</p>
-
-<p>He had, in fact, put the very questions I was
-trying to frame. I told him so and we both laughed.</p>
-
-<p>“We may have a raid to-night, Sean,” I said,<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_200"></a>[200]</span>
-half joking. “I wonder is there any danger we were
-shadowed to-night coming here? If we were surrounded
-in this place we’d have a very poor chance
-of escaping.”</p>
-
-<p>Sean did not reply for a minute. “Somehow I
-wouldn’t mind if we were killed now, Dan,” he said.
-“The war is going to go on whatever happens,
-and if we’re killed I hope we will die together.”</p>
-
-<p>Another moment’s silence and we both dozed
-off.</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly we sat up in the bed. Outside in the
-street was the heavy tramp of marching men.
-Voices were whispering in the back. Through our
-window came the flare of a dazzling searchlight.
-It was about 1 a.m. We had been over an hour in
-the house.</p>
-
-<p>There was a crash of glass in the front. A door
-opened. From the stairs came the sound of rushing
-footsteps.</p>
-
-<p>We sprang out of bed together. Simultaneously
-our hands gripped our revolvers. I took a gun in
-each hand. A hand was groping on our door outside.
-I never spoke. Sean pressed my arm and
-whispered “Goodbye, Dan, we’ll meet above.”</p>
-
-<p>Crack! crack! Two bullets came whizzing
-through the door. Crack! crack! My German
-Mauser pistol was replying.</p>
-
-<p>There was no light save the flash of the shots.<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_201"></a>[201]</span>
-Outside on the landing an English voice was
-shouting, “Where is Ryan? Where is Ryan?”</p>
-
-<p>Bullets were now flying on all sides, our door
-was partly open. I blazed away on to the landing.
-Blood was flowing freely from my right thumb where
-a flying bullet struck me, but I felt no pain. Outside
-I heard a thud as if a man had fallen on the carpet.
-Suddenly I realised that Sean’s gun had missed
-fire. With my Mauser still raking the landing and
-the stairs I shouted to Sean to get back to the
-window. He stepped back, just as another bullet
-from outside buried itself in the wardrobe. The
-firing from the stairs had momentarily ceased.
-There was a hurried rush of retreating footsteps
-down towards the hall. In the back I could hear
-rifle shots ringing out.</p>
-
-<p>I dashed out of the room on to the landing and
-saw half a dozen soldiers making another attempt
-to come up the stairs, their electric torches making
-me an almost certain target for their bullets. Into
-that khaki group my pistol poured bullet after
-bullet. I knew now that the house was surrounded
-and that there was little hope of escape for me.
-But the rage of battle had taken possession of me.
-I was going to be killed; but I would sell my life
-dearly.</p>
-
-<p>As I blazed into the soldiers there was a hurried
-rush for safety. They had now evacuated the top
-landing and I was pursuing them down the stairs.<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_202"></a>[202]</span>
-When I got to the first floor they had all disappeared—some
-had taken shelter in the rooms
-underneath, others had retreated headlong into the
-street. There was no other target for my bullets,
-but now and again I heard the sharp report of a
-rifle from the back, mingled with occasional groans
-and cries.</p>
-
-<p>I rushed back to my room. At the door I tripped
-over two dead officers and a wounded Tommy. I
-had to pull each of them out of the way before I
-could close my door. I don’t know how I had missed
-tripping over them when I had first rushed out of
-the room. In the heat of the battle one does not
-see everything.</p>
-
-<p>Once back in my room I banged the door and
-turned the lock. I knew I had not a moment to
-spare; for with the hundreds of troops they had
-apparently brought on the raid they were bound to
-make another attack. I sprang to the window. A
-searchlight played for a moment on the back of
-the house and a shower of bullets came whizzing
-through the glass. A few of them struck me, but
-a couple of wounds more or less did not matter very
-much, for I had already been hit more than once in
-the exchange.</p>
-
-<p>The lower half of the window was already open.
-Sean had got out that way. I stepped on to the
-window-sill, and dropped into the roof of the conservatory.
-In the clear moonlight I could discern<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_203"></a>[203]</span>
-countless steel helmets all round the house. The
-Tommies were blazing at me. Before I could drop
-from the conservatory I saw I would have to get
-away through them.</p>
-
-<p>With the revolver which I held in my left hand
-I smashed a hole in the roof of the conservatory.
-Then I gripped a beam and swung down, my
-German pistol still seeking a mark on the enemy.
-Right well did it accomplish its task, for within a
-minute there was not a soldier to be seen—they had
-disappeared.</p>
-
-<p>I was still dangling from the roof of the glass-house.
-When I had silenced the enemy I swung
-back on the roof and then jumped to the ground.</p>
-
-<p>I looked around for my comrade. There was
-no sign of him. I called out his name, but got no
-reply. I lay flat on the ground to avoid offering a
-target to any venturesome Tommy who might put
-his head over the garden wall. I continued to call
-out for Sean.</p>
-
-<p>“Sean! Sean! Where are you?” But there
-was no reply. I thought he might have been struck
-getting through the window and might have been
-lying wounded in the conservatory. Now I began
-to fear he had fallen into their hands. Then I
-consoled myself with the thought that after all he
-had got away, though the chance was a poor one.
-I knew I had been fighting on the landing and stairs
-for nearly half an hour, and when I did not return<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_204"></a>[204]</span>
-to the room Sean may have concluded I was killed
-while he was trying to settle his revolver.</p>
-
-<p>As I lay on the ground I realised I was getting
-weak. I had neither hat, boots nor overcoat. I
-had only barely time to slip on trousers and coat.
-I saw that I was wounded in five or six places and
-was bleeding from head to foot, but I had to move
-quickly. Strangely enough, I was beginning to feel
-that I would escape after all.</p>
-
-<p>While I was still rapidly thinking what course to
-take the enemy returned to the attack. Several
-grenades burst around me near the conservatory.
-I made another effort and rose to move. A short
-distance from me I saw that low dividing wall that
-my host had been so careful to point out on my
-first visit. Now I appreciated his foresight as I
-made for the wall. A little distance beyond the
-conservatory in the garden I found the dead bodies
-of two soldiers. Then I knew Sean had passed
-that way.</p>
-
-<p>He might have escaped, I thought; but there
-was still the danger that he had been shot further
-down the garden.</p>
-
-<p>Just as I reached the wall a soldier’s head
-appeared outside. He saw me and levelled his rifle,
-at the same time shouting “Halt! halt!” He
-fired and missed me. I fired too. When I dropped
-over the wall, clear of Carolan’s garden, I<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_205"></a>[205]</span>
-stumbled over his body. I don’t know whether he
-was dead or wounded.</p>
-
-<p>Another group of soldiers close at hand opened
-fire on me, and I blazed at them in return as I rushed
-for the nearest wall. I got over but did not recognise
-my surroundings. All I knew was that I was
-on the road. Suddenly I ran right into an armoured
-car. There was nothing for it but to get in the
-first shot. I hit one of their men before the
-occupants of the car had time to take aim, and I
-rushed by as their bullets knocked splinters out of
-the roadway and the walls around me, but never
-once struck me. By this time I had recognised my
-surroundings. I was out on the main road between
-Carolan’s house and Drumcondra Bridge. It would
-be madness to keep on along the road, for if the
-armoured car did not pursue me I was almost certain
-to run into some of their outposts near the bridge.</p>
-
-<p>On my right as I ran towards the city was the
-limestone wall surrounding St. Patrick’s Training
-College. Could I once scale that and get into the
-college grounds my chances of escape were good.
-But it was about 18 feet high. I had neither boots
-nor socks; one toe on my right foot was broken and
-giving me terrible pain; I had at least five bullet
-holes in my side, from my hip to my foot, besides
-several less serious wounds. But when a man is
-fighting for his life he gets strength that he has not
-at ordinary times. I scrambled to the top of that<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_206"></a>[206]</span>
-wall. How I did it I often wondered afterwards as
-I passed it by. When I got to the top I felt almost
-happy. My hopes grew stronger, though my body
-grew weaker from the terrible excitement and the
-loss of blood. I slid down carefully on the inside and
-faced for the west, leading towards Glasnevin or
-Finglas direction. But I was still within a few
-hundred yards of “Fernside,” and at any moment
-I might again run into a group of soldiers. I crawled
-along as noiselessly as I could. At this stage I
-think it was instinct that was guiding me. I was
-dazed and as near to unconsciousness as a man can
-be while he still has the power to walk. I lost all
-sense of time and distance.</p>
-
-<p>At last I found myself on the banks of a river.
-I knew it must be the Tolka. I had no place to seek
-shelter. My one aim was to put some distance
-between me and my pursuers. I could not go out
-on the road to seek a bridge. I had to cross the
-river, and there was only one way of doing it.
-Fortunately it was not deep and as I waded through
-the cold piercing water I could feel it trickling
-through my leg where some of the bullets had made
-a clear passage through my flesh. I cannot say
-that I felt the cold too keenly. I suppose there are
-times when nature is dead to minor feelings.</p>
-
-<p>When I got to the other side of the river I saw
-that I was close to some houses. I knew they must
-be the houses in Botanic Avenue and that I was at<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_207"></a>[207]</span>
-the back. I could struggle no further. Blood was
-pouring from me all the time. My only hope, if I
-was not to drop down and die of exhaustion and
-exposure, was to seek the shelter of some one of
-these roofs.</p>
-
-<p>I do not know what instinct impelled me, but I
-selected one particular back door. It was as if an
-angel whispered that that door and that only held
-out hope to me.</p>
-
-<p>I knocked. I realised well enough what a
-spectacle I must present now, at 3 or 4 o’clock in
-the morning, half-clad, dishevelled and covered
-with blood.</p>
-
-<p>A second time I knocked. A man opened the
-door. My appearance was sufficient explanation,
-but I mumbled a few words to say that I needed
-shelter.</p>
-
-<p>He did not ask me who I was, or how I had
-received my wounds. He simply said, “Come in.
-Whatever we can do for you we’ll do it.”</p>
-
-<p>He and his wife took me in. The latter quickly
-summoned Nurse Long, who lived nearby. They
-dressed my wounds and gave me some stimulant,
-which the nurse procured from my friends, the
-Flemings, at imminent danger to her own life,
-having to pass twice through the excited cordon of
-soldiers in the small hours of that morning.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_208"></a>[208]</span></p>
-
-<p>Then I learned who my good Samaritan was.
-He was Mr. Fred Holmes, whose sympathies, I
-believe, were on the other side.</p>
-
-<p>But he and his wife tended me that morning with
-care and attention that they might have bestowed
-upon a son or brother. There was no need to tell
-them how I had come to be in that plight. Yet
-they took me in and saved my life.</p>
-
-<p>Gratitude is but a poor word to express my
-feelings towards that family. In the morning I told
-them who I was. They assured me that everything
-in their power would be done to enable me to
-recover and to get to a place of safety, for I knew
-I could not stay long in a house which was not half
-a mile from the scene of the battle.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_209"></a>[209]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXII">CHAPTER XXII.<br>
-<span class="smaller">MISSED BY INCHES.</span></h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Early in the morning—still October 12th, 1920—Mrs.
-Holmes at my request took a note to Phil
-Shanahan’s, with a message for Dick McKee. I
-wanted to be removed as soon as possible. I also
-wanted to report to Headquarters that Sean Treacy
-had been killed in the same engagement.</p>
-
-<p>While I was waiting the reply I learned from the
-people of the house that in each of the houses on
-either side a Black and Tan was lodging, both
-houses being the property of members of the Dublin
-Police. You can imagine how lucky I was to select
-the particular back gate I did.</p>
-
-<p>In a short time a motor car arrived at the door.
-In it were Joe Lawless, Maurice Brennan and Tom
-Kelly. They had been sent by Dick McKee to take
-me away to the Mater Hospital where he had
-already made arrangements that I was to be received
-and treated.</p>
-
-<p>I was provided with an outfit and placed in the
-car. My keenest regret was not the suit I had<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_210"></a>[210]</span>
-been compelled to leave behind in Carolan’s, but
-the six pound notes and the watch that were in the
-pockets. Probably some enterprising officer had a
-good night out of the discovery, for I need hardly
-say that my losses did not form the subject of
-compensation awards when the Truce came.</p>
-
-<p>I was driven up Botanic Road on through
-Phibsboro’ towards the Mater Hospital. At
-Phibsboro’ corner a D.M.P. man motioned us to
-stop as we approached. For a moment we feared
-there was something wrong. But relief came in a
-few moments. We were simply being asked to
-slow down while a convoy of Auxiliaries passed,
-probably to raid some houses in the locality for me.</p>
-
-<p>We continued our journey, and as we approached
-the entrance to the hospital in Eccles Street I saw
-Dick McKee—himself a very much wanted man at
-the time, walking slowly along the path. With
-a slight wave of his hand he motioned to us to pass
-the hospital. A little further down he crossed to us
-to tell us we could not go into the hospital for some
-time as there were two D.M.P. Inspectors, with
-some military and police actually raiding the
-hospital at that moment searching for wounded
-men.</p>
-
-<p>“Dan,” he said, as he gripped my hand for a
-moment, “ye got the very men we would have had
-to give the next two years looking for.”</p>
-
-<p>Our car crossed Dorset Street into Mountjoy<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_211"></a>[211]</span>
-Square, and finally drove into an old stable in Great
-Charles Street. It was one of the best known
-dumping grounds used for concealing the arms of
-the Dublin Brigade, though it was shortly afterwards
-discovered by the enemy.</p>
-
-<p>It is easy to imagine how sick and tired of life I
-was as I drove into this old stable, but picture my
-delight at seeing Sean Treacy waiting to welcome
-me.</p>
-
-<p>He had escaped without as much as a scratch.
-Briefly—for he had not long to spare—he told me
-of his adventures. He got safely away through the
-back, convinced that I was killed. For hours he
-had wandered almost naked through the country,
-scarcely knowing where he was until as dawn broke
-he knocked at a door in a last effort to gain shelter.
-He did not even know in what district he was until
-the door was opened by his own cousin Phil Ryan,
-of Finglas! Truly, the fates were on our side that
-morning.</p>
-
-<p>In our joy at meeting once more we almost forgot
-our perils; for the streets of Dublin were being
-searched that day by hundreds of troops as never
-before. But our scouts reported that the way to
-the Mater was now clear as the enemy had left
-the hospital. The boys were anxious that no time
-should be lost until I was in skilled hands, and we
-moved on at once towards the Mater. They took
-me on a stretcher into the hospital, and as I lay<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_212"></a>[212]</span>
-on that stretcher I shook hands with Sean Treacy—for
-the last time.</p>
-
-<p>Little did I think that evening that never again
-on this earth would I lay eyes on my faithful
-comrade—one who was dearer to me than a brother.
-Had I known then that it was to be our last meeting
-in this world I would have little heart to battle with
-my wounds. Poor Sean! the comrade of my
-adventures, the sharer of my hopes. His face is
-always before me, and until my last hour his
-memory will make me struggle against blinding
-tears.</p>
-
-<p>When I arrived in the hospital Surgeon Barnaville
-took me into his skilled hands, and I believe I
-owe my life and my rapid recovery to his unceasing
-care and devotion.</p>
-
-<p>Next day a friend who visited me gave me a full
-story of the Drumcondra fight, or at least that
-portion of it which I did not know myself. Some
-he had learned from the newspapers, more from
-our Intelligence Department.</p>
-
-<p>It seems that in spite of our precautions we were
-shadowed to Fleming’s that night, and later to
-Carolan’s by the very man we had seen outside the
-theatre. Their Secret Service was able to report
-that “Breen and ‘Lacey’ had gone to ‘Fernside.’”
-I have never since discovered whether Sean Treacy
-was actually mistaken for Dinny Lacey, or whether
-the similarity of the surnames had confused the spy.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_213"></a>[213]</span></p>
-
-<p>At once every “G” man in the Castle was
-mobilised for the raid, but they refused point blank
-to go on the job. At this display of cowardice and
-mutiny the enemy chiefs were incensed; but they
-could not afford to betray their weakness by letting
-the news leak out that their whole detective force
-had refused to go on a raid. So the detectives were
-not punished for their indiscipline, and to cover up
-the mutiny the “G” men were ordered out the
-same morning on a raid on the shop owned by Mr.
-J. J. Walsh (now the Free State Postmaster-General).</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile the military chiefs had been communicated
-with and informed of the position. They
-asked “what kind of a job” it would be, and were
-told they might expect “plenty of gunplay.”</p>
-
-<p>The military had the men willing to take the risk.
-Foremost amongst those who volunteered for the
-raid was Major G. O. S. Smyth, a native of Banbridge,
-and formerly a District Inspector in the
-R.I.C. This man had been serving in Egypt until
-he got word that his brother—also a Major—a
-Divisional Commissioner of the R.I.C. had been
-shot dead in Cork. This Commissioner was a
-notorious official who addressed the police in Kerry,
-and told them to shoot any person suspected of
-being a Sinn Feiner, adding “the more the
-merrier.” This cold-blooded incitement to murder
-even ordinary civilians led first to a mutiny of the<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_214"></a>[214]</span>
-R.I.C. in Listowel, and secondly to the death of
-Smyth himself within a month. He was shot dead
-in the County Club, in the heart of Cork city.</p>
-
-<p>His brother, who had been serving in the British
-Army in Egypt, at once volunteered for service in
-Ireland, with the avowed intention of avenging his
-brother’s death. With him he brought a chosen
-band of men inspired with similar motives.</p>
-
-<p>He was the first to be killed that night. With
-him fell another officer, Captain A. D. White. A
-corporal was also wounded. These casualties the
-British officially admitted, but we knew their losses
-were heavier. It was quite usual at that time for
-the British to conceal their real casualties.</p>
-
-<p>But what saddened me most of all was the news
-that our faithful friend, Professor Carolan, had been
-fatally wounded too. The official report issued at
-the time stated that the Professor was shot by the
-first bullet that came through our door. This was
-the report of a secret military inquiry condemning
-the shooting of the officers, for it must be remembered
-that long before this the British had forbidden
-the holding of coroner’s inquests. Ordinary jurors
-were honest men and would insist upon having the
-truth, and would thus expose the whole Murder
-Campaign of the English.</p>
-
-<p>Poor Mr. Carolan survived for several weeks.
-He was actually in the Mater Hospital at the same
-time as myself, though in a different part of the<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_215"></a>[215]</span>
-institution. At one time there were high hopes of
-his recovery. During that period he made a statement
-in the presence of witnesses which will be
-found published in the Dublin newspapers of
-October 21st and 22nd of 1920. That was the
-death-bed statement of an honourable man and a
-pious Catholic. If further proof of its accuracy be
-needed it is the fact that the newspapers which
-published it were not suppressed, as they would
-have been within half an hour were the report inaccurate.</p>
-
-<p>In that statement Mr. Carolan made it quite
-clear and emphatic that the time he was shot we
-had escaped. We had been a quarter of an
-hour out of the house, he declared, before he was
-put standing with his face to the wall, and deliberately
-shot by a British officer. When he first opened
-the door for the raiders they asked him who was
-in the house, and the faithful man said he thought
-Ryan was the name—giving a name common in
-that part of the country from which our accents
-would tell we came. That accounted for the shouts
-we heard, “Where is Ryan? Where is Ryan?”</p>
-
-<p>A revolver was kept pressed to the poor man’s
-temple all the time, and when the British saw their
-leaders killed they murdered him as a reprisal.
-Generous, noble and patriotic he dared to shelter
-us when few of our pretended friends would have
-done so. I shall always think of him and his family’s<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_216"></a>[216]</span>
-kindness to us, and regret from the bottom of my
-heart that he met such a sad death. May he rest
-in peace.</p>
-
-<p>On the evening of the 13th October, while I was
-being taken into the Mater, the village of Finglas,
-where Sean had found shelter, and only a mile from
-the house where I had been befriended, was invested
-by hundreds of British troops in full war kit.
-Evidently they had either traced Sean to the
-district or had suspected that I got farther than I
-actually did.</p>
-
-<p>Every house in the village and district was
-searched, but without avail.</p>
-
-<p>One other sequel to the Drumcondra fight I
-must relate before I proceed with my own story.
-Every male member of the Fleming family was
-arrested next day. That is the best proof we got
-that our footsteps were dogged all that night.
-Michael Fleming was sentenced to six months
-imprisonment for refusing to give information about
-me.</p>
-
-<p>Thursday, 14th October, 1920, is a date I shall
-never forget. That was my third day in the hospital.</p>
-
-<p>Early in the afternoon one of the Sisters came
-running into my room. Before she spoke I could
-read that she had serious news. A few hours before
-I had heard some firing in the neighbourhood, but
-that, I had been told, had been an encounter at
-Phibsboro’ corner where an attempt to capture an<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_217"></a>[217]</span>
-armoured car proved unsuccessful—one I.R.A. man
-giving his life in the effort. That occurred only three
-hundred yards from where I was lying.</p>
-
-<p>But the Sister had more serious news than that
-for me. The hospital was surrounded by troops and
-armoured cars, and the hospital was being searched
-for me.</p>
-
-<p>My bed was beside the window. I raised myself
-on my elbow and looked out. Below I saw the
-burly figures and the Glengarry caps of a dozen
-Auxiliaries on guard outside.</p>
-
-<p>“It is all up this time, Dan,” I remarked to
-myself, “and you can’t even pull a gun!”</p>
-
-<p>Somehow I felt resigned to it. For the music of
-the shots I had heard that morning told me that the
-fight was going to go on.</p>
-
-<p>Still, I cannot say that I was not excited. Now
-and again I heard the engines of the military cars
-throbbing. Perhaps they would go without finding
-me. But they were only driving up and down to
-keep back the crowds. When I looked out the
-Auxiliaries were still there. The minutes grew into
-hours. Would the raid ever end? When would the
-door open to admit the searchers to my room?</p>
-
-<p>Luck favoured me once more. After a two hours’
-stay the raiders departed without even coming near
-my part of the house.</p>
-
-<p>When they had gone I learned the reason of their
-swoop. Early that morning a young I.R.A. man<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_218"></a>[218]</span>
-named Furlong had been wounded in an explosion
-which occurred near Dunboyne, ten miles outside
-the city, where he had been testing some bombs.
-His comrades at once rushed him in a dying condition
-to the Mater. The British got to hear of this.
-He was not unlike me in appearance. The poor
-fellow died while the raid was in progress, and I
-believe some of the Black and Tans thought they
-had seen the last of Dan Breen.</p>
-
-<p>This raid had for me personally the saddest
-sequel that could come to pass. In the next
-chapter I shall relate what I afterwards learned.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_219"></a>[219]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXIII">CHAPTER XXIII.<br>
-<span class="smaller">EXECUTIONS AND REPRISALS.</span></h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>While I was lying in the Mater my faithful
-comrade, Sean Treacy, was never idle. His main
-concern during this time was to be ever on the
-watch for my safety. And that Thursday evening,
-14th October, 1920, he learned that the hospital
-was surrounded.</p>
-
-<p>Without a moment’s delay he went to Headquarters
-to seek a rescue party of which he himself
-would be one. His request was granted, and within
-an hour he and other trusty comrades were busy
-mobilising their men. In his zeal to undertake a
-desperate task for my safety he forgot about himself.
-He went openly through the principal streets—and
-was shadowed. I cannot say for certain,
-but I have a firm conviction that the man who
-traced him was the same man who, three days
-before, had traced us to Drumcondra.</p>
-
-<p>Sean had almost completed the arrangements for
-the rescue when he went to the “Republican
-Outfitters,” in Talbot Street, where he was to have<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_220"></a>[220]</span>
-a few final details settled. That place was a
-drapery establishment owned by Tom Hunter,
-T.D., and Peadar Clancy. It was perhaps the best
-known centre in which I.R.A. men met from time
-to time, or delivered messages, though it was so
-closely watched that it was never advisable to delay
-there long.</p>
-
-<p>When Sean arrived in the shop he found George
-and Jack Plunkett, sons of Count Plunkett, T.D.,
-and both members of the Headquarters Staff. With
-them were Joe Vyse and Leo Henderson, officers
-of the Dublin Brigade, who had been holding a
-hurried meeting.</p>
-
-<p>Peadar Clancy, who left the shop, accompanied
-by a lady friend, had only reached the Nelson Pillar,
-two hundred yards away, when he saw a military
-raiding party dash from O’Connell Street into
-Talbot Street, and at once suspected that the shop
-was going to be raided. But he had no chance of
-giving word to the boys. It would take the military
-less than two minutes to reach the shop. Sean, who
-was standing near the door, was the first to see the
-enemy approach. Two or three others had to face
-the front and take their chances of evading the
-British.</p>
-
-<p>The lorries pulled up at the door. One of those
-in the shop immediately ran from the door to the
-street. A soldier sprang from the lorry to intercept
-him. Just at the same time an Auxiliary Intelligence<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_221"></a>[221]</span>
-officer, whose name was given as “Christian,” and
-who was in civilian clothes, jumped from the first
-lorry and shouted “That is not he. Here is the
-man we want”—rushing towards Sean Treacy,
-who was in the act of throwing his leg across the
-bicycle which he had left outside the door.</p>
-
-<p>Sean saw he was cornered and pulled his gun. It
-was a hopeless fight from the first, but like the
-man that he was Sean Treacy fought till he was
-riddled.</p>
-
-<p>The whole contingent of British troops and
-Auxiliaries, regardless even of their own comrade
-who was in grips with Sean, turned their rifles and
-machine gun on the man they feared. They killed
-Sean and three civilians who came in the line of fire,
-but Sean had left “Christian” dangerously wounded
-before he fell himself.</p>
-
-<p>Thus died the greatest Irishman of our
-generation. He gave his life to save his comrades.
-It was not the first time he had offered to do it.</p>
-
-<p>I have no hesitation in declaring that Sean Treacy
-was not only the noblest patriot of our time, but
-the greatest military genius of our race. It is a big
-claim to make for a man who died before he was
-28 years of age, and who had had none of the
-training that we associate with military leaders of
-fame and reputation. The world has since acknowledged
-that the tactics adopted by the I.R.A. in
-its guerilla warfare with the British were inspired<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_222"></a>[222]</span>
-by genius of the highest order. I assert now for
-my dead comrade that the most brilliant of these
-tactics for which others were given credit, were the
-product of Sean Treacy’s active brain. He gave
-the hints; others elaborated them. He died with
-a smile on his countenance—the noblest patriot, the
-bravest man, and the cleanest and most honourable
-soldier I have ever known.</p>
-
-<p>I knew nothing of the fight in Talbot Street for
-days afterwards. I am not given either to superstition
-or to flights of imagination, but so sure as
-I pen these lines so sure am I that I knew that
-Thursday afternoon that Sean Treacy was dead.
-He stood at the foot of my bed, with a calm smile
-on his countenance.</p>
-
-<p>That evening Mick Collins came to see me. My
-first question was: “Where is Sean?” I was yet
-too ill to be told the bitter truth. Mick turned his
-eyes from mine and replied: “He is out in the
-country.”</p>
-
-<p>Not for ten days did I hear the full story. From
-Ship Street Barracks, whither his body had been
-taken by the British, the remains of Sean Treacy
-were taken to his native Tipperary, where they were
-received with honour and reverence that no king
-could claim. From Soloheadbeg Church, where
-he had knelt in prayer as a child, the body of
-Tipperary’s pride was taken through the town of
-Kilfeacle. Never before had such honours been<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_223"></a>[223]</span>
-given to a dead Tipperaryman. The British seemed
-to fear him in death, for their armed ghouls sought
-to interfere with the funeral. The day was observed
-as a day of general mourning in South Tipperary,
-and the funeral procession was several miles long.
-Scarce an eye was dry that day.</p>
-
-<p>The country will not soon forget Sean Treacy.
-His grave at Kilfeacle has become a place of
-pilgrimage, and his name will rank with those who
-stand highest in the roll of our people’s soldiers and
-patriots.</p>
-
-<p>The following Friday night I was removed from
-the Mater Hospital by Gearoid O’Sullivan and
-Rory O’Connor. Gearoid O’Sullivan was later
-Adjutant-General of the Free State Army. Rory
-O’Connor, with his comrades Liam Mellows, Dick
-Barrett and Joe McKelvey, was executed in
-Mountjoy Jail on the 8th December, 1922, by order
-of the Free State Government, as a reprisal for the
-shooting of Sean Hales.</p>
-
-<p>These two accompanied me in a motor to the
-house of a lady doctor on the south side of the city.
-It was felt that the Mater was no longer a safe
-place for me, though I shall always think with
-gratitude of the devoted care I received from every
-member of the staff, particularly Surgeon Barnaville
-and the nuns. It must not be forgotten that
-at this time the British had issued orders that any
-doctor or nurse who attended a patient for gunshot<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_224"></a>[224]</span>
-wounds was at once to report the case to the Castle.
-The object was to trace men who were in a position
-similar to mine. To their credit be it said that the
-members of the medical profession, irrespective of
-their personal political views, absolutely declined to
-carry out these orders.</p>
-
-<p>At my new resting-place I was again carefully
-tended, and my wounds began to heal rapidly. After
-a few days I was able to get out of bed for a short
-time every day.</p>
-
-<p>A week after my arrival at this house another
-exciting incident took place. The whole block in
-which my hostess lived was surrounded. Once
-more, I thought, they were on my trail. From my
-window I saw the troops taking up their positions.
-I rushed to the skylight—for skylights had often
-before proved useful to me. Just as I got to the
-skylight I saw an Auxiliary outside on the roof
-with a rifle in his hand.</p>
-
-<p>This time, I concluded, there was no chance for
-me. I was to be caught like a rat in a trap. I
-went to the front window again. Outside was a line
-of khaki and steel. Beyond that was a throng of
-curious sightseers. Some, I suppose, were full of
-anxiety and fear lest any soldier of Ireland should
-be caught in the trap. Others no doubt were proud
-of the Empire’s Army, and hoping it would gain
-another little laurel.</p>
-
-<p>As my eyes travelled along the line of spectators<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_225"></a>[225]</span>
-I saw the figure of Mick Collins. Later I learned
-why he was there. He had seen the troops moving
-in the direction of the district in which I was being
-nursed, and had actually collected a few of the boys
-to be ready to attempt a rescue.</p>
-
-<p>Their services were not needed. The soldiers
-raided almost every house in the locality, including
-the house next door, but never came into the place
-where I was. All the same I felt grateful to Mick.
-As I have already explained, he was the only
-member of G.H.Q. who stood by us consistently.</p>
-
-<p>It was considered advisable to remove me again.
-I was taken to Dun Laoghaire to the house of Mrs.
-Barry early in November, 1920. Miss O’Connor
-and Miss Mason were both constant nurses of mine
-while I was there and my recovery became rapid. I
-had been there only three or four days when almost
-every house in the avenue was raided, except that
-of Mrs. Barry. Evidently the British spies were
-hitting the trail but losing the scent.</p>
-
-<p>I was in Dun Laoghaire on “Bloody Sunday,”
-November 21st. On that morning fourteen British
-Intelligence officers were shot dead in their lodgings
-in Dublin by our men. These officers, living the
-lives of ordinary civilians in private houses, were
-really spies, and the brains of the British Intelligence
-Department at that time. In every land spies pay
-the death penalty during war, and even the British
-Ministers of the time justified all their actions by<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_226"></a>[226]</span>
-saying they were “at war with Ireland.” But
-there could not be one set of war rules for their
-men and another for ours.</p>
-
-<p>The operation was one of the most successful
-carried out in Dublin. The I.R.A., however,
-suffered some losses. Frank Teeling was captured
-and sentenced to death, but escaped from Kilmainham
-Jail before the sentence was carried out. Paddy
-Moran was later captured and tried for taking part
-in one of these executions although he was four
-miles from the scene. He was hanged in Mountjoy
-early in 1921. I knew poor Paddy well. I first
-met him at the home of my friend Mrs. O’Doherty
-in Connaught Street, Dublin. He was a lovable
-character, and a faithful soldier of Ireland.</p>
-
-<p>There were two terrible reprisals that day for the
-execution of the fourteen spies.</p>
-
-<p>In broad daylight the same afternoon hundreds of
-soldiers and Black and Tans drove to Croke Park
-where 10,000 people, who had not even heard of
-the shootings that morning, were witnessing a football
-match between Tipperary and Dublin.</p>
-
-<p>Surrounding the grounds the British without
-warning poured volley after volley into the crowd,
-killing seventeen people and wounding about fifty.
-That crime was, perhaps, the most diabolical of
-which England had been guilty.</p>
-
-<p>Another incident of “Bloody Sunday” had,
-however, a sadder personal touch for me. That<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_227"></a>[227]</span>
-was the murder of Peadar Clancy and Dick McKee.
-They had been captured by the enemy shortly
-before, and were murdered in Dublin Castle as a
-reprisal for the shooting of the officers. Of course,
-Sir Hamar Greenwood, or his chief manufacturer
-of lies at the Castle, invented one of their usual
-explanations that they attacked the guard and
-attempted to escape. Fancy two highly intelligent
-officers attempting to attack an armed guard in the
-heart of a fortress from which a mouse could not
-escape! An independent medical examination
-showed that the two I.R.A. men were subjected to
-the most incredible tortures before they were done
-to death.</p>
-
-<p>Mick Collins and Tom Cullen (later A.D.C. to
-the new Free State Governor-General) arranged
-for this medical examination, and also for the lying-in-state
-of the two bodies at the Pro-Cathedral. I
-mention this to their credit, for few members of
-G.H.Q. staff would have ventured so much in public
-at that time of danger and uncertainty.</p>
-
-<p>Poor Dick and Peadar! They were two of our
-bravest officers and two of our staunchest supporters
-of the intensive war policy. They lived only
-five weeks after Sean, and did not even get a chance
-of dying fighting like him. A County Clare Volunteer
-named Conor Clune was murdered on the same
-occasion in the Castle.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_228"></a>[228]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXIV">CHAPTER XXIV.<br>
-<span class="smaller">MY RETURN TO TIPPERARY.</span></h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>From Dun Laoghaire I was taken in a motor car
-by Eamonn Fleming across the mountains into
-Wicklow. At one place Eamonn introduced me
-under an assumed name, but the man of the house
-laughed heartily and assured him that he knew me
-well as Dan Breen, for he was a patient in the same
-part of the Mater Hospital when I was there some
-weeks before.</p>
-
-<p>At this time I had to keep moving from place to
-place more rapidly, as England was now pouring
-troops into the country by thousands. The jails
-and penal settlements of Britain were being scoured
-for recruits for the Black and Tans, who were given
-every assurance by their chiefs that they need have
-no fears they would ever suffer for letting themselves
-loose on a campaign of murder, loot and arson.
-And they took the hint.</p>
-
-<p>I spent a few days at the lovely home of Bob
-Barton, T.D., in the Glen of Wicklow. Later I
-went farther south again, and finally, a few days<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_229"></a>[229]</span>
-before Christmas of 1920, I found myself back
-again in my own brigade area in South Tipperary.</p>
-
-<p>Here I met all the old comrades again—Seumas
-Robinson, Dinny Lacey, Sean Hogan, Sean
-O’Meara and many others. I was feeling strong
-again, but by doctor’s orders I was not allowed to
-walk any considerable distance.</p>
-
-<p>The war was now at its height. Our columns
-were moving about in broad daylight with their
-rifles on their shoulders, welcomed everywhere by
-the people, whose offence in harbouring us was
-punishment by death. The enemy now only ventured
-from their strongholds in the towns when they
-were in hundreds, accompanied by dozens of
-armoured cars. The British machinery of Government
-was completely wrecked. British courts were
-deserted while litigants flocked to the Republican
-Courts to get justice, even though a long term of
-imprisonment was the penalty for anyone found in
-one of our courts. The orders of the English
-Government Departments were ignored by all our
-public bodies. In a word, England’s only claim to
-rule Ireland at this time was that she had about one
-hundred thousand armed criminals in the country
-dressed as soldiers and police.</p>
-
-<p>I spent a while in the neighbourhood of Solohead,
-and later went on towards Cahir and Rosegreen.
-Most of the remaining period of the war I passed
-in that part of the county, round Fethard, Cahir<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_230"></a>[230]</span>
-and Rosegreen direction. Our columns were now
-busy fighting every day, and about this time we
-put into practice the idea of having elaborate dugouts
-for sleeping accommodation and for concealing
-arms. These underground resting places had very
-narrow entrances, barely large enough to admit a
-man’s body.</p>
-
-<p>In April, 1921, we were in Cahir district when
-our Brigade Intelligence officer reported that it had
-become usual for a convoy of British troops to pass
-between Clogheen and Cahir every Wednesday
-morning. We decided to ambush this convoy on
-22nd April. Word was sent to the columns to
-mobilise at the spot chosen for the attack. Con
-Moloney (who became Deputy Chief of the I.R.A.
-Staff during the Civil War) and I arrived in the
-neighbourhood the previous night and fell in with
-our columns. At this time we travelled about in a
-motor car, so the reader will appreciate the change
-that had taken place. In 1919 when the war had
-not started I dare not stay in my own county, and
-now in 1921, when the war was at its height, I
-could use a motor car with comparative safety.</p>
-
-<p>At 5 a.m. on the morning of the 22nd all our
-men rose to prepare for the ambush. It was about
-midway between Clogheen and Cahir. When all
-was ready Moloney, Lacey, Hogan and myself
-visited the positions.</p>
-
-<p>The enemy party was expected to pass about 10<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_231"></a>[231]</span>
-o’clock in the morning, and before that hour our
-men were on the alert with their guns in their
-hands. It was approaching 11 o’clock when we
-began to fear that the soldiers would not follow
-their usual custom; still we remained in readiness
-until 1 o’clock, when Con Moloney and I decided
-to return to Brigade Headquarters—“somewhere
-in South Tipperary.”</p>
-
-<p>We had left the position only half an hour when
-the convoy came along. Our men at once called
-upon the enemy to surrender, but they replied by
-opening fire. A sharp encounter followed, in the
-course of which one soldier was killed and two
-wounded. The remainder of the party then
-surrendered to the I.R.A., who disarmed them,
-destroyed their convoy, and then released their
-prisoners.</p>
-
-<p>Our men lost no time in retiring from the position,
-for the firing had probably been heard in Clogheen
-and Cahir, both occupied by strong British
-garrisons who would at once rush reinforcements
-into the districts. The I.R.A. were marching off
-with their booty, in column formation, when a single
-motor car, rounding a corner at a place called
-Curraghclooney, almost ran into the rear guard.
-The car was halted. Our men asked the occupant
-his name and got the reply, “District Inspector
-Potter, of the R.I.C., Cahir.”</p>
-
-<p>He was at once taken prisoner, and his car<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_232"></a>[232]</span>
-seized. Our columns had not proceeded much
-farther on their way when they suddenly found
-themselves being ambushed by a strong party of
-enemy troops. A brisk engagement developed, but
-although out-numbered three to one, our boys not
-only fought their way through without losses on
-their side, but carried their prisoner with them.
-Their success was due to the able leadership of
-Dinny Lacey and Sean Hogan.</p>
-
-<p>Now at this time an I.R.A. man named Traynor
-was under sentence of death in Dublin. Already the
-British had hanged several of our soldiers who had
-fallen into their hands, but our side firmly set its
-face against reprisals. On many a day that I.R.A.
-men were hanged as criminals British soldiers and
-police fell into our hands, but they were always
-released on handing up their arms. If England
-would not play the game we would.</p>
-
-<p>Traynor’s was a particularly sad case. He was
-the father of a helpless young family. His execution
-was fixed for April 25th.</p>
-
-<p>With Potter a prisoner in our hands we at once
-decided upon a course of action which might save
-Traynor’s life. We sent a special courier at once
-to Dublin, with a message to be delivered at the
-enemy headquarters to the effect that we were
-prepared to exchange our prisoner for Traynor, and
-failing this, that Potter would be executed by us.</p>
-
-<p>The message was delivered in Dublin Castle two<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_233"></a>[233]</span>
-days before the time fixed for the execution. We
-got no reply. I believe the Castle officials never
-let the offer go beyond their own secret circle. After
-all, Potter was in their eyes but one of the mere
-Irish whom they had used as a tool.</p>
-
-<p>On the 26th we received word that Traynor had
-been executed the previous day. We felt it would
-show weakness on our part if we did not carry out
-our threat. We thought, too, it would have a good
-effect if we had to make similar offers in the future.
-And besides Potter was, in our eyes, not an English
-soldier but an Irish traitor.</p>
-
-<p>We informed him he was to be executed. We
-gave him every facility for communicating with his
-wife and children, and for writing any messages he
-wished.</p>
-
-<p>I never felt more sorry in my life at having to
-carry out such an unpleasant task. We discussed
-the matter from every aspect and agreed we had
-no alternative. Potter was a kind and cultured
-gentleman, and a brave officer. Before he was
-executed he gave us a diary, a signet ring and a
-gold watch with the request that we should return
-them to his wife. We fulfilled his request.</p>
-
-<p>As an official reprisal for his death the British
-military authorities blew up ten farmhouses in South
-Tipperary. Amongst them was Mrs. Tobin’s, of
-Tincurry, where Sean Treacy, Hogan and I had
-sheltered the night after the Soloheadbeg affair.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_234"></a>[234]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXV">CHAPTER XXV.<br>
-<span class="smaller">MARRIED IN THE BATTLE LINE.</span></h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>On the 12th June, 1921, just one month before
-the Truce with the English forces, I was married
-in circumstances as strange as they were romantic.</p>
-
-<p>In an earlier chapter I have already told how I
-first met my future wife, Brighid Malone, in September,
-1919, and how she and her sister served
-us and our cause when sympathisers were few.
-From the day of our first visit to the home of the
-Malone’s, our friendship began and soon developed
-into a deeper feeling. I knew it was to Brighid’s
-constant care and nursing that I owed my speedy
-recovery from the wounds I received at Ashtown.
-During the months that I spent in her mother’s
-house after that encounter our attachment became
-stronger, and in 1920 we became formally engaged.</p>
-
-<p>After the fight at Drumcondra in October, 1920,
-Brighid came to see me whenever it was safe. We
-decided to get married as soon as I would be completely
-recovered. I knew well the risks I was
-asking her to take for my sake; but she never<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_235"></a>[235]</span>
-hesitated in taking them. To be known as a friend
-of mine involved all the petty tyranny and torture
-of which the British were capable. What then
-would it mean for the girl against whom the terrible
-crime could be laid that she was my fiancee or my
-wife?</p>
-
-<p>I knew that spies would forever after dog her
-steps, that her home would be raided night and day,
-and she herself insulted, and perhaps tortured for
-information. But she never flinched. She was
-willing to take her chance, and I, for my part, felt
-I could be still as good a soldier of Ireland.</p>
-
-<p>Early in 1921 we agreed that the marriage would
-take place in June. Brighid would have her holidays
-at that time, and therefore her journey to the
-country, if noticed, might not arouse so much
-suspicion.</p>
-
-<p>At the end of May we had completed all arrangements.
-To have the ceremony in a church was out
-of the question. Churches were constantly being
-raided and searched, and even sacrilege was of
-little concern to the Auxiliaries. Besides, a
-marriage ceremony in a local church arouses the
-curiosity of the neighbourhood.</p>
-
-<p>We decided to have the marriage at Michael
-Purcell’s, of Glenagat House. Glenagat is six
-miles from Clonmel, and four miles from each of the
-towns of Cahir, Cashel and Fethard. All of these
-towns were held by strong enemy forces who every<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_236"></a>[236]</span>
-day and night sent out heavy columns to scour the
-district in search of our units. Our chosen spot
-was, therefore, in the midst of the enemy.</p>
-
-<p>The Purcells were a great family, and did everything
-in their power to help in completing the
-arrangements. They had a long record of service
-in the country’s cause, and both Mr. Purcell and
-his wife had seen the inside of a prison cell during the
-“Land War” of the last generation. They had
-been ruthlessly evicted from their homestead, but
-at this time they had won back their farm.</p>
-
-<p>The fight was now more intense than ever. Each
-side was suffering heavy casualties every day, and
-the crimes of the Black and Tans were daily
-becoming more fiendish and revolting.</p>
-
-<p>Brighid arrived in the district on the Sunday
-before the wedding. It was seven months since we
-had seen each other, so that our reunion was not
-only romantic but delightful. It is not easy to
-appreciate the risk she had taken.</p>
-
-<p>Meantime I had sent word from Brigade Headquarters
-to all our columns, telling them of the
-event that was coming off. During the early
-morning of 12th June all our columns converged on
-Glenagat, felled trees across the roads, and posted
-armed guards at all the approaches. Glenagat that
-day was as impregnable as the South Tipperary
-Brigade could make it, and if the British forces
-attempted to visit the area they would get a reception<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_237"></a>[237]</span>
-such as they had never before experienced.
-Never were our men so eager, so determined, or so
-excited. The night before Sean Hogan, Dinny
-Lacey, Mick Sheehan, Con Moloney, Sean Fitzpatrick
-and several other officers slept with me in
-a tent near by. I think I should have said spent
-the night, for we slept very little, much to my
-regret. The boys would insist on talking all through
-the night and giving me all the advice that
-bachelors usually give to one who is going to
-become a benedict. If ever I was the target for
-rapid and sustained fire it was that night—though
-fortunately it was not of a dangerous kind.</p>
-
-<p>Early in the morning we arrived at Glenagat
-House. Father Murphy, of New Inn, Cashel, who
-was to perform the ceremony, had already arrived,
-and Brighid was there too. Father Murphy said
-Mass in the house, and both Brighid and myself
-received Holy Communion. Sean Hogan was my
-“best man,” and Miss Annie Malone was bridesmaid.</p>
-
-<p>When the ceremony was over we sat down to
-breakfast, and a right merry party we were. Father
-Ferdinand O’Leary, Sean Cooney and Miss Cooney
-arrived on the scene just as the breakfast began.</p>
-
-<p>At Jack Luby’s, of Milltown House, we had a
-real country wedding. All through the evening
-and night the boys and girls of the neighbourhood
-danced and sang and enjoyed themselves as if<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_238"></a>[238]</span>
-there was no war on. All the time our outposts were
-on the alert, though each party was relieved from
-time to time to have their share in the merriment.
-And even while the boys danced and laughed their
-guns were ever at hand in case of need. We had
-grown used to the war. No terrorism could ever
-kill the spirit of the people.</p>
-
-<p>From Glenagat district we went across to
-Donohill, back to my native parish, beside Soloheadbeg.
-Larry Power, who was Captain of my
-old company, saw that we had nothing to fear, and
-I knew my old comrades could be trusted to the
-death.</p>
-
-<p>Here we spent our honeymoon, moving from the
-house of one friend to another, for they were all
-anxious to entertain us. John Quirke, Paddy
-O’Dwyer, James Ryan and Jack O’Brien, of
-Ballinvassa, were each in turn our host, and spared
-no pains to make us happy and safe.</p>
-
-<p>Truly, it was a strange wedding and a strange
-honeymoon. No wedding marches, crossed swords,
-confetti or rice or trips to the continent, but the
-love and welcome of trusted friends with generous
-warm hearts. And I do not believe that either my
-wife or I would have it otherwise, if we had our
-choice again.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_239"></a>[239]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXVI">CHAPTER XXVI.<br>
-<span class="smaller">THE TRUCE.</span></h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Early in June, 1921, I learned that a movement
-was on foot to effect a compromise with England.
-It did not surprise me then to hear that a Truce had
-been arranged as from July 11th, 1921.</p>
-
-<p>In many respects we welcomed the respite,
-though we never thought it would end as it did.
-For some time our area had been running short
-of munitions, and just before the Truce we had sent
-some of our men to the continent in the hope of
-negotiating for a cargo which would attempt to run
-the blockade. At the time of the Truce I was
-Quartermaster of the Second Southern Division of
-the I.R.A., but I resigned for reasons I do not wish
-to state here. It was just about the time of the
-Truce that our Brigades all over Ireland were being
-grouped into Divisions.</p>
-
-<p>It was like a new life to us to return from the
-columns to the towns and cities again. Everywhere
-we were welcomed and acclaimed as heroes, even
-by the people who, two years before, had been
-describing us as murderers and assassins. But all<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_240"></a>[240]</span>
-this time we were still short of money. During the
-months of the Truce I went about almost every day
-to race meetings and made scores of friends
-amongst the racing fraternity whose information—especially
-that of the owners—enabled Hogan and
-myself to make some very profitable investments.
-It was the only way we could obtain money, for the
-I.R.A. were still an unpaid Volunteer Army.</p>
-
-<p>In Tipperary and Dublin I visited all my old
-friends, and was welcomed everywhere. In August
-I decided to give up racing. At that time the I.R.A.
-was devoting special attention to the Northern
-areas, endeavouring to equip and train the units
-there so that when the fight would be renewed they
-would play a more active part and relieve some of
-the pressure from the Southern counties. I was
-anxious to give a hand in this work and went to the
-north, where I met Charlie Daly, who was since
-executed by the Free State during the Civil War.
-Daly, who was a Kerry man, was one of the
-finest and ablest soldiers I ever met. I spent five
-weeks with Charlie training the Northern boys in
-the use of the gun and the bomb. It was hard work
-for all of us, but I enjoyed it as I saw much of
-Ulster in our long walks and pleasure drives. To
-make it more exciting we went into Belfast itself
-on a few occasions.</p>
-
-<p>I returned to Dublin about the end of September.
-While I was in the capital the Dublin Guards presented<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_241"></a>[241]</span>
-me with a gold watch and chain, and Paddy
-Daly and others, who were later officers of high
-command in the Free State Army, said some very
-nice things about me. Here I must observe that
-the watch I received on that occasion was looted
-from my house in Carrick-on-Suir ten or eleven
-months later by the Free State troops who entered
-that town.</p>
-
-<p>I remained in Dublin until a few days before the
-signing of the Treaty. Then I discovered that a
-compromise was being made, and I went to the
-south once more. I was convinced that if we could
-show that the Army was standing solid for what it
-had fought to achieve the Dail would not betray the
-Army. The soldiers, I felt, would keep the politicians
-on the straight track. I could not bring myself
-to believe that the Dail would take upon itself the
-responsibility of making a compromise, when it had
-never taken responsibility for the Anglo-Irish War.
-In this I was sadly mistaken. The very men who
-were most bitterly opposed to the few who began
-the war were now the strongest supporters of the
-Treaty.</p>
-
-<p>I came to Dublin on December 7th, the day the
-terms of the Treaty were made public, and I met
-Liam Lynch, Sean Hogan, and several I.R.A.
-officers. I urged Liam Lynch, who was then in
-command of the 1st Southern Division, to end the
-Truce right away and resume the war. In that way<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_242"></a>[242]</span>
-we might have kept the Army united once the
-common enemy was again in action against any
-section of us. Nobody favoured my plan. Some
-held out the vain hope that even if the Treaty were
-accepted by the Dail it would be rejected by the
-people at the polls. I laughed at the hope, knowing
-that in any country which has wearied of war the
-masses of the people will always accept a compromise.</p>
-
-<p>Disheartened at the failure of my efforts to get
-the boys united once more against the enemy, I
-made up my mind to leave Ireland. I intended to
-go to India and strike a blow against the old enemy
-there and help those who were fighting the same
-battle as we had been fighting in Ireland. But
-when Sean Hogan and I got in touch with Indian
-leaders in London they asked how could Irishmen
-be trusted to fight for India when they had deserted
-their own country?</p>
-
-<p>In despair I decided to go to America. In the
-middle of December I acted as “best man” for
-Seumas Robinson when he was married in Dublin.
-That evening I left for London.</p>
-
-<p>As I left Dun Laoghaire I felt completely broken
-in spirit. I had seen all our efforts in vain, and the
-men we trusted had told the world that the freedom
-we fought for was the freedom to have our country
-cut in twain, and the freedom to take an oath of
-allegiance to a foreign king.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp48" id="illus12" style="max-width: 28.125em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/illus12.jpg" alt="">
- <p class="caption">J. J. HOGAN. FATHER DAN KELLY. DAN BREEN.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_243"></a>[243]</span></p>
-
-<p>Before I left Dublin I had asked several I.R.A.
-officers to stand with me in resuming the war, but
-they would not accept my views. Had they agreed
-I would never have left Ireland, and I warned them
-that within twelve months they would be fighting a
-Civil War.</p>
-
-<p>On the 19th of December, before leaving Ireland,
-I addressed an open letter to Commandant Sean
-McKeon, T.D. In this letter I made my attitude
-towards the Treaty perfectly clear. These were my
-exact words:—</p>
-
-<p>“I wish to point out to you that you are reported
-to have stated in An Dail to-day, that this Treaty
-brings the freedom that is necessary and for which
-we are all ready to die. You also are reported to
-have previously stated that this Treaty gives you
-what you and your comrades fought for.</p>
-
-<p>“As one of your comrades I say that I would
-never have handled a gun or fired a shot, nor would
-I have asked any of my comrades, living or dead, to
-raise a hand to obtain this Treaty.</p>
-
-<p>“Let me remind you that to-day is the second
-anniversary of Martin Savage’s death. Do you
-suppose that he sacrificed his life in attempting to
-kill one British Governor-General in order to make
-room for another British Governor-General?</p>
-
-<p>“I take no party’s side, but I still stand by our
-old principle of Complete Separation and entire
-Independence.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_244"></a>[244]</span></p>
-
-<p>In London I met Sean Hogan who had crossed
-before me. It was the first time I had ever been
-out of my own country, and for a time the novelty
-of life in London and my strange surroundings
-helped to keep my mind from the great tragedy of
-Ireland. We stayed in London for about a fortnight.
-During my stay I met Mr. P. L. Smyth,
-the well-known Dublin Commission Agent, and he
-proved a kind friend to us.</p>
-
-<p>Our next trouble was how to get to America. We
-decided to attempt to cross from Canada, but we
-had two great obstacles to overcome.</p>
-
-<p>In the first place we had very little money, and
-in the second place we had no passports. How we
-overcame the passport difficulty I cannot explain
-here.</p>
-
-<p>Anyhow, after a three weeks’ journey we landed
-safely in Canada. From Canada we successfully
-crossed into the States, and made our way to
-Chicago. Here we were met by my two brothers,
-John and Pat, and my sister, Mary, all of whom
-had been in the United States for some years. I
-soon found that in this far away city we were almost
-at home. We met fellow-countrymen and fellow-countrywomen
-everywhere. One of the first we
-met was Ned O’Brien, of Galbally, whose health
-had broken down because of the wounds he received
-in the rescue at Knocklong. Other friends we made
-included Mrs. McWhorter, a great worker in the<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_245"></a>[245]</span>
-Irish cause, Michael Mulryan, Jim Delaney and
-Colonel O’Reilly. They all helped to make it a real
-holiday for us by showing us everything of note in
-that great city. Above all, I marvelled at the great
-meat-curing factories, most of which are owned and
-worked by Irishmen.</p>
-
-<p>We went from Chicago to Philadelphia where a
-host of friends again greeted us. Joe McGarrity,
-that veteran worker for Ireland, was one of the first
-to welcome us, and we spent a while in his house
-where so many before us—Sean McDermott,
-Padraig Pearse, Roger Casement, and Eamon de
-Valera—had been honoured and entertained. Luke
-Dillon, too, welcomed us, and our old friends
-Seumas O’Doherty and Mrs. O’Doherty, whom we
-had known in the old days in Dublin. The kindness
-of the O’Doherty family to us I shall always remember
-with gratitude.</p>
-
-<p>From Philadelphia we travelled to California.
-There I again met many Irish friends, including
-Father Peter Scanlon, Father Dan Kelly, Senior;
-and Father Dan Kelly, Junior, all from my own part
-of the country. I was delighted to meet Mick
-McDonnell too, our old comrade of the Ashtown
-fight, who had been out there for quite a good
-while.</p>
-
-<p>California is a delightful place. Although it was
-mid-winter when I got there the weather was like
-the weather we get in Ireland in the summer-time.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_246"></a>[246]</span></p>
-
-<p>Meantime I was far from being out of touch with
-affairs in Ireland. The American papers gave much
-prominence to the development of events at home
-following the acceptance of the Treaty. It was
-plain that our old comrades were irrevocably divided
-and heading for Civil War. Every day brought
-fresh stories of new differences and minor conflicts
-that showed the situation could end only in one
-way. In America our countrymen were divided in
-the same way as our people at home.</p>
-
-<p>Early in March came the news that Limerick was
-on the verge of an outbreak. Different posts in the
-city were held by the rival sections of the Volunteers—some
-supporters of the Treaty and some against
-it. Ultimatums had actually passed between the
-rival commanders there, and it looked as if at any
-moment a single shot might begin a conflict that
-would soon spread throughout the land.</p>
-
-<p>I was staying with Father Dan Kelly, Senior, at
-Menlo Park, when a cable reached me from Ireland
-asking me to return at once. This message was
-the outcome of an agreement made between the
-rival sections in Limerick, an agreement which
-averted a conflict.</p>
-
-<p>Within two days of the receipt of this cablegram
-I had left California for Chicago. There I again
-stayed for a few days with my relatives and friends.
-From Chicago I went to Philadelphia where I got<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_247"></a>[247]</span>
-the same warm greeting from Joe McGarrity, Luke
-Dillon and the O’Dohertys.</p>
-
-<p>We had decided that New York would be the best
-place from which to attempt a passage to Ireland,
-for of course Hogan and I were still confronted with
-the same difficulties regarding money and passports
-as we had experienced on our outward journey. We
-could easily have got passports from the British
-Consulate if we had asked them as British subjects,
-but we would rather have rotted in America. While
-in New York we visited the Carmelite Fathers’ place
-in 39th Street, and also the Irish Offices in 5th
-Avenue, where I met Liam Pedlar.</p>
-
-<p>At last, through the help of some Irish friends,
-both of us got taken on a vessel that was sailing for
-Cobh. We were working our way as stokers. Sean
-and I set to our work with a will, and had done four
-hours at a task which was novel to us. The vessel
-was to sail within an hour, when somebody got
-suspicious of Hogan. He was questioned as to his
-nationality, his experience on other vessels, and the
-result was that he was ordered to leave the ship on
-the spot.</p>
-
-<p>Now this was a nice dilemma for me. I saw our
-four hours’ hard work and all our efforts to secure
-the jobs gone for nothing; but I could not think of
-leaving Hogan alone in New York without a cent,
-in his pocket. I made up my mind that I would
-not sail without him.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_248"></a>[248]</span></p>
-
-<p>But it was no easy matter to escape from the
-ship. The crew were marshalled for the voyage,
-and to attempt to return to land was a serious
-offence, for which I might find myself in irons.</p>
-
-<p>The risk had to be taken. I made a bold bid. I
-walked straight to the gangway, but was held up
-by an officer. I explained to him that I had important
-business to do on shore but would not be
-detained longer than a few minutes. He must have
-taken me to be a simple harmless poor worker, for
-he accepted my word and allowed me to land. I
-never saw him or his ship afterwards.</p>
-
-<p>The loss was not all on his side. All the money
-we had the night before we intended to sail had been
-invested in guns, and these were on the ship. It
-would be madness to try to bring them with me,
-so I had to suffer the loss. My comrade was more
-to me than Krupp’s factory.</p>
-
-<p>We had a few more bitter disappointments before
-we could again get on a liner. Finally we found
-ourselves on the high seas once more, sailing for
-Cobh.</p>
-
-<p>We landed in Ireland early in April. A friend
-to whom my wife had wired to meet me at Cobh
-brought me the happy news that not only my wife
-but a son was waiting my arrival in Dublin.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_249"></a>[249]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXVII">CHAPTER XXVII.<br>
-<span class="smaller">EFFORTS TO AVERT CIVIL WAR.</span></h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>When I arrived in Dublin I found that the situation
-was even more critical that I had expected. The
-old Republican Army had definitely split into two
-sections—one the new Free State Army, and the
-other the I.R.A. The British troops had evacuated
-Beggar’s Bush Barracks and Wellington Barracks,
-and handed them over to the Free State troops.
-The Republicans had seized and fortified the Four
-Courts as their Headquarters. Similar divisions
-existed all over the country, though the south was
-overwhelmingly Republican so far as the Army
-was concerned. It was clear that at any moment
-a civil war might ensue. War was in the air. At
-night there was constant firing, and armoured cars
-rushed through the streets.</p>
-
-<p>I felt almost broken-hearted. Had we stood so
-loyally together in the past only to turn our arms
-against each other now? I decided that I at least
-would not be to blame if fighting broke out.</p>
-
-<p>I visited the strongholds of each party in turn<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_250"></a>[250]</span>
-to explore the possibilities. I called meetings of the
-old fighting crowd on each side, but there seemed
-no chance of any agreement.</p>
-
-<p>I then met Sean O’Hegarty (Commandant of
-the 1st Cork Brigade), Florrie O’Donoghue (Adjutant
-of the 1st Southern Division), Humphrey
-Murphy, of Kerry; Tom Hales, of Cork; and
-Sean Moylan, T.D., all of whom were opposed to
-the Treaty. After some discussion we decided to
-meet some officers on the other side in a last effort
-to find a way out. We met Mick Collins, Dick
-Mulcahy, Owen O’Duffy, Gearoid O’Sullivan, and
-Sean Boylan.</p>
-
-<p>After a long exchange of views we agreed upon
-a certain basis of settlement. This we put in writing,
-and each of us signed it except Sean Moylan. This
-document was published in the Press on 1st May.
-I give it here in full:—</p>
-
-<p>“We, the undersigned officers of the I.R.A.,
-realising the gravity of the position in Ireland, and
-appreciating the fact that if the present drift is
-maintained a conflict of comrades is inevitable,
-declare that this would be the greatest calamity in
-Irish history and would leave Ireland broken for
-generations.</p>
-
-<p>“To avert this catastrophe we believe that a
-closing of the ranks all round is necessary.</p>
-
-<p>“We suggest to all leaders, Army and Political,
-and all citizens and soldiers of Ireland, the advisability<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_251"></a>[251]</span>
-of a union of forces on the basis of the
-acceptance and utilisation of our present national
-position in the best interests of Ireland, and we
-require that nothing shall be done that would
-prejudice our position or dissipate our forces.</p>
-
-<p>“We feel that on this basis alone can the
-situation best be faced, viz.:—</p>
-
-<div class="blockquote">
-
-<p>“(1) The acceptance of the Pact—admitted
-by all sides—that the majority of the
-people of Ireland are willing to accept the
-Treaty.</p>
-
-<p>“(2) An agreed election with a view to</p>
-
-<p>“(3) Forming a Government which will have
-the confidence of the whole country.</p>
-
-<p>“(4) Army unification on above basis.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>That was signed by Tom Hales, Humphrey
-Murphy, Sean O’Hegarty, Florrie O’Donoghue,
-Sean Boylan, Dick Mulcahy, Owen O’Duffy,
-Gearoid O’Sullivan, Mick Collins and myself. That
-is, five of us who opposed the Treaty and five who
-favoured it. In the Civil War which followed both
-Florrie O’Donoghue and Sean O’Hegarty remained
-neutral.</p>
-
-<p>These proposals came in for severe criticism.
-The Republican Headquarters in the Four Courts
-at once issued a statement repudiating the terms,
-and suggesting the whole thing was an attempt to
-split their ranks. I myself received my full share of<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_252"></a>[252]</span>
-adverse criticism. One Republican Journal, <i>The
-Plain People</i>, described me as a “Judas—with
-perhaps the difference that I had not got the thirty
-pieces of silver.” I do not to this day know who
-the editor of this paper was. Perhaps he believed
-what he wrote. I paid no heed to these observations.
-My duty I believed was to strain every nerve to
-avoid civil war.</p>
-
-<p>On May 3rd, those who had signed this suggested
-basis of peace were received by the Dail, and Sean
-O’Hegarty addressed the House. The result was
-the appointment of a Committee representing both
-sides in the Dail to discuss the proposals.</p>
-
-<p>The next step was to see what could be done to
-bring about a reunion in the Army. A conference
-was arranged between the chiefs on both sides, and
-several meetings were held. But neither the Army
-chiefs nor the political chiefs could come to any
-lasting agreement. The one result of all the
-negotiations was the Pact between Eamon de
-Valera and Michael Collins agreeing to contest
-the coming elections as a United Sinn Fein Party,
-both Free Staters and Republicans standing on the
-same ticket and not opposing each other. In that
-way all the outgoing members of the Dail were
-again nominated, and the agreement was that after
-the election there was to be a Coalition Ministry.</p>
-
-<p>When the election came there was some difficulty
-about a vacancy which had been created in East<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_253"></a>[253]</span>
-Tipperary by the resignation of Alderman Frank
-Drohan, of Clonmel. He had resigned before the
-division on the Treaty, and a dispute arose as to
-whether the Republicans or the Free Staters were
-to nominate his successor. Finally, I was selected
-as being more or less neutral. I was not consulted
-on the matter and I knew nothing about the arrangement
-until I saw the announcement in the Press. I
-protested against the proposal, but for the sake of
-harmony I agreed to allow my name to go forward.
-I had no ambition to enter politics. I was a soldier
-above all things, and I made it quite plain that I
-would take no part in the election campaign. However,
-both sides nominated me and I was defeated
-at the polls.</p>
-
-<p>I had hoped that as a result of the Pact between
-Collins and de Valera we would have an uncontested
-election, which would result in preserving a united
-front against England. However, both the Labour
-Party and the Farmers prepared to send forward
-candidates of their own to oppose Republicans and
-Free Staters. Before the polling, Mick Collins
-delivered a speech in Cork urging Labour and other
-parties to carry on their campaign. This was, of
-course, a flagrant violation of the agreement which
-he had entered.</p>
-
-<p>In North, Mid. and South Tipperary I succeeded
-in inducing the Farmers’ candidates to withdraw
-from the contest. If all parties were as patriotic as<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_254"></a>[254]</span>
-the farmers of Tipperary civil war might have been
-avoided. They had suffered more than any other
-section of the community from the Black and Tan
-terror. They had had martial law preventing the
-holding of the fairs and markets for three years.
-Their farmhouses and creameries had been wrecked
-in scores, and they had stood loyally by us all
-through the war. Their self-sacrifice in retiring
-from the 1922 election deserves to be remembered.</p>
-
-<p>The Labour candidate in Tipperary would listen
-to no argument. He cared nothing about presenting
-a united front to the enemy. He was ambitious for
-power and he insisted upon going forward. He afterwards,
-I believe, boasted that he was not afraid of
-Dan Breen even when a gun was put up to his
-breast. Even in election campaigns such slanders
-are hardly playing the game. However, I hope my
-countrymen know me well enough not to believe
-that I would ever put a gun up to an unarmed
-opponent.</p>
-
-<p>All this time I still felt anxious for the future.
-Mick Collins’ violation of the Pact made me
-suspicious. I felt too that England would never
-permit a Coalition Ministry of Free Staters and
-Republicans, but my hope all the time was that if
-a crisis came the Free Staters would throw the
-Treaty back in her teeth rather than cause brother
-to fight against brother.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_255"></a>[255]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXVIII">CHAPTER XXVIII.<br>
-<span class="smaller">HOW I WAS CAPTURED.</span></h2>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>I have no intention of giving here a story of the
-Civil War. I can only say that I claim to have done
-my part to avoid it. But when I learned to my
-amazement that the Free Staters had in the dead
-of night placed British guns in position to shell the
-Republicans in the Four Courts I felt there was only
-one course open to me—to throw in my lot with
-my old comrades and carry on the fight for the
-Republic.</p>
-
-<p>In the course of that fight I lost nearly all my
-old brothers-in-arms. Even in the war against the
-Black and Tans Tipperary suffered less heavily.
-Dinny Lacey gave his life for Ireland; so too did
-Jerry Kiely, “Sparkie” Breen, Paddy Dalton,
-Paddy McDonough, Mick Sadlier, D. Ryan, Liam
-Lynch, and several others with whom I had
-campaigned in the old days. They were noble and
-courageous soldiers, true and unselfish comrades.
-Ireland will miss such men as these. They might be
-with us still if the agreement made in Limerick between<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_256"></a>[256]</span>
-Liam Lynch and Mick Brennan had been kept
-by the Free Staters. That agreement might have
-saved the soldiers of the south from turning their
-guns on one another. No one can say that the
-Republicans have a particle of responsibility for the
-breaking of the 1922 Treaty of Limerick.</p>
-
-<p>I shall conclude my story with an account of the
-circumstances that led to my capture.</p>
-
-<p>When Liam Lynch was killed in County
-Waterford in the early spring of 1923, Austin
-Stack, Frank Barrett, David Kent, Sean Gaynor,
-Maurice Walsh, George Power, and several others
-of us who were together in the neighbourhood
-decided to make our way to the Nire Valley to
-attend an important meeting that had been called
-to discuss certain peace proposals. We reached
-Melleray at 1 o’clock next morning, and had a
-much needed rest and some food. At 5 o’clock we
-resumed our journey towards Cappoquin, and after
-an hour’s march we crossed the road, for we were
-anxious to keep to the fields as much as possible.
-Just after we had crossed the road, and were
-advancing up a hill heavy fire was opened on us
-from three sides. We at once took cover, but as the
-firing became more intense we decided to get away
-as best we could. In the confusion we became
-scattered. I never met Austin Stack from that day
-until I met him four months later in Mountjoy,
-where we were both prisoners.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_257"></a>[257]</span></p>
-
-<p>I fell in with Maurice Walsh and Andy Kennedy,
-and we decided to face for Newcastle, near Clonmel.
-When we arrived there we found to our amazement
-that the place was held by a strong party of Free
-Staters.</p>
-
-<p>We had to remain for two days on the hills, as the
-Free State troops had brought up huge reinforcements
-to sweep the district. There was heavy snow
-on the ground, but we could not venture into any
-place of shelter.</p>
-
-<p>After two days we slipped through the lines, and
-I headed for my old haunt, the Glen of Aherlow. I
-reached a dug-out on the Glen and almost collapsed
-from exhaustion and hunger. I slept almost as soon
-as I lay down.</p>
-
-<p>From that sleep I was wakened by the heavy
-tramp of marching men above. I jumped out and
-looked into the barrels of several Free State rifles.
-I had no option but to surrender.</p>
-
-<p>I am not a soft-hearted man. I have gone
-through too much to feel it an easy job to weep;
-but my pride alone kept me from crying like a child
-that day.</p>
-
-<p>For five years I had defied England’s garrison
-in Ireland. Everything I had suffered willingly for
-my country and my countrymen. And now in my
-native county I was a prisoner in the hands of my
-own countrymen.</p>
-
-<p>I was first taken to Galbally where I met my old<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_258"></a>[258]</span>
-friend of Knocklong, Ned O’Brien, his brother John
-Joe, and James Scanlan. I think they felt the
-situation as keenly as I did, but they tried to cheer
-me up.</p>
-
-<p>From Galbally I was taken under escort to my
-native town, Tipperary, where I was put through
-some form of trial. Next day I was taken from the
-Free State Headquarters, the Abbey School, and
-marched to the railway station. The humiliation
-and agony I endured during that short march I
-shall never forget. May the reader never know
-what it is to be marched a prisoner through his
-native town for doing what he believed to be his
-duty and serving his country.</p>
-
-<p>I was taken by rail to Limerick where I was
-detained for two months. I have already related
-how I met, as one of the military officers in charge
-of me, Lord French’s driver whom we had wounded
-at Ashtown.</p>
-
-<p>From Limerick I was taken to Mountjoy, and
-because of my treatment there I went on hunger-strike.
-After twelve days of hunger-strike and six
-of thirst strike, I was released.</p>
-
-<p>During my imprisonment the people of Tipperary
-had elected me as their senior Republican Deputy.</p>
-
-<p class="titlepage">Printed at<br>
-The Talbot Press<br>
-DUBLIN</p>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin-top:4em'>*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK MY FIGHT FOR IRISH FREEDOM ***</div>
-<div style='text-align:left'>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Updated editions will replace the previous one&#8212;the old editions will
-be renamed.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG&#8482;
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
-the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
-of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
-copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
-easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
-of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
-Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away&#8212;you may
-do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
-by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
-license, especially commercial redistribution.
-</div>
-
-<div style='margin-top:1em; font-size:1.1em; text-align:center'>START: FULL LICENSE</div>
-<div style='text-align:center;font-size:0.9em'>THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE</div>
-<div style='text-align:center;font-size:0.9em'>PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-To protect the Project Gutenberg&#8482; mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase &#8220;Project
-Gutenberg&#8221;), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person
-or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.B. &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (&#8220;the
-Foundation&#8221; or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg&#8482; mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg&#8482; work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country other than the United States.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg&#8482; work (any work
-on which the phrase &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; appears, or with which the
-phrase &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-</div>
-
-<blockquote>
- <div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
- other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
- whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
- of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
- at <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you
- are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws
- of the country where you are located before using this eBook.
- </div>
-</blockquote>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase &#8220;Project
-Gutenberg&#8221; associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg&#8482; License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg&#8482;.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; License.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg&#8482; work in a format
-other than &#8220;Plain Vanilla ASCII&#8221; or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg&#8482; website
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original &#8220;Plain
-Vanilla ASCII&#8221; or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg&#8482; works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-provided that:
-</div>
-
-<div style='margin-left:0.7em;'>
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &#8226; You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg&#8482; works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg&#8482; trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, &#8220;Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation.&#8221;
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &#8226; You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg&#8482;
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
- works.
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &#8226; You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &#8226; You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg&#8482; works.
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
-the Project Gutenberg&#8482; trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
-forth in Section 3 below.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain &#8220;Defects,&#8221; such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the &#8220;Right
-of Replacement or Refund&#8221; described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you &#8216;AS-IS&#8217;, WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg&#8482; work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg&#8482; work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg&#8482;&#8217;s
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg&#8482; collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg&#8482; and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at www.gutenberg.org.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation&#8217;s EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state&#8217;s laws.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Foundation&#8217;s business office is located at 809 North 1500 West,
-Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up
-to date contact information can be found at the Foundation&#8217;s website
-and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; depends upon and cannot survive without widespread
-public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular state
-visit <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org/donate/">www.gutenberg.org/donate</a>.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg&#8482; eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
-facility: <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-This website includes information about Project Gutenberg&#8482;,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-</div>
-
-</div>
-</body>
-</html>
diff --git a/old/69928-h/images/cover.jpg b/old/69928-h/images/cover.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 5a37245..0000000
--- a/old/69928-h/images/cover.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69928-h/images/illus01.jpg b/old/69928-h/images/illus01.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 35f4515..0000000
--- a/old/69928-h/images/illus01.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69928-h/images/illus02.jpg b/old/69928-h/images/illus02.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 94f7ba5..0000000
--- a/old/69928-h/images/illus02.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69928-h/images/illus03.jpg b/old/69928-h/images/illus03.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index b1bc809..0000000
--- a/old/69928-h/images/illus03.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69928-h/images/illus04.jpg b/old/69928-h/images/illus04.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 35f2fb3..0000000
--- a/old/69928-h/images/illus04.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69928-h/images/illus05.jpg b/old/69928-h/images/illus05.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 5af3e06..0000000
--- a/old/69928-h/images/illus05.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69928-h/images/illus06.jpg b/old/69928-h/images/illus06.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index bdb08db..0000000
--- a/old/69928-h/images/illus06.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69928-h/images/illus07.jpg b/old/69928-h/images/illus07.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index a989d18..0000000
--- a/old/69928-h/images/illus07.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69928-h/images/illus08.jpg b/old/69928-h/images/illus08.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 0ecfde7..0000000
--- a/old/69928-h/images/illus08.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69928-h/images/illus09.jpg b/old/69928-h/images/illus09.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 25f657b..0000000
--- a/old/69928-h/images/illus09.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69928-h/images/illus10.jpg b/old/69928-h/images/illus10.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 21433df..0000000
--- a/old/69928-h/images/illus10.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69928-h/images/illus11.jpg b/old/69928-h/images/illus11.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 78d4f64..0000000
--- a/old/69928-h/images/illus11.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69928-h/images/illus12.jpg b/old/69928-h/images/illus12.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index c69c8d3..0000000
--- a/old/69928-h/images/illus12.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69928-h/images/talbot.jpg b/old/69928-h/images/talbot.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 58bab35..0000000
--- a/old/69928-h/images/talbot.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ